This is a modern-English version of The Peace Negotiations: A Personal Narrative, originally written by Lansing, Robert. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Debra Storr, and Prooject Gutenberg

E-text prepared by Jonathan Ingram, Debra Storr, and Project Gutenberg

Distributed Proofreaders

Distributed Proofreaders

THE PEACE NEGOTIATIONS

A PERSONAL NARRATIVE
BY ROBERT LANSING

WITH ILLUSTRATIONS

CONTENTS

I. REASONS FOR WRITING A PERSONAL NARRATIVE
II. MR. WILSON'S PRESENCE AT THE PEACE CONFERENCE
III. GENERAL PLAN FOR A LEAGUE OF NATIONS
IV. SUBSTITUTE ARTICLES PROPOSED
V. THE AFFIRMATIVE GUARANTY AND BALANCE OF POWER
VI. THE PRESIDENT'S PLAN AND THE CECIL PLAN
VII. SELF-DETERMINATION
VIII. THE CONFERENCE OF JANUARY 10, 1919
IX. A RESOLUTION INSTEAD OF THE COVENANT
X. THE GUARANTY IN THE REVISED COVENANT
XI. INTERNATIONAL ARBITRATION
XII. REPORT OF COMMISSION ON LEAGUE OF NATIONS
XIII. THE SYSTEM OF MANDATES
XIV. DIFFERENCES AS TO THE LEAGUE RECAPITULATED
XV. THE PROPOSED TREATY WITH FRANCE
XVI. LACK OF AN AMERICAN PROGRAMME
XVII. SECRET DIPLOMACY
XVIII. THE SHANTUNG SETTLEMENT
XIX. THE BULLITT AFFAIR
CONCLUSION

APPENDICES

I. THE PRESIDENT'S ORIGINAL DRAFT OF THE COVENANT OF THE LEAGUE OF NATIONS, LAID BEFORE THE AMERICAN COMMISSION ON JANUARY 10, 1919
II. LEAGUE OF NATIONS PLAN OF LORD ROBERT CECIL
III. THE COVENANT OF THE LEAGUE OF NATIONS IN THE TREATY OF VERSAILLES
IV. THE FOURTEEN POINTS
V. PRINCIPLES DECLARED BY PRESIDENT WILSON IN HIS ADDRESS OF FEBRUARY 11, 1918
VI. THE ARTICLES OF THE TREATY OF VERSAILLES RELATING TO SHANTUNG

INDEX

ILLUSTRATIONS

THE AMERICAN PEACE DELEGATION AT PARIS
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

THE AMERICAN PEACE DELEGATION AT PARIS
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

FACSIMILE OF MR. LANSING'S COMMISSION AS A COMMISSIONER PLENIPOTENTIARY TO NEGOTIATE PEACE

THE RUE ROYALE ON THE ARRIVAL OF PRESIDENT WILSON ON DECEMBER 14, 1918
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

THE RUE ROYALE ON THE ARRIVAL OF PRESIDENT WILSON ON DECEMBER 14, 1918
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

THE AMERICAN PEACE DELEGATION AND STAFF
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

THE AMERICAN PEACE DELEGATION AND STAFF
Photograph by Signal Corps, U.S.A.

A MEETING AT THE QUAI D'ORSAY AFTER PRESIDENT WILSON'S DEPARTURE FROM PARIS
FACSIMILE OF MR. LANSING'S "FULL POWERS" TO NEGOTIATE A TREATY OF ASSISTANCE TO FRANCE

THE DAILY CONFERENCE OF THE AMERICAN PEACE COMMISSION
Photograph by Isabey, Paris

THE DAILY CONFERENCE OF THE AMERICAN PEACE COMMISSION
Photograph by Isabey, Paris

CHRONOLOGY

The Declaration of the Fourteen Points January 18, 1918

The Declaration of the Fourteen Points January 18, 1918

Declaration of Four Additional Bases of Peace February 11, 1918

Declaration of Four Additional Bases of Peace February 11, 1918

Departure of Colonel House for Paris to represent the
  President on Supreme War Council October 17, 1918

Departure of Colonel House for Paris to represent the
  President at the Supreme War Council October 17, 1918

Signature of Armistice, 5 A.M.; effective, 11 A.M.
                                                 November 11, 1918

Signature of Armistice, 5 A.M.; effective, 11 A.M.
                                                 November 11, 1918

Departure of President and American Commission
  for France December 4, 1918

Departure of President and American Commission
  for France December 4, 1918

Arrival of President and American Commission in
  Paris December 14, 1918

Arrival of the President and American Commission in
  Paris December 14, 1918

Meeting of Supreme War Council January 12, 1919

Meeting of the Supreme War Council January 12, 1919

First Plenary Session of Peace Conference January 25, 1919

First Plenary Session of Peace Conference January 25, 1919

Plenary Session at which Report on the League of Nations
  was Submitted February 14, 1919

Plenary Session where the Report on the League of Nations
  was Submitted February 14, 1919

Departure of President from Paris for United States
                                                 February 14, 1919

Departure of the President from Paris to the United States
                                                 February 14, 1919

President lands at Boston February 24, 1919

President arrives in Boston February 24, 1919

Departure of President from New York for France March 5, 1919

Departure of President from New York for France March 5, 1919

President arrives in Paris March 14, 1919

President arrives in Paris March 14, 1919

Organization of Council of Four About March 24, 1919

Organization of Council of Four Around March 24, 1919

President's public statement in regard to Fiume April 23, 1919

President's public statement about Fiume April 23, 1919

Adoption of Commission's Report on League of Nations by the Conference April 28, 1919

Adoption of the Commission's Report on the League of Nations by the Conference April 28, 1919

The Shantung Settlement April 30, 1919

The Shantung Settlement April 30, 1919

Delivery of the Peace Treaty to the German
  Plenipotentiaries May 7, 1919

Delivery of the Peace Treaty to the German
  Representatives May 7, 1919

Signing of Treaty of Versailles June 28, 1919

Signing of the Treaty of Versailles June 28, 1919

Signing of Treaty of Assistance with France June 28, 1919

Signing of the Treaty of Assistance with France June 28, 1919

Departure of President for the United States June 28, 1919

Departure of the President for the United States June 28, 1919

Departure of Mr. Lansing from Paris for United
  States July 12, 1919

Departure of Mr. Lansing from Paris for the United States July 12, 1919

Hearing of Mr. Lansing before Senate Committee on
  Foreign Relations August 6, 1919

Hearing of Mr. Lansing before the Senate Committee on
  Foreign Relations August 6, 1919

Conference of Senate Committee on Foreign Relations
  with the President at the White House August 19, 1919

Conference of the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations
  with the President at the White House August 19, 1919

Hearing of Mr. Bullitt before Senate Committee on
  Foreign Relations September 12, 1919

Hearing of Mr. Bullitt before the Senate Committee on
  Foreign Relations September 12, 1919

Return of President to Washington from tour
  of West September 28, 1919

Return of President to Washington from tour
  of West September 28, 1919

Resignation of Mr. Lansing as Secretary
  of State February 13, 1920

Resignation of Mr. Lansing as Secretary
  of State February 13, 1920

CHAPTER I

REASONS FOR WRITING A PERSONAL NARRATIVE

"While we were still in Paris, I felt, and have felt increasingly ever since, that you accepted my guidance and direction on questions with regard to which I had to instruct you only with increasing reluctance….

"While we were still in Paris, I felt, and have felt more and more ever since, that you took my guidance and direction on issues where I had to teach you only with growing hesitation….

"… I must say that it would relieve me of embarrassment, Mr. Secretary, the embarrassment of feeling your reluctance and divergence of judgment, if you would give your present office up and afford me an opportunity to select some one whose mind would more willingly go along with mine."

"... I have to say it would spare me some embarrassment, Mr. Secretary, the embarrassment of sensing your reluctance and different opinions, if you would resign from your current position and give me the chance to choose someone whose views align more closely with mine."

These words are taken from the letter which President Wilson wrote to me on February 11, 1920. On the following day I tendered my resignation as Secretary of State by a letter, in which I said:

These words are from the letter that President Wilson wrote to me on February 11, 1920. The next day, I submitted my resignation as Secretary of State in a letter, where I stated:

"Ever since January, 1919, I have been conscious of the fact that you no longer were disposed to welcome my advice in matters pertaining to the negotiations in Paris, to our foreign service, or to international affairs in general. Holding these views I would, if I had consulted my personal inclination alone, have resigned as Secretary of State and as a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace. I felt, however, that such a step might have been misinterpreted both at home and abroad, and that it was my duty to cause you no embarrassment in carrying forward the great task in which you were then engaged."

"Since January 1919, I've been aware that you were no longer inclined to accept my advice on the negotiations in Paris, our foreign service, or international affairs in general. If I had only considered my personal feelings, I would have resigned as Secretary of State and as a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace. However, I felt that such a move might be misinterpreted both domestically and internationally, and it was my responsibility not to cause you any embarrassment while you were engaged in the important work at hand."

The President was right in his impression that, "while we were still in Paris," I had accepted his guidance and direction with reluctance. It was as correct as my statement that, as early as January, 1919, I was conscious that he was no longer disposed to welcome my advice in matters pertaining to the peace negotiations at Paris.

The President was correct in his feeling that, "while we were still in Paris," I had accepted his guidance and direction reluctantly. It was just as accurate as my statement that, as early as January 1919, I realized he was no longer interested in hearing my advice about the peace negotiations in Paris.

There have been obvious reasons of propriety for my silence until now as to the divergence of judgment, the differences of opinion and the consequent breach in the relations between President Wilson and myself. They have been the subject of speculation and inference which have left uncertain the true record. The time has come when a frank account of our differences can be given publicity without a charge being made of disloyalty to the Administration in power.

There have been clear reasons for my silence until now about the disagreements, the differing opinions, and the resulting break in the relationship between President Wilson and me. These matters have been speculated on and inferred, leaving the true account unclear. The time has come for an honest account of our differences to be shared publicly without accusations of disloyalty to the current Administration.

The President, in his letter of February 11, 1920, from which the quotation is made, indicated my unwillingness to follow him in the course which he adopted at Paris, but he does not specifically point out the particular subjects as to which we were not in accord. It is unsatisfactory, if not criticizable, to leave the American people in doubt as to a disagreement between two of their official representatives upon a matter of so grave importance to the country as the negotiation of the Treaty of Versailles. They are entitled to know the truth in order that they may pass judgment upon the merits of the differences which existed. I am not willing that the present uncertainty as to the facts should continue. Possibly some may think that I have remained silent too long. If I have, it has been only from a sense of obligation to an Administration of which I was so long a member. It has not been through lack of desire to lay the record before the public.

The President, in his letter dated February 11, 1920, from which this quote is taken, indicated my reluctance to follow his approach in Paris, but he doesn’t specifically mention the issues we disagreed on. It’s unsatisfactory, if not questionable, to leave the American people unsure about the disagreement between two of their official representatives on such a crucial matter as the negotiation of the Treaty of Versailles. They deserve to know the truth so they can judge the merits of the differences that existed. I am not willing to let this uncertainty about the facts persist. Some may think I’ve stayed silent for too long. If that’s the case, it’s only because I felt obligated to an Administration of which I was a part for so long. It hasn’t been due to a lack of desire to present the record to the public.

The statements which will be made in the succeeding pages will not be entirely approved by some of my readers. In the circumstances it is far too much to expect to escape criticism. The review of facts and the comments upon them may be characterized in certain quarters as disloyal to a superior and as violative of the seal of silence which is considered generally to apply to the intercourse and communications between the President and his official advisers. Under normal conditions such a characterization would not be unjustified. But the present case is different from the usual one in which a disagreement arises between a President and a high official of his Administration.

The statements made in the following pages won't entirely please some of my readers. Given the situation, it's unrealistic to think I can avoid criticism. The review of facts and the comments on them may be seen by some as disloyal to a superior and as a violation of the expected confidentiality between the President and his official advisers. Under normal circumstances, such a view wouldn’t be unjustified. But this case is different from the usual disagreements that happen between a President and a high official in his Administration.

Mr. Wilson made our differences at Paris one of the chief grounds for stating that he would be pleased to take advantage of my expressed willingness to resign. The manifest imputation was that I had advised him wrongly and that, after he had decided to adopt a course contrary to my advice, I had continued to oppose his views and had with reluctance obeyed his instructions. Certainly no American official is in honor bound to remain silent under such an imputation which approaches a charge of faithlessness and of a secret, if not open, avoidance of duty. He has, in my judgment, the right to present the case to the American people in order that they may decide whether the imputation was justified by the facts, and whether his conduct was or was not in the circumstances in accord with the best traditions of the public service of the United States.

Mr. Wilson highlighted our differences in Paris as one of the main reasons for saying he would be happy to accept my willingness to resign. The clear implication was that I had misadvised him, and that after he chose a path different from my advice, I continued to oppose his views and reluctantly followed his instructions. No American official is obligated to stay silent under such an implication, which comes close to a charge of disloyalty and a hidden, if not obvious, neglect of duty. In my opinion, he has the right to present the situation to the American people so they can determine whether the implication was supported by the facts, and whether his actions were consistent with the best traditions of public service in the United States.

A review of this sort becomes necessarily a personal narrative, which, because of its intimate nature, is embarrassing to the writer, since he must record his own acts, words, desires, and purposes, his own views as to a course of action, and his own doubts, fears, and speculations as to the future. If there were another method of treatment which would retain the authoritative character of a personal statement, it would be a satisfaction to adopt it. But I know of none. The true story can only be told from the intimate and personal point of view. As I intend to tell the true story I offer no further apology for its personal character.

A review like this inevitably becomes a personal narrative, which, due to its intimate nature, is awkward for the writer, as he has to share his own actions, words, desires, and intentions, along with his own thoughts about a course of action and his doubts, fears, and speculations about the future. If there were another way to approach this that would keep the authoritative feel of a personal statement, I would be happy to use it. But I don't know of any. The real story can only be told from a personal and intimate perspective. As I'm about to share the real story, I won’t offer any further apology for its personal nature.

Before beginning a recital of the relations existing between President Wilson and myself during the Paris Conference, I wish to state, and to emphasize the statement, that I was never for a moment unmindful that the Constitution of the United States confides to the President the absolute right of conducting the foreign relations of the Republic, and that it is the duty of a Commissioner to follow the President's instructions in the negotiation of a treaty. Many Americans, some of whom are national legislators and solicitous about the Constitution, seem to have ignored or to have forgotten this delegation of exclusive authority, with the result that they have condemned the President in intemperate language for exercising this executive right. As to the wisdom of the way in which Mr. Wilson exercised it in directing the negotiations at Paris individual opinions may differ, but as to the legality of his conduct there ought to be but one mind. From first to last he acted entirely within his constitutional powers as President of the United States.

Before I start discussing the relationship between President Wilson and me during the Paris Conference, I want to make it clear that I was always aware that the Constitution of the United States gives the President the sole authority to manage the country's foreign relations, and it's the responsibility of a Commissioner to follow the President's directions while negotiating a treaty. Many Americans, including some lawmakers who care about the Constitution, seem to have overlooked or forgotten this exclusive authority, leading them to harshly criticize the President for exercising this right. Opinions may vary on whether Mr. Wilson's approach to directing the negotiations in Paris was wise, but there should be a unanimous agreement on the legality of his actions. From start to finish, he operated fully within his constitutional rights as President of the United States.

The duties of a diplomatic representative commissioned by the President and given full powers to negotiate a treaty are, in addition to the formal carrying out of his instructions, twofold, namely, to advise the President during the negotiation of his views as to the wise course to be adopted, and to prevent the President, in so far as possible, from taking any step in the proceedings which may impair the rights of his country or may be injurious to its interests. These duties, in my opinion, are equally imperative whether the President directs the negotiations through written instructions issuing from the White House or conducts them in person. For an American plenipotentiary to remain silent, and by his silence to give the impression that he approves a course of action which he in fact believes to be wrong in principle or contrary to good policy, constitutes a failure to perform his full duty to the President and to the country. It is his duty to speak and to speak frankly and plainly.

The responsibilities of a diplomatic representative appointed by the President and given full authority to negotiate a treaty include, besides following the formal instructions, two main tasks: to advise the President during negotiations about the best course of action, and to protect the interests of the country as much as possible from any steps the President might take that could compromise its rights or harm its interests. In my view, these responsibilities are equally important whether the President communicates the negotiations through written instructions from the White House or engages in them personally. For an American representative to stay silent and, by doing so, create the impression that he supports a course of action that he actually believes is wrong or contrary to good policy is a failure to fully meet his obligations to the President and the nation. It is his duty to speak up and to do so clearly and honestly.

With this conception of the obligations of a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace, obligations which were the more compelling in my case because of my official position as Secretary of State, I felt it incumbent upon me to offer advice to the President whenever it seemed necessary to me to consider the adoption of a line of action in regard to the negotiations, and particularly so when the indications were that the President purposed to reach a decision which seemed to me unwise or impolitic. Though from the first I felt that my suggestions were received with coldness and my criticisms with disfavor, because they did not conform to the President's wishes and intentions, I persevered in my efforts to induce him to abandon in some cases or to modify in others a course which would in my judgment be a violation of principle or a mistake in policy. It seemed to me that duty demanded this, and that, whatever the consequences might be, I ought not to give tacit assent to that which I believed wrong or even injudicious.

With this understanding of the obligations of a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace, which were even more pressing for me due to my role as Secretary of State, I felt it was important to advise the President whenever I thought it necessary to consider a course of action regarding the negotiations. This was especially true when I sensed that the President was leaning toward making a decision that I believed was unwise or unstrategic. From the start, I felt my suggestions were met with indifference and my criticisms were unwelcome because they didn’t align with the President’s intentions. However, I continued to try to persuade him to reconsider or adjust a path that I felt would compromise our principles or be a policy error. I believed it was my duty to do so, and that regardless of the outcomes, I couldn't silently agree to actions that I thought were wrong or imprudent.

The principal subjects, concerning which President Wilson and I were in marked disagreement, were the following: His presence in Paris during the peace negotiations and especially his presence there as a delegate to the Peace Conference; the fundamental principles of the constitution and functions of a League of Nations as proposed or advocated by him; the form of the organic act, known as the "Covenant," its elaborate character and its inclusion in the treaty restoring a state of peace; the treaty of defensive alliance with France; the necessity for a definite programme which the American Commissioners could follow in carrying on the negotiations; the employment of private interviews and confidential agreements in reaching settlements, a practice which gave color to the charge of "secret diplomacy"; and, lastly, the admission of the Japanese claims to possession of German treaty rights at Kiao-Chau and in the Province of Shantung.

The main issues where President Wilson and I strongly disagreed were the following: His presence in Paris during the peace talks, especially as a delegate at the Peace Conference; the core principles of the League of Nations he proposed or supported; the structure of the "Covenant," its detailed nature, and its inclusion in the treaty to restore peace; the treaty of mutual defense with France; the need for a clear plan for the American Commissioners to follow during the negotiations; the use of private meetings and confidential agreements to reach decisions, a practice that contributed to accusations of "secret diplomacy"; and finally, the acceptance of Japan's claims to German treaty rights at Kiao-Chau and in Shantung Province.

Of these seven subjects of difference the most important were those relating to the League of Nations and the Covenant, though our opposite views as to Shantung were more generally known and more frequently the subject of public comment. While chief consideration will be given to the differences regarding the League and the Covenant, the record would be incomplete if the other subjects were omitted. In fact nearly all of these matters of difference are more or less interwoven and have a collateral, if not a direct, bearing upon one another. They all contributed in affecting the attitude of President Wilson toward the advice that I felt it my duty to volunteer, an attitude which was increasingly impatient of unsolicited criticism and suggestion and which resulted at last in the correspondence of February, 1920, that ended with the acceptance of my resignation as Secretary of State.

Of these seven points of disagreement, the most significant were those related to the League of Nations and the Covenant, though our differing views on Shantung were more widely known and often discussed publicly. While the primary focus will be on the differences concerning the League and the Covenant, it would be incomplete to neglect the other subjects. In fact, nearly all of these disagreements are interrelated and have a connected, if not direct, impact on each other. They all influenced President Wilson's response to the advice I felt compelled to offer, an attitude that grew increasingly impatient with unsolicited criticism and suggestions, ultimately leading to the correspondence of February 1920, which concluded with my resignation as Secretary of State.

The review of these subjects will be, so far as it is possible, treated in chronological order, because, as the matters of difference increased in number, they gave emphasis to the divergence of judgment which existed between the President and myself. The effect was cumulative, and tended not only to widen the breach, but to make less and less possible a restoration of our former relations. It was my personal desire to support the President's views concerning the negotiations at Paris, but, when in order to do so it became necessary to deny a settled conviction and to suppress a conception of the true principle or the wise policy to be followed, I could not do it and feel that to give support under such conditions accorded with true loyalty to the President of the United States.

The review of these topics will be, as much as possible, organized chronologically because, as the number of differences grew, they highlighted the gap in judgment between the President and me. The effect was cumulative and not only widened the divide but also made it increasingly difficult to restore our previous relationship. I personally wanted to support the President's views on the negotiations in Paris, but when doing so required denying a firmly held belief and suppressing an understanding of the true principles or wise policies to be followed, I couldn't go along with it. I felt that supporting him under those circumstances would not be true loyalty to the President of the United States.

It was in this spirit that my advice was given and my suggestions were made, though in doing so I believed it justifiable to conform as far as it was possible to the expressed views of Mr. Wilson, or to what seemed to be his views, concerning less important matters and to concentrate on those which seemed vital. I went in fact as far as I could in adopting his views in the hope that my advice would be less unpalatable and would, as a consequence, receive more sympathetic consideration. Believing that I understood the President's temperament, success in an attempt to change his views seemed to lie in moderation and in partial approval of his purpose rather than in bluntly arguing that it was wholly wrong and should be abandoned. This method of approach, which seemed the expedient one at the time, weakened, in some instances at least, the criticisms and objections which I made. It is very possible that even in this diluted form my views were credited with wrong motives by the President so that he suspected my purpose. It is to be hoped that this was the true explanation of Mr. Wilson's attitude of mind, for the alternative forces a conclusion as to the cause for his resentful reception of honest differences of opinion, which no one, who admires his many sterling qualities and great attainments, will willingly accept.

My advice and suggestions were given in this spirit, although I believed it was reasonable to align as much as possible with what Mr. Wilson expressed or seemed to express about less critical issues and focus on what appeared to be essential. I tried as much as I could to adopt his views, hoping that my advice would be more acceptable and, as a result, would receive more sympathetic consideration. Thinking I understood the President's temperament, I believed that success in trying to change his views lay in moderation and in showing partial support for his purpose rather than outright arguing that it was completely wrong and should be discarded. This approach, which seemed practical at the time, diminished, in some cases at least, the criticisms and objections I made. It’s quite possible that even in this softened form, the President attributed my views to bad motives and questioned my intent. Hopefully, that was the true reason behind Mr. Wilson's mindset, because the alternative leads to a conclusion about the cause of his resentful response to honest disagreements, which no one who appreciates his many admirable qualities and significant achievements would want to accept.

Whatever the cause of the President's attitude toward the opinions which I expressed on the subjects concerning which our views were at variance—and I prefer to assume that the cause was a misapprehension of my reasons for giving them—the result was that he was disposed to give them little weight. The impression made was that he was irritated by opposition to his views, however moderately urged, and that he did not like to have his judgment questioned even in a friendly way. It is, of course, possible that this is not a true estimate of the President's feelings. It may do him an injustice. But his manner of meeting criticism and his disposition to ignore opposition can hardly be interpreted in any other way.

Whatever the reason for the President's reaction to the opinions I expressed on the topics where we disagreed—and I prefer to think it was just a misunderstanding of my reasons for sharing them—the outcome was that he seemed to dismiss them without much consideration. The overall impression was that he was annoyed by any challenge to his views, no matter how gently it was put, and that he wasn't comfortable having his judgment questioned, even in a friendly manner. Of course, it's possible that this isn't an accurate reflection of the President's feelings. It might be unfair to him. However, his way of handling criticism and his tendency to overlook opposition can hardly be interpreted in any other way.

There is the alternative possibility that Mr. Wilson was convinced that, after he had given a subject mature consideration and reached a decision, his judgment was right or at least better than that of any adviser. A conviction of this nature, if it existed, would naturally have caused him to feel impatient with any one who attempted to controvert his decisions and would tend to make him believe that improper motives induced the opposition or criticism. This alternative, which is based of necessity on a presumption as to the temperament of Mr. Wilson that an unprejudiced and cautious student of personality would hesitate to adopt, I mention only because there were many who believed it to be the correct explanation of his attitude. In view of my intimate relations with the President prior to the Paris Conference I feel that in justice to him I should say that he did not, except on rare occasions, resent criticism of a proposed course of action, and, while he seemed in a measure changed after departing from the United States in December, 1918, I do not think that the change was sufficient to justify the presumption of self-assurance which it would be necessary to adopt if the alternative possibility is considered to furnish the better explanation.

There’s another possibility that Mr. Wilson believed that, after he had thoroughly considered a topic and made a decision, his judgment was right or at least better than any adviser’s. If this belief existed, it would naturally have made him impatient with anyone who tried to contradict his decisions and might have led him to think that improper motives were behind the opposition or criticism. I mention this alternative, which relies on assumptions about Mr. Wilson’s temperament that a fair and cautious observer of behavior would hesitate to embrace, only because many thought it was the correct explanation for his attitude. Given my close relationship with the President before the Paris Conference, I feel it’s fair to say that he did not, except in rare instances, resent challenges to his proposed actions. While he seemed somewhat different after leaving the United States in December 1918, I don’t believe this change was significant enough to support the idea of self-assurance that would be necessary if we consider this alternative explanation as the better one.

It is, however, natural, considering what occurred at Paris, to search out the reason or reasons for the President's evident unwillingness to listen to advice when he did not solicit it, and for his failure to take all the American Commissioners into his confidence. But to attempt to dissect the mentality and to analyze the intellectual processes of Woodrow Wilson is not my purpose. It would only invite discussion and controversy as to the truth of the premises and the accuracy of the deductions reached. The facts will be presented and to an extent the impressions made upon me at the time will be reviewed, but impressions of that character which are not the result of comparison with subsequent events and of mature deliberation are not always justified. They may later prove to be partially or wholly wrong. They have the value, nevertheless, of explaining in many cases why I did or did not do certain things, and of disclosing the state of mind that in a measure determined my conduct which without this recital of contemporaneous impressions might mystify one familiar with what afterwards took place. The notes, letters, and memoranda which are quoted in the succeeding pages, as well as the opinions and beliefs held at the time (of which, in accordance with a practice of years, I kept a record supplementing my daily journal of events), should be weighed and measured by the situation which existed when they were written and not alone in the light of the complete review of the proceedings. In forming an opinion as to my differences with the President it should be the reader's endeavor to place himself in my position at the time and not judge them solely by the results of the negotiations at Paris. It comes to this: Was I justified then? Am I justified now? If those questions are answered impartially and without prejudice, there is nothing further that I would ask of the reader.

It’s natural, considering what happened in Paris, to look for the reasons behind the President's clear reluctance to hear advice when he didn’t ask for it, and for his failure to fully involve all the American Commissioners. However, my goal isn’t to dissect Woodrow Wilson's mindset or analyze his thought processes. That would only spark debate about the truth of the assumptions and the accuracy of the conclusions drawn. I’ll present the facts and share some of the impressions I had at the time, but those impressions, which aren't shaped by later events or careful thought, may not always be accurate. They could turn out to be partly or completely wrong. Still, they help explain why I did or didn’t do certain things and reveal the mindset that influenced my actions. Without sharing these immediate impressions, it might confuse someone familiar with what happened later. The notes, letters, and memoranda quoted in the following pages, along with the opinions and beliefs I recorded in my daily journal, should be considered in the context of the situation at the time they were written, not just through the lens of the final outcomes in Paris. When forming an opinion about my disagreements with the President, the reader should try to see things from my perspective then, rather than judging based solely on the negotiations' results. It boils down to this: Was I justified back then? Am I justified now? If those questions are answered fairly and without bias, there's nothing more I would ask of the reader.

CHAPTER II

MR. WILSON'S PRESENCE AT THE PEACE CONFERENCE

Early in October, 1918, it required no prophetic vision to perceive that the World War would come to an end in the near future. Austria-Hungary, acting with the full approval of the German Government, had made overtures for peace, and Bulgaria, recognizing the futility of further struggle, had signed an armistice which amounted to an unconditional surrender. These events were soon followed by the collapse of Turkish resistance and by the German proposals which resulted in the armistice which went into effect on November 11, 1918.

Early in October 1918, it was clear to everyone that World War I was about to end. Austria-Hungary, fully backed by the German Government, had reached out for peace, and Bulgaria, realizing that further fighting was pointless, had signed an armistice that was basically a complete surrender. Shortly after, Turkish resistance fell apart, and Germany put forward proposals that led to the armistice that took effect on November 11, 1918.

In view of the importance of the conditions of the armistice with Germany and their relation to the terms of peace to be later negotiated, the President considered it essential to have an American member added to the Supreme War Council, which then consisted of M. Clemenceau, Mr. Lloyd George, and Signor Orlando, the premiers of the three Allied Powers. He selected Colonel Edward M. House for this important post and named him a Special Commissioner to represent him personally. Colonel House with a corps of secretaries and assistants sailed from New York on October 17, en route for Paris where the Supreme War Council was in session.

Considering the importance of the armistice conditions with Germany and how they relate to the peace terms to be negotiated later, the President felt it was crucial to add an American member to the Supreme War Council, which at the time included M. Clemenceau, Mr. Lloyd George, and Signor Orlando, the leaders of the three Allied Powers. He chose Colonel Edward M. House for this significant role and appointed him as a Special Commissioner to represent him personally. Colonel House, along with a team of secretaries and assistants, set sail from New York on October 17, en route to Paris where the Supreme War Council was meeting.

Three days before his departure the Colonel was in Washington and we had two long conferences with the President regarding the correspondence with Germany and with the Allies relating to a cessation of hostilities, during which we discussed the position which the United States should take as to the terms of the armistice and the bases of peace which should be incorporated in the document.

Three days before he left, the Colonel was in Washington, and we had two lengthy meetings with the President about the correspondence with Germany and the Allies concerning a ceasefire. During these discussions, we talked about what stance the United States should adopt regarding the terms of the armistice and the foundations of peace that should be included in the document.

It was after one of these conferences that Colonel House informed me that the President had decided to name him (the Colonel) and me as two of the American plenipotentiaries to the Peace Conference, and that the President was considering attending the Conference and in person directing the negotiations. This latter intention of Mr. Wilson surprised and disturbed me, and I expressed the hope that the President's mind was not made up, as I believed that if he gave more consideration to the project he would abandon it, since it was manifest that his influence over the negotiations would be much greater if he remained in Washington and issued instructions to his representatives in the Conference. Colonel House did not say that he agreed with my judgment in this matter, though he did not openly disagree with it. However, I drew the conclusion, though without actual knowledge, that he approved of the President's purpose, and, possibly, had encouraged him to become an actual participant in the preliminary conferences.

It was after one of these meetings that Colonel House told me the President had chosen both him and me as the American representatives for the Peace Conference, and that the President was thinking about attending the Conference himself to lead the negotiations. This plan from Mr. Wilson surprised and worried me, and I hoped that the President hadn't made his mind up yet, since I believed that if he thought it over more, he would change his mind. It was clear that his influence over the negotiations would be much stronger if he stayed in Washington and gave instructions to his representatives at the Conference. Colonel House didn’t say he agreed with my opinion, but he didn’t openly disagree either. Still, I inferred, though I didn’t know for sure, that he supported the President's intent and might have even encouraged him to be an actual participant in the early discussions.

The President's idea of attending the Peace Conference was not a new one. Though I cannot recollect the source of my information, I know that in December, 1916, when it will be remembered Mr. Wilson was endeavoring to induce the belligerents to state their objects in the war and to enter into a conference looking toward peace, he had an idea that he might, as a friend of both parties, preside over such a conference and exert his personal influence to bring the belligerents into agreement. A service of this sort undoubtedly appealed to the President's humanitarian instinct and to his earnest desire to end the devastating war, while the novelty of the position in which he would be placed would not have been displeasing to one who in his public career seemed to find satisfaction in departing from the established paths marked out by custom and usage.

The President's idea of going to the Peace Conference wasn't new. Although I can't remember where I got my information, I know that in December 1916, when Mr. Wilson was trying to get the warring parties to state their aims in the war and come together for peace talks, he thought about possibly presiding over such a conference as a friend to both sides. He wanted to use his personal influence to help bring them to an agreement. This kind of role definitely appealed to the President's humanitarian instincts and his genuine desire to end the destructive war. Plus, the uniqueness of the position would likely have been satisfying for someone whose public career seemed to thrive on breaking away from established ways of doing things.

When, however, the attempt at mediation failed and when six weeks later, on February 1, 1917, the German Government renewed indiscriminate submarine warfare resulting in the severance of diplomatic relations between the United States and Germany, President Wilson continued to cherish the hope that he might yet assume the role of mediator. He even went so far as to prepare a draft of the bases of peace, which he purposed to submit to the belligerents if they could be induced to meet in conference. I cannot conceive how he could have expected to bring this about in view of the elation of the Allies at the dismissal of Count von Bernstorff and the seeming certainty that the United States would declare war against Germany if the latter persisted in her ruthless sinking of American merchant vessels. But I know, in spite of the logic of the situation, that he expected or at least hoped to succeed in his mediatory programme and made ready to play his part in the negotiation of a peace.

When the attempt at mediation failed and six weeks later, on February 1, 1917, the German government started unrestricted submarine warfare again, which led to the breaking off of diplomatic relations between the United States and Germany, President Wilson still held onto the hope that he could take on the role of mediator. He even went so far as to draft a peace proposal that he planned to present to the warring parties if they could be persuaded to meet for discussions. I can’t understand how he thought this was possible given the Allies' excitement over Count von Bernstorff's dismissal and the apparent certainty that the United States would declare war on Germany if it continued its ruthless attacks on American merchant ships. But I know that, despite the obvious logic of the situation, he expected or at least hoped to succeed in his mediation efforts and was prepared to play his role in the peace negotiations.

From the time that Congress declared that a state of war existed between the United States and the Imperial German Government up to the autumn of 1918, when the Central Alliance made overtures to end the war, the President made no attempt so far as I am aware to enter upon peace negotiations with the enemy nations. In fact he showed a disposition to reject all peace proposals. He appears to have reached the conclusion that the defeat of Germany and her allies was essential before permanent peace could be restored. At all events, he took no steps to bring the belligerents together until a military decision had been practically reached. He did, however, on January 8,1918, lay down his famous "Fourteen Points," which he supplemented with certain declarations in "subsequent addresses," thus proclaiming his ideas as to the proper bases of peace when the time should come to negotiate.

From the time Congress declared that a state of war existed between the United States and the Imperial German Government until the autumn of 1918, when the Central Alliance offered to end the war, the President did not make any attempts, as far as I know, to start peace negotiations with the enemy nations. In fact, he seemed willing to dismiss all peace proposals. He appeared to believe that defeating Germany and her allies was necessary before lasting peace could be established. In any case, he took no steps to bring the warring sides together until a military decision was almost made. However, on January 8, 1918, he presented his famous "Fourteen Points," which he followed up with some statements in "subsequent addresses," announcing his ideas on the appropriate foundations for peace when the time came to negotiate.

Meanwhile, in anticipation of the final triumph of the armies of the Allied and Associated Powers, the President, in the spring of 1917, directed the organization, under the Department of State, of a body of experts to collect data and prepare monographs, charts, and maps, covering all historical, territorial, economic, and legal subjects which would probably arise in the negotiation of a treaty of peace. This Commission of Inquiry, as it was called, had its offices in New York and was under Colonel House so far as the selection of its members was concerned. The nominal head of the Commission was Dr. Mezes, President of the College of the City of New York and a brother-in-law of Colonel House, though the actual and efficient executive head was Dr. Isaiah Bowman, Director of the American Geographical Society. The plans of organization, the outline of work, and the proposed expenditures for the maintenance of the Commission were submitted to me as Secretary of State. I examined them and, after several conferences with Dr. Mezes, approved them and recommended to the President that he allot the funds necessary to carry out the programme.

Meanwhile, anticipating the success of the Allied and Associated Powers, the President, in the spring of 1917, instructed the Department of State to set up a team of experts to gather data and create reports, charts, and maps on all historical, territorial, economic, and legal topics that might come up during peace treaty negotiations. This team, known as the Commission of Inquiry, was based in New York and was overseen by Colonel House in terms of member selection. The nominal leader of the Commission was Dr. Mezes, President of the College of the City of New York and Colonel House's brother-in-law, while the actual and effective executive leader was Dr. Isaiah Bowman, Director of the American Geographical Society. The plans for organization, the work outline, and the proposed budget for maintaining the Commission were presented to me as Secretary of State. I reviewed them and, after several meetings with Dr. Mezes, approved them and suggested to the President that he allocate the necessary funds to implement the program.

In addition to the subjects which were dealt with by this excellent corps of students and experts, whose work was of the highest order, the creation of some sort of an international association to prevent wars in the future received special attention from the President as it did from Americans of prominence not connected with the Government. It caused considerable discussion in the press and many schemes were proposed and pamphlets written on the subject. To organize such an association became a generally recognized object to be attained in the negotiation of the peace which would end the World War; and there can be no doubt that the President believed more and more in the vital necessity of forming an effective organization of the nations to preserve peace in the future and make another great war impossible.

In addition to the topics covered by this exceptional group of students and experts, whose work was top-notch, the idea of creating an international association to prevent future wars received significant attention from the President, as well as from other prominent Americans not affiliated with the Government. This sparked a lot of discussion in the press, leading to various proposals and pamphlets on the topic. Organizing such an association became a widely accepted goal during the negotiations for the peace that would conclude the World War; and it is clear that the President increasingly believed in the urgent need to establish an effective organization of nations to maintain peace in the future and make another major war impossible.

The idea of being present and taking an active part in formulating the terms of peace had, in my opinion, never been abandoned by President Wilson, although it had remained dormant while the result of the conflict was uncertain. When, however, in early October, 1918, there could no longer be any doubt that the end of the war was approaching, the President appears to have revived the idea and to have decided, if possible, to carry out the purpose which he had so long cherished. He seemed to have failed to appreciate, or, if he did appreciate, to have ignored the fact that the conditions were wholly different in October, 1918, from what they were in December, 1916.

The concept of being involved and actively participating in shaping the peace terms had, in my view, never truly left President Wilson's mind, even though it was on the back burner while the outcome of the war was still in question. However, when early October 1918 rolled around and it became clear that the war was nearing its end, the President seemed to rekindle this idea and decided, if possible, to pursue the goal he had held onto for so long. He appeared to overlook, or maybe chose to ignore, the fact that the circumstances in October 1918 were completely different from what they had been in December 1916.

In December, 1916, the United States was a neutral nation, and the President, in a spirit of mutual friendliness, which was real and not assumed, was seeking to bring the warring powers together in conference looking toward the negotiation of "a peace without victory." In the event that he was able to persuade them to meet, his presence at the conference as a pacificator and probably as the presiding officer would not improbably have been in the interests of peace, because, as the executive head of the greatest of the neutral nations of the world and as the impartial friend of both parties, his personal influence would presumably have been very great in preventing a rupture in the negotiations and in inducing the parties to act in a spirit of conciliation and compromise.

In December 1916, the United States was a neutral country, and the President, genuinely wanting to help, was trying to bring the warring nations together for talks aimed at securing "a peace without victory." If he managed to convince them to meet, he might have served as a mediator and possibly as the chairperson of the conference, which would likely have been beneficial for peace. As the leader of the largest neutral nation in the world and as a fair friend to both sides, his personal influence would probably have been significant in maintaining the peace talks and encouraging a spirit of understanding and compromise among the parties.

In October, 1918, however, the United States was a belligerent. Its national interests were involved; its armies were in conflict with the Germans on the soil of France; its naval vessels were patrolling the Atlantic; and the American people, bitterly hostile, were demanding vengeance on the Governments and peoples of the Central Powers, particularly those of Germany. President Wilson, it is true, had endeavored with a measure of success to maintain the position of an unbiased arbiter in the discussions leading up to the armistice of November 11, and Germany undoubtedly looked to him as the one hope of checking the spirit of revenge which animated the Allied Powers in view of all that they had suffered at the hands of the Germans. It is probable too that the Allies recognized that Mr. Wilson was entitled to be satisfied as to the terms of peace since American man power and American resources had turned the scale against Germany and made victory a certainty. The President, in fact, dominated the situation. If he remained in Washington and carried on the negotiations through his Commissioners, he would in all probability retain his superior place and be able to dictate such terms of peace as he considered just. But, if he did as he purposed doing and attended the Peace Conference, he would lose the unique position which he held and would have to submit to the combined will of his foreign colleagues becoming a prey to intrigue and to the impulses arising from their hatred for the vanquished nations.

In October 1918, however, the United States was actively involved in the war. Its national interests were at stake; its troops were engaged in combat with the Germans on French soil; its naval ships were patrolling the Atlantic; and the American public, filled with bitterness, was demanding revenge against the governments and people of the Central Powers, especially Germany. President Wilson had tried, with some success, to act as an impartial mediator in the discussions that led to the armistice on November 11, and Germany likely saw him as their only hope to temper the revengeful spirit of the Allied Powers in light of all they had endured at the hands of the Germans. It’s also likely that the Allies realized Mr. Wilson had a rightful claim to influence the peace terms, given that American manpower and resources had tipped the balance against Germany and ensured victory. In reality, the President was in control of the situation. If he stayed in Washington and continued the negotiations through his Commissioners, he would probably maintain his leading position and be able to dictate the terms of peace that he deemed fair. But if he followed through with his plan to attend the Peace Conference, he would lose his unique position and have to yield to the collective will of his foreign colleagues, becoming vulnerable to their intrigue and the resentment they felt toward the defeated nations.

A practical view of the situation so clearly pointed to the unwisdom of the President's personal participation in the peace negotiations that a very probable explanation for his determination to be present at the Conference is the assumption that the idea had become so firmly embedded in his mind that nothing could dislodge it or divert him from his purpose. How far the spectacular feature of a President crossing the ocean to control in person the making of peace appealed to him I do not know. It may have been the deciding factor. It may have had no effect at all. How far the belief that a just peace could only be secured by the exercise of his personal influence over the delegates I cannot say. How far he doubted the ability of the men whom he proposed to name as plenipotentiaries is wholly speculative. Whatever plausible reason may be given, the true reason will probably never be known.

A practical look at the situation clearly highlighted the foolishness of the President's personal involvement in the peace negotiations. A likely explanation for his determination to attend the Conference is that the idea was so deeply ingrained in his mind that nothing could change it or distract him from his goal. I’m not sure how much the dramatic image of a President traveling across the ocean to oversee the peace process personally appealed to him. It could have been a key factor, or it might not have mattered at all. I can’t say how much he believed that a fair peace could only be achieved through his personal influence on the delegates. Similarly, it’s all speculation regarding how much he doubted the capability of the men he planned to appoint as representatives. Whatever reasonable explanations might be offered, the real reason will likely remain unknown.

Not appreciating, at the time that Colonel House informed me of the President's plan to be present at the Conference, that the matter had gone as far as it had, and feeling very strongly that it would be a grave mistake for the President to take part in person in the negotiations, I felt it to be my duty, as his official adviser in foreign affairs and as one desirous to have him adopt a wise course, to state plainly to him my views. It was with hesitation that I did this because the consequence of the non-attendance of the President would be to make me the head of the American Peace Commission at Paris. There was the danger that my motive in opposing the President's attending the Conference would be misconstrued and that I might be suspected of acting from self-interest rather than from a sense of loyalty to my chief. When, however, the armistice went into effect and the time arrived for completing the personnel of the American Commission, I determined that I ought not to remain silent.

Not realizing at the time when Colonel House told me about the President's plan to attend the Conference that it had progressed so far, I strongly believed it would be a serious mistake for the President to be directly involved in the negotiations. As his official adviser on foreign affairs and someone who wanted him to make a smart decision, I felt it was my duty to express my views clearly to him. I hesitated because if the President didn't attend, I would become the head of the American Peace Commission in Paris. There was a risk that my reasons for opposing the President's attendance could be misunderstood, and I might be seen as acting out of self-interest instead of loyalty to my leader. However, when the armistice took effect and the time came to finalize the members of the American Commission, I realized I couldn't stay quiet.

The day after the cessation of hostilities, that is, on November 12, I made the following note:

The day after the fighting stopped, which was November 12, I made the following note:

"I had a conference this noon with the President at the White House in relation to the Peace Conference. I told him frankly that I thought the plan for him to attend was unwise and would be a mistake. I said that I felt embarrassed in speaking to him about it because it would leave me at the head of the delegation, and I hoped that he understood that I spoke only out of a sense of duty. I pointed out that he held at present a dominant position in the world, which I was afraid he would lose if he went into conference with the foreign statesmen; that he could practically dictate the terms of peace if he held aloof; that he would be criticized severely in this country for leaving at a time when Congress particularly needed his guidance; and that he would be greatly embarrassed in directing domestic affairs from overseas."

"I had a meeting this afternoon with the President at the White House regarding the Peace Conference. I told him honestly that I thought it was unwise for him to attend and that it would be a mistake. I admitted I felt awkward bringing it up because it would leave me leading the delegation, and I hoped he understood I was speaking from a sense of duty. I pointed out that he currently held a powerful position in the world, which I was worried he would lose if he met with the foreign leaders; that he could essentially dictate the terms of peace if he stayed away; that he would face strong criticism in this country for leaving at a time when Congress especially needed his leadership; and that it would be very difficult for him to manage domestic issues from abroad."

I also recorded as significant that the President listened to my remarks without comment and turned the conversation into other channels.

I also noted that the President listened to what I said without responding and shifted the conversation to other topics.

For a week after this interview I heard nothing from the President on the subject, though the fact that no steps were taken to prepare written instructions for the American Commissioners convinced me that he intended to follow his original intention. My fears were confirmed. On the evening of Monday, November 18, the President came to my residence and told me that he had finally decided to go to the Peace Conference and that he had given out to the press an announcement to that effect. In view of the publicity given to his decision it would have been futile to have attempted to dissuade him from his purpose. He knew my opinion and that it was contrary to his.

For a week after this interview, I didn’t hear from the President about it, but the lack of any preparation for written instructions for the American Commissioners made me sure he wanted to stick with his original plan. My worries were proven right. On the evening of Monday, November 18, the President came to my home and told me he had finally decided to attend the Peace Conference and that he had released a public announcement about it. Given the attention his decision had received, trying to change his mind would have been pointless. He knew my views, and he knew they were different from his.

After the President departed I made a note of the interview, in which among other things I wrote:

After the President left, I took note of the interview, in which I wrote, among other things:

"I am convinced that he is making one of the greatest mistakes of his career and will imperil his reputation. I may be in error and hope that I am, but I prophesy trouble in Paris and worse than trouble here. I believe the President's place is here in America."

"I truly believe he is making one of the biggest mistakes of his career and jeopardizing his reputation. I might be wrong and hope that I am, but I foresee trouble in Paris and even worse trouble here. I think the President should be here in America."

Whether the decision of Mr. Wilson was wise and whether my prophecy was unfulfilled, I leave to the judgment of others. His visit to Europe and its consequences are facts of history. It should be understood that the incident is not referred to here to justify my views or to prove that the President was wrong in what he did. The reference is made solely because it shows that at the very outset there was a decided divergence of judgment between us in regard to the peace negotiations.

Whether Mr. Wilson's decision was smart and whether my prediction didn't come true is up to others to decide. His trip to Europe and what followed are historical facts. It's important to note that I'm not mentioning this to validate my opinions or to prove that the President was wrong in his actions. I'm bringing it up simply because it highlights that right from the beginning, there was a clear difference in our views regarding the peace talks.

While this difference of opinion apparently in no way affected our cordial relations, I cannot but feel, in reviewing this period of our intercourse, that my open opposition to his attending the Conference was considered by the President to be an unwarranted meddling with his personal affairs and was none of my business. It was, I believe, the beginning of his loss of confidence in my judgment and advice, which became increasingly marked during the Paris negotiations. At the time, however, I did not realize that my honest opinion affected the President in the way which I now believe that it did. It had always been my practice as Secretary of State to speak to him with candor and to disagree with him whenever I thought he was reaching a wrong decision in regard to any matter pertaining to foreign affairs. There was a general belief that Mr. Wilson was not open-minded and that he was quick to resent any opposition however well founded. I had not found him so during the years we had been associated. Except in a few instances he listened with consideration to arguments and apparently endeavored to value them correctly. If, however, the matter related even remotely to his personal conduct he seemed unwilling to debate the question. My conclusion is that he considered his going to the Peace Conference was his affair solely and that he viewed my objections as a direct criticism of him personally for thinking of going. He may, too, have felt that my opposition arose from a selfish desire to become the head of the American Commission. From that time forward any suggestion or advice volunteered by me was seemingly viewed with suspicion. It was, however, long after this incident that I began to feel that the President was imputing to me improper motives and crediting me with disloyalty to him personally, an attitude which was as unwarranted as it was unjust.

While this difference of opinion didn’t seem to impact our friendly relations, I can’t help but feel, looking back on this time of our interactions, that my open opposition to him attending the Conference was seen by the President as unwarranted interference in his personal matters and not my concern. I believe this was the start of his growing doubts about my judgment and advice, which became more pronounced during the Paris negotiations. At the time, though, I didn’t realize that my honest opinion affected the President in the way I now believe it did. As Secretary of State, I had always made it a point to speak to him openly and disagree whenever I thought he was making the wrong call on foreign affairs. There was a common belief that Mr. Wilson was not open-minded and was quick to take offense at any opposition, no matter how justified. I hadn’t found him to be that way during our years together. Except for a few instances, he listened thoughtfully to arguments and seemed to try to assess them fairly. However, if the issue even slightly related to his personal actions, he appeared unwilling to discuss it. My conclusion is that he viewed his participation in the Peace Conference as solely his business and saw my objections as a direct criticism of him for considering it. He might have also thought that my opposition stemmed from a selfish desire to lead the American Commission. From that moment onward, any suggestion or advice I offered seemed to be met with suspicion. However, it was long after this incident that I began to feel that the President was attributing improper motives to me and accusing me of being disloyal to him personally, an attitude that was as unfounded as it was unfair.

The President having determined to go to Paris, it seemed almost useless to urge him not to become a delegate in view of the fact that he had named but four Commissioners, although it had been arranged that the Great Powers should each have five delegates in the Conference. This clearly indicated that the President was at least considering sitting as the fifth member of the American group. At the same time it seemed that, if he did not take his place in the Conference as a delegate, he might retain in a measure his superior place of influence even though he was in Paris. Four days after the Commission landed at Brest I had a long conference with Colonel House on matters pertaining to the approaching negotiations, during which he informed me that there was a determined effort being made by the European statesmen to induce the President to sit at the peace table and that he was afraid that the President was disposed to accede to their wishes. This information indicated that, while the President had come to Paris prepared to act as a delegate, he had, after discussing the subject with the Colonel and possibly with others, become doubtful as to the wisdom of doing so, but that through the pressure of his foreign colleagues he was turning again to the favorable view of personal participation which he had held before he left the United States.

The President decided to go to Paris, so it seemed almost pointless to urge him not to become a delegate since he had only named four Commissioners, even though it was agreed that each of the Great Powers would have five delegates in the Conference. This clearly showed that the President was at least thinking about stepping in as the fifth member of the American group. At the same time, it seemed that if he didn’t take his place in the Conference as a delegate, he might still maintain some of his influence even while in Paris. Four days after the Commission arrived at Brest, I had a long meeting with Colonel House about the upcoming negotiations, during which he told me that there was a strong push from European leaders to convince the President to join the peace talks, and he was worried that the President was leaning towards agreeing with them. This suggested that while the President had come to Paris ready to act as a delegate, after talking it over with the Colonel and probably others, he was starting to doubt whether that was the right move. However, due to the pressure from his foreign counterparts, he was drifting back to the positive view of participating in person that he held before leaving the United States.

In my conversation with Colonel House I told him my reasons for opposing the President's taking an active part in the Conference and explained to him the embarrassment that I felt in advising the President to adopt a course which would make me the head of the American Commission. I am sure that the Colonel fully agreed with me that it was impolitic for Mr. Wilson to become a delegate, but whether he actively opposed the plan I do not know, although I believe that he did. It was some days before the President announced that he would become the head of the American Commission. I believe that he did this with grave doubts in his own mind as to the wisdom of his decision, and I do not think that any new arguments were advanced during those days which materially affected his judgment.

During my conversation with Colonel House, I shared my reasons for being against the President actively participating in the Conference and explained the discomfort I felt about advising him to take a course that would put me in charge of the American Commission. I'm sure the Colonel completely agreed with me that it wasn't a smart move for Mr. Wilson to be a delegate, but I'm not sure if he openly opposed the plan, though I think he did. It took several days before the President announced he would lead the American Commission. I believe he did this with serious doubts about whether it was the right choice, and I don’t think any new arguments were presented during those days that significantly changed his mind.

This delay in reaching a final determination as to a course of action was characteristic of Mr. Wilson. There is in his mentality a strange mixture of positiveness and indecision which is almost paradoxical. It is a peculiarity which it is hard to analyze and which has often been an embarrassment in the conduct of public affairs. Suddenness rather than promptness has always marked his decisions. Procrastination in announcing a policy or a programme makes coöperation difficult and not infrequently defeats the desired purpose. To put off a decision to the last moment is a trait of Mr. Wilson's character which has caused much anxiety to those who, dealing with matters of vital importance, realized that delay was perilous if not disastrous.

This delay in coming to a final decision about a course of action was typical of Mr. Wilson. His mindset has a strange mix of confidence and uncertainty that’s almost contradictory. It’s a quirk that's hard to pin down and has often caused issues in managing public affairs. He tends to make sudden decisions rather than prompt ones. Delaying the announcement of a policy or plan makes collaboration difficult and often undermines the intended goals. Putting off a decision until the last minute is a characteristic of Mr. Wilson that has caused a lot of anxiety for those involved in crucial matters, who realized that such delays could be risky, if not disastrous.

Of the consequences of the President's acting as one of his own representatives to negotiate peace it is not my purpose to speak. The events of the six months succeeding his decision to exercise in person his constitutional right to conduct the foreign relations of the United States are in a general way matters of common knowledge and furnish sufficient data for the formulation of individual opinions without the aid of argument or discussion. The important fact in connection with the general topic being considered is the difference of opinion between the President and myself as to the wisdom of his assuming the role of a delegate. While I did not discuss the matter with him except at the first when I opposed his attending the Peace Conference, I have little doubt that Colonel House, if he urged the President to decline to sit as a delegate, which I think may be presumed, or if he discussed it at all, mentioned to him my opinion that such a step would be unwise. In any event Mr. Wilson knew my views and that they were at variance with the decision which he reached.

I'm not here to talk about the consequences of the President taking on the role of one of his own representatives to negotiate peace. The events of the six months following his choice to personally exercise his constitutional right to manage the foreign relations of the United States are generally well-known and provide enough information for people to form their own opinions without needing a debate. The key point related to the topic we’re discussing is the disagreement between the President and me regarding the wisdom of him taking on the role of a delegate. While I didn’t talk to him about it after our initial conversation where I opposed his attending the Peace Conference, I have little doubt that Colonel House, if he encouraged the President to decline the delegate role—which I believe is likely—or if he even discussed it, brought up my view that it would be unwise. In any case, Mr. Wilson was aware of my opinions, which were different from the decision he made.

CHAPTER III

GENERAL PLAN FOR A LEAGUE OF NATIONS

It appears, from a general review of the situation prior and subsequent to the assembling of the delegates to the Peace Conference, that President Wilson's decision to go to Paris and to engage in person in the negotiations was strongly influenced by his belief that it was the only sure way of providing in the treaty of peace for the organization of a League of Nations. While his presence in Paris was probably affected to an extent by other considerations, as I have pointed out, it is to be presumed that he was anxious to participate directly in the drafting of the plan of organization of the League and to exert his personal influence on the delegates in favor of its acceptance by publicly addressing the Conference. This he could hardly have done without becoming a delegate. It would seem, therefore, that the purpose of creating a League of Nations and obtaining the incorporation of a plan of organization in the treaty to be negotiated had much to do with the President's presence at the peace table.

It seems, from a general look at the situation before and after the delegates gathered for the Peace Conference, that President Wilson's choice to go to Paris and personally participate in the negotiations was heavily influenced by his belief that it was the only reliable way to include the organization of a League of Nations in the peace treaty. While his time in Paris was likely shaped by other factors, as I’ve mentioned, it’s reasonable to assume he was eager to be directly involved in creating the League's organizational plan and to use his personal influence on the delegates to encourage its acceptance by publicly speaking at the Conference. He could hardly do this without being a delegate himself. Therefore, it seems that the goal of establishing a League of Nations and ensuring a plan of organization was a big reason for the President’s presence at the peace negotiations.

From the time that the United States entered the war in April, 1917, Mr. Wilson held firmly to the idea that the salvation of the world from imperialism would not be lasting unless provision was made in the peace treaty for an international agency strong enough to prevent a future attack upon the rights and liberties of the nations which were at so great a cost holding in check the German armies and preventing them from carrying out their evil designs of conquest. The object sought by the United States in the war would not, in the views of many, be achieved unless the world was organized to resist future aggression. The essential thing, as the President saw it, in order to "make the world safe for democracy" was to give permanency to the peace which would be negotiated at the conclusion of the war. A union of the nations for the purpose of preventing wars of aggression and conquest seemed to him the most practical, if not the only, way of accomplishing this supreme object, and he urged it with earnestness and eloquence in his public addresses relating to the bases of peace.

From the time the United States entered the war in April 1917, Mr. Wilson was convinced that the world couldn't truly be saved from imperialism without ensuring the peace treaty included an international agency strong enough to stop any future attacks on the rights and freedoms of the nations that had sacrificed so much to hold back the German armies and prevent their harmful ambitions of conquest. Many believed that the goals the United States sought in the war wouldn't be achieved unless the world was organized to resist future aggression. The key issue, as the President saw it, to "make the world safe for democracy," was to create lasting peace at the end of the war. A union of nations to prevent wars of aggression and conquest seemed to him the most practical, if not the only, way to achieve this vital objective, and he advocated for it passionately and eloquently in his public speeches about the foundations of peace.

There was much to be said in favor of the President's point of view. Unquestionably the American people as a whole supported him in the belief that there ought to be some international agreement, association, or concord which would lessen the possibility of future wars. An international organization to remove in a measure the immediate causes of war, to provide means for the peaceable settlement of disputes between nations, and to draw the governments into closer friendship appealed to the general desire of the peoples of America and Europe. The four years and more of horror and agony through which mankind had passed must be made impossible of repetition, and there seemed no other way than to form an international union devoted to the maintenance of peace by composing, as far as possible, controversies which might ripen into war.

There was a lot to support the President's perspective. Clearly, the American public largely agreed with him that there should be some kind of international agreement, alliance, or understanding that would reduce the chances of future wars. The idea of an international organization to address the immediate causes of conflict, provide ways to peacefully resolve disputes between nations, and foster closer ties between governments resonated with the overall desire of people in America and Europe. The four years and more of horror and suffering humanity had endured had to be made impossible to repeat, and forming an international union dedicated to maintaining peace by resolving, as much as possible, disputes that could lead to war seemed to be the only way.

For many years prior to 1914 an organization devoted to the prevention of international wars had been discussed by those who gave thought to warfare of the nations and who realized in a measure the precarious state of international peace. The Hague Conventions of 1899 and of 1907 had been negotiated with that object, and it was only because of the improper aspirations and hidden designs of certain powers, which were represented at those great historic conferences, that the measures adopted were not more expressive of the common desire of mankind and more effective in securing the object sought. The Carnegie Endowment for International Peace, the Ginn, now the World, Peace Foundation, and the American Peace Society, and later the Society for the Judicial Settlement of International Disputes, the League to Enforce Peace, and many other organizations in America and in Europe were actively engaged in considering ways and means to prevent war, to strengthen the bonds of international good-will, and to insure the more general application of the principles of justice to disputes between nations.

For many years before 1914, people discussed creating an organization dedicated to preventing international wars. They were aware of the unstable state of global peace and the implications of warfare among nations. The Hague Conventions of 1899 and 1907 were developed with this goal in mind, but due to the selfish ambitions and secret agendas of certain nations represented at those important conferences, the resulting measures did not fully reflect the common desires of humanity or effectively achieve their intended purpose. The Carnegie Endowment for International Peace, the Ginn (now the World Peace Foundation), the American Peace Society, and later the Society for the Judicial Settlement of International Disputes, the League to Enforce Peace, along with many other organizations in both America and Europe, were actively exploring ways to prevent war, strengthen international goodwill, and promote the broader application of justice in disputes between nations.

The outbreak of the war and the dreadful waste and suffering which followed impelled the societies and associations then organized to redoubled effort and induced the formation of new organizations. People everywhere began to realize that their objects were real and not merely sentimental or academic, that they were seeking practical means to remove the conditions which had made the Great War possible. Public opinion became more and more pronounced as the subject was more widely discussed in the journals and periodicals of the day and at public meetings, the divergence of views being chiefly in regard to the means to be employed by the proposed organization and not as to the creation of the organization, the necessity for which appeared to be generally conceded.

The outbreak of the war and the terrible waste and suffering that followed drove the societies and associations that were already formed to work harder and led to the creation of new organizations. People everywhere started to realize that their goals were real and not just sentimental or academic; they were looking for practical ways to eliminate the conditions that had made the Great War possible. Public opinion grew stronger as this topic was discussed more widely in the journals and magazines of the time and at public meetings. The differences in opinion mostly revolved around how the proposed organization should operate rather than whether it should be created, which seemed to be accepted by almost everyone.

With popular sentiment overwhelmingly in favor of some sort of world union which would to an extent insure the nations against another tragedy like the one which in November, 1918, had left the belligerents wasted and exhausted and the whole world a prey to social and industrial unrest, there was beyond question a demand that out of the great international assembly at Paris there should come some common agency devoted to the prevention of war. To ignore this all-prevalent sentiment would have been to misrepresent the peoples of the civilized world and would have aroused almost universal condemnation and protest. The President was, therefore, entirely right in giving prominence to the idea of an international union against war and in insisting that the Peace Conference should make provision for the establishment of an organization of the world with the prevention of future wars as its central thought and purpose.

With public opinion strongly supporting some form of global union to help protect nations from another tragedy like the one in November 1918, which had left the countries involved worn out and the entire world facing social and industrial unrest, there was definitely a need for a common body to emerge from the major international gathering in Paris, dedicated to preventing war. Ignoring this widespread feeling would have misrepresented the people of the civilized world and would have led to almost unanimous outcry and protest. The President was therefore completely correct in highlighting the idea of an international union against war and in insisting that the Peace Conference plan for the creation of a global organization focused on preventing future wars as its main goal and purpose.

The great bulk of the American people, at the time that the President left the United States to attend the Peace Conference, undoubtedly believed that some sort of organization of this nature was necessary, and I am convinced that the same popular belief prevailed in all other civilized countries. It is possible that this assertion may seem too emphatic to some who have opposed the plan for a League of Nations, which appears in the first articles of the Treaty of Versailles, but, if these opponents of the plan will go back to the time of which I am writing, and avoid the impressions made upon them by subsequent events, they will find, I believe, that even their own views have materially changed since December, 1918. It is true that concrete plans had then been suggested, but so far as the public knew the President had not adopted any of them or formulated one of his own. He had not then disclosed the provisions of his "Covenant."

The majority of the American people, when the President left the United States to attend the Peace Conference, definitely believed that some type of organization like this was necessary, and I’m convinced that the same belief was strong in all other civilized countries. This statement might seem too strong to some who have opposed the League of Nations plan outlined in the first articles of the Treaty of Versailles, but if these critics look back to the time I'm referring to and set aside the views formed by later events, I believe they will see that even their own opinions have significantly changed since December 1918. It’s true that specific plans had been proposed, but as far as the public was aware, the President had not accepted any of them or created one of his own. He had not revealed the details of his "Covenant" at that time.

The mass of the people were only concerned with the general idea. There was no well-defined opposition to that idea. At least it was not vocal. Even the defeat of the Democratic Party in the Congressional elections of November, 1918, could not be interpreted to be a repudiation of the formation of a world organization. That election, by which both Houses of Congress became Republican, was a popular rebuke to Mr. Wilson for the partisanship shown in his letter of October addressed to the American people, in which he practically asserted that it was unpatriotic to support the Republican candidates. The indignation and resentment aroused by that injudicious and unwarranted attack upon the loyalty of his political opponents lost to the Democratic Party the Senate and largely reduced its membership in the House of Representatives if it did not in fact deprive the party of control of that body. The result, however, did not mean that the President's ideas as to the terms of peace were repudiated, but that his practical assertion, that refusal to accept his policies was unpatriotic, was repudiated by the American people.

The general public was mostly focused on the overall concept, with no strong opposition to it—at least not openly. Even the Democratic Party's loss in the November 1918 Congressional elections wasn’t seen as a rejection of the establishment of a global organization. The election, which resulted in a Republican majority in both Houses of Congress, was more of a public backlash against Mr. Wilson for his partisan stance in his October letter to the American people, where he basically claimed it was unpatriotic to back Republican candidates. The anger and frustration sparked by his reckless and unjustified attack on the loyalty of his political rivals cost the Democratic Party the Senate and significantly reduced their presence in the House of Representatives, if it didn’t outright take control away from them. However, this outcome didn’t indicate that the American public rejected the President's peace terms; rather, it was his claim that refusing to accept his policies was unpatriotic that the American people rejected.

It is very apparent to one, who without prejudice reviews the state of public sentiment in December, 1918, that the trouble, which later developed as to a League of Nations, did not lie in the necessity of convincing the peoples of the world, their governments, and their delegates to the Paris Conference that it was desirable to organize the world to prevent future wars, but in deciding upon the form and functions of the organization to be created. As to these details, which of course affected the character, the powers, and the duties of the organization, there had been for years a wide divergence of opinion. Some advocated the use of international force to prevent a nation from warring against another. Some favored coercion by means of general ostracism and non-intercourse. Some believed that the application of legal justice through the medium of international tribunals and commissions was the only practical method of settling disputes which might become causes of war. And some emphasized the importance of a mutual agreement to postpone actual hostilities until there could be an investigation as to the merits of a controversy. There were thus two general classes of powers proposed which were in the one case political and in the other juridical. The cleavage of opinion was along these lines, although it possibly was not recognized by the general public. It was not only shown in the proposed powers, but also in the proposed form of the organization, the one centering on a politico-diplomatic body, and the other on an international judiciary. Naturally the details of any plan proposed would become the subject of discussion and the advisability of adopting the provisions would arouse controversy and dispute. Thus unanimity in approving a world organization did not mean that opinions might not differ radically in working out the fundamental principles of its form and functions, to say nothing of the detailed plan based on these principles.

It's clear to anyone who reviews public sentiment in December 1918, without bias, that the issues surrounding a League of Nations weren't about convincing people, governments, and delegates at the Paris Conference of the need to organize the world to prevent future wars. The real challenge lay in deciding the structure and functions of the organization that was to be established. Regarding these details—critical for defining the character, powers, and responsibilities of the organization—there had been a significant range of opinions for years. Some supported using international force to stop one nation from going to war with another. Others suggested coercion through general ostracism and non-engagement. Some felt that legal justice through international tribunals and commissions was the only practical way to resolve disputes that could lead to war. And some stressed the importance of a mutual agreement to delay actual hostilities until there could be an investigation into the merits of a dispute. This led to two main categories of proposed powers: one political and the other legal. The divide in opinion existed along these lines, even if it wasn't recognized by the general public. This was reflected not only in the suggested powers but also in the proposed structure of the organization: one focused on a political-diplomatic body, the other on an international judiciary. Naturally, the specifics of any proposed plan would spark discussion, and the wisdom of adopting certain provisions would lead to controversy. Therefore, consensus on establishing a world organization didn’t imply that opinions wouldn’t vary significantly regarding the foundational principles of its structure and functions, not to mention the detailed plan based on those principles.

In May, 1916, President Wilson accepted an invitation to address the first annual meeting of the League to Enforce Peace, which was to be held in Washington. After preparing his address he went over it and erased all reference to the use of physical force in preventing wars. I mention this as indicative of the state of uncertainty in which he was in the spring of 1916 as to the functions and powers of the international organization to maintain peace which he then advocated. By January, 1917, he had become convinced that the use of force was the practical method of checking aggressions. This conversion was probably due to the fact that he had in his own mind worked out, as one of the essential bases of peace, to which he was then giving much thought, a mutual guaranty of territorial integrity and political independence, which had been the chief article of a proposed Pan-American Treaty prepared early in 1915 and to which he referred in his address before the League to Enforce Peace. He appears to have reached the conclusion that a guaranty of this sort would be of little value unless supported by the threatened, and, if necessary, the actual, employment of force. The President was entirely logical in this attitude. A guaranty against physical aggression would be practically worthless if it did not rest on an agreement to protect with physical force. An undertaking to protect carried with it the idea of using effectual measures to insure protection. They were inseparable; and the President, having adopted an affirmative guaranty against aggression as a cardinal provision—perhaps I should say the cardinal provision—of the anticipated peace treaty, could not avoid becoming the advocate of the use of force in making good the guaranty.

In May 1916, President Wilson accepted an invitation to speak at the first annual meeting of the League to Enforce Peace, which was set to take place in Washington. After preparing his speech, he reviewed it and removed all references to using military force to prevent wars. I mention this to highlight the uncertainty he felt in the spring of 1916 regarding the role and powers of the international organization for maintaining peace that he was advocating. By January 1917, he had become convinced that using force was a practical way to counteract aggressions. This change in perspective was likely due to the fact that he had developed, in his mind, one of the essential foundations of peace—mutual guarantees of territorial integrity and political independence. This idea had been the main point of a proposed Pan-American Treaty drafted in early 1915, which he referenced in his speech to the League to Enforce Peace. He seemed to reach the conclusion that such guarantees would hold little value unless they were backed by the potential and, if necessary, the actual use of force. The President's logic in this viewpoint was sound: a guarantee against physical aggression would be nearly useless if it didn’t rely on an agreement to protect with military force. A commitment to protection implied the necessity of effective measures to ensure that protection. These concepts were intertwined, and the President, having embraced a strong guarantee against aggression as a key provision—perhaps I should say the key provision—of the prospective peace treaty, could not help but become a proponent of using force to uphold that guarantee.

During the year 1918 the general idea of the formation of an international organization to prevent war was increasingly discussed in the press of the United States and Europe and engaged the thought of the Governments of the Powers at war with the German Empire. On January 8 of that year President Wilson in an address to Congress proclaimed his "Fourteen Points," the adoption of which he considered necessary to a just and stable peace. The last of these "Points" explicitly states the basis of the proposed international organization and the fundamental reason for its formation. It is as follows:

During 1918, the idea of creating an international organization to prevent war was increasingly discussed in the press in the United States and Europe and was on the minds of the governments of the countries at war with Germany. On January 8 of that year, President Wilson addressed Congress and announced his "Fourteen Points," which he believed were essential for achieving a fair and lasting peace. The last of these "Points" clearly outlines the foundation of the proposed international organization and the main reason for its creation. It is as follows:

"XIV. A general association of nations must be formed under specific covenants for the purpose of affording mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity to great and small states alike."

"XIV. A general association of nations must be created under specific agreements to provide mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity to both large and small states."

This declaration may be considered in view of subsequent developments to be a sufficiently clear announcement of the President's theory as to the plan of organization which ought to be adopted, but at the time the exact character of the "mutual guarantees" was not disclosed and aroused little comment. I do not believe that Congress, much less the public at large, understood the purpose that the President had in mind. Undoubtedly, too, a sense of loyalty to the Chief Executive, while the war was in progress, and the desire to avoid giving comfort of any sort to the enemy, prevented a critical discussion of the announced bases of peace, some of which were at the time academic, premature, and liable to modification if conditions changed.

This declaration can be seen, in light of what happened later, as a pretty clear statement of the President's ideas about the organizational plan that should be put in place. However, at the time, the specific nature of the "mutual guarantees" wasn’t revealed and didn't get much attention. I don’t think Congress, let alone the general public, really understood the purpose the President had in mind. Additionally, a sense of loyalty to the Chief Executive during the war, along with the desire to not give any support to the enemy, prevented a critical discussion of the proposed peace foundations, some of which were at that point theoretical, premature, and likely to change as conditions evolved.

In March Lord Phillimore and his colleagues made their preliminary report to the British Government on "a League of Nations" and this was followed in July by their final report, copies of which reached the President soon after they were made. The time had arrived for putting into concrete form the general ideas that the President held, and Colonel House, whom some believed to be the real author of Mr. Wilson's conception of a world union, prepared, I am informed, the draft of a scheme of organization. This draft was either sent or handed to the President and discussed with him. To what extent it was amended or revised by Mr. Wilson I do not know, but in a modified form it became the typewritten draft of the Covenant which he took with him to Paris, where it underwent several changes. In it was the guaranty of 1915, 1916, 1917, and 1918, which, from the form in which it appeared, logically required the use of force to give it effect.

In March, Lord Phillimore and his colleagues submitted their initial report to the British Government on "a League of Nations," and this was followed by their final report in July, with copies reaching the President soon after. The moment had come to solidify the general ideas the President had, and Colonel House, who some thought was the real mastermind behind Mr. Wilson's vision of a global union, prepared, as I’ve heard, a draft organizational plan. This draft was either sent to the President or handed to him and discussed. I don’t know how much Mr. Wilson changed or revised it, but in a modified version, it became the typewritten draft of the Covenant that he took to Paris, where it underwent several revisions. It included the guarantees from 1915, 1916, 1917, and 1918, which, based on its formulation, logically required the use of force to be effective.

Previous to the departure of the American Commission for Paris, on December 4, 1918, the President did not consult me as to his plan for a League of Nations. He did not show me a copy of the plan or even mention that one had been put into writing. I think that there were two reasons for his not doing so, although I was the official adviser whom he should naturally consult on such matters.

Before the American Commission left for Paris on December 4, 1918, the President didn’t consult me about his plan for a League of Nations. He didn’t show me a copy of the plan or even mention that it had been put in writing. I believe there were two reasons for this, even though I was the official adviser he should have naturally consulted on such issues.

The first reason, I believe, was due to the following facts. In our conversations prior to 1918 I had uniformly opposed the idea of the employment of international force to compel a nation to respect the rights of other nations and had repeatedly urged judicial settlement as the practical way of composing international controversies, though I did not favor the use of force to compel such settlement.

The first reason, I think, was because of the following facts. In our discussions before 1918, I consistently opposed the idea of using international force to make a country respect the rights of other nations and had repeatedly advocated for judicial settlement as the practical way to resolve international disputes, although I didn’t support using force to enforce such settlements.

To show my opposition to an international agreement providing for the use of force and to show that President Wilson knew of this opposition and the reasons for it, I quote a letter which I wrote to him in May, 1916, that is, two years and a half before the end of the war:

To express my disagreement with an international agreement that allows for the use of force and to demonstrate that President Wilson was aware of this disagreement and the reasons behind it, I will quote a letter I wrote to him in May 1916, which is two and a half years before the war ended:

"May 25, 1916

"May 25, 1916"

"My DEAR MR. PRESIDENT:

"Dear Mr. President:"

"I had hoped to see you to-morrow at Cabinet meeting, but to-day the Doctor refused to allow me to leave the house this week. I intended when I saw you to say something about the purposes of the League to Enforce Peace, which is to meet here, and at the banquet of which I understand you are to speak on Saturday night. I would have preferred to talk the matter over with you, but as that is impossible I have taken the liberty to write you this letter, although in doing so I am violating the directions of the Doctor.

"I was hoping to see you tomorrow at the Cabinet meeting, but today the Doctor wouldn't let me leave the house this week. I wanted to discuss the goals of the League to Enforce Peace, which is meeting here, and I understand you will be speaking at the banquet on Saturday night. I would have preferred to talk it over with you in person, but since that's not possible, I took the liberty of writing you this letter, even though it's against the Doctor's orders."

"While I have not had time or opportunity to study carefully the objects of the proposed League to Enforce Peace, I understand the fundamental ideas are these, which are to be embodied in a general treaty of the nations: First, an agreement to submit all differences which fail of diplomatic adjustment to arbitration or a board of conciliation; and, second, in case a government fails to comply with this provision, an agreement that the other parties will unite in compelling it to do so by an exercise of force.

"Although I haven't had the time or opportunity to closely study the goals of the proposed League to Enforce Peace, I understand that the main ideas are to be included in a general treaty among nations: First, an agreement to take all disputes that can't be resolved through diplomacy to arbitration or a conciliation board; and, second, if a government doesn't follow this rule, an agreement that the other parties will come together to force it to comply."

"With the first agreement I am in accord to an extent, but I cannot see how it is practicable to apply it in case of a continuing invasion of fundamental national or individual rights unless some authoritative international body has the power to impose and enforce an order in the nature of an injunction, which will prevent the aggressor from further action until arbitration has settled the rights of the parties. How this can be done in a practical way I have not attempted to work out, but the problem is not easy, especially the part which relates to the enforcement of the order.

"I'm somewhat on board with the first agreement, but I can't see how it could realistically be applied in cases of ongoing violations of basic national or individual rights unless there's some recognized international authority that can impose and enforce an order like an injunction, stopping the aggressor from taking further action until arbitration resolves the rights of those involved. I haven't figured out how this could be practically achieved, but it's a challenging issue, particularly when it comes to enforcing the order."

"It is, however, the second agreement in regard to the imposition of international arbitration by force, which seems to me the most difficult, especially when viewed from the standpoint of its effects on our national sovereignty and national interests. It is needless to go into the manifest questions arising when the modus operandi of the agreement is considered. Such questions as: Who may demand international intervention? What body will decide whether the demand should be complied with? How will the international forces be constituted? Who will take charge of the military and naval operations? Who will pay the expenses of the war (for war it will be)?

"It is, however, the second agreement regarding the forced imposition of international arbitration that I find most challenging, especially when considering its impact on our national sovereignty and interests. There’s no need to delve into the obvious questions that arise when examining the modus operandi of the agreement. Questions like: Who can request international intervention? Which authority will decide if the request should be granted? How will the international forces be organized? Who will oversee the military and naval operations? Who will cover the costs of the war (because it will be war)?"

"Perplexing as these questions appear to me, I am more concerned with the direct effect on this country. I do not believe that it is wise to limit our independence of action, a sovereign right, to the will of other powers beyond this hemisphere. In any representative international body clothed with authority to require of the nations to employ their armies and navies to coerce one of their number, we would be in the minority. I do not believe that we should put ourselves in the position of being compelled to send our armed forces to Europe or Asia or, in the alternative, of repudiating our treaty obligation. Neither our sovereignty nor our interests would accord with such a proposition, and I am convinced that popular opinion as well as the Senate would reject a treaty framed along such lines.

"These questions may seem complicated to me, but I'm more focused on the direct impact on our country. I don't think it's smart to limit our ability to act independently, which is our sovereign right, to the decisions of other powers outside our hemisphere. In any international organization with the authority to require nations to use their military forces to coerce one of their members, we would find ourselves in the minority. I don’t believe we should put ourselves in a position where we have to send our troops to Europe or Asia, or alternatively, reject our treaty obligations. Both our sovereignty and our interests wouldn't align with such a proposal, and I'm convinced that public opinion, as well as the Senate, would not support a treaty structured that way."

"It is possible that the difficulty might be obviated by the establishment of geographical zones, and leaving to the groups of nations thus formed the enforcement of the peaceful settlement of disputes. But if that is done why should all the world participate? We have adopted a much modified form of this idea in the proposed Pan-American Treaty by the 'guaranty' article. But I would not like to see its stipulations extended to the European powers so that they, with our full agreement, would have the right to cross the ocean and stop quarrels between two American Republics. Such authority would be a serious menace to the Monroe Doctrine and a greater menace to the Pan-American Doctrine.

"It’s possible that the difficulty could be resolved by creating geographical zones and allowing the groups of nations formed to handle the peaceful resolution of disputes themselves. But if that happens, why should the whole world be involved? We’ve adopted a modified version of this idea in the proposed Pan-American Treaty through the 'guarantee' article. However, I wouldn’t want to see its terms applied to European powers, giving them, with our full agreement, the right to cross the ocean and settle disputes between two American Republics. Such power would seriously threaten the Monroe Doctrine and pose an even greater threat to the Pan-American Doctrine."

"It appears to me that, if the first idea of the League can be worked out in a practical way and an international body constituted to determine when steps should be taken to enforce compliance, the use of force might be avoided by outlawing the offending nation. No nation to-day can live unto itself. The industrial and commercial activities of the world are too closely interwoven for a nation isolated from the other nations to thrive and prosper. A tremendous economic pressure could be imposed on the outlawed nation by all other nations denying it intercourse of every nature, even communication, in a word make that nation a pariah, and so to remain until it was willing to perform its obligations.

"It seems to me that if the initial concept of the League can be implemented effectively and an international organization is established to decide when actions should be taken to ensure compliance, the use of force could be avoided by branding the offending nation as an outlaw. No nation today can exist in isolation. The industrial and commercial activities of the world are too intertwined for a country cut off from others to thrive and prosper. A significant economic pressure could be placed on the outlawed nation by all other countries refusing to engage with it in any way, even cutting off communication, basically making that nation a pariah, and keeping it that way until it is willing to meet its responsibilities."

"I am not at all sure that this means is entirely feasible. I see many difficulties which would have to be met under certain conditions. But I do think that it is more practical in operation and less objectionable from the standpoint of national rights and interests than the one proposed by the League. It does not appear to me that the use of physical force is in any way practical or advisable.

"I’m not really sure that this method is completely doable. I see a lot of challenges that would need to be addressed under certain conditions. However, I do believe that it is more practical in execution and less questionable regarding national rights and interests compared to the plan suggested by the League. It doesn’t seem to me that using physical force is practical or advisable in any way."

"I presume that you are far more familiar than I am with the details of the plans of the League and that it may be presumptuous on my part to write you as I have. I nevertheless felt it my duty to frankly give you my views on the subject and I have done so.

"I assume you know a lot more than I do about the details of the League's plans, and it might be bold of me to write to you like this. Still, I thought it was important to share my honest thoughts on the matter, so I went ahead and did that."

"Faithfully yours

Sincerely yours

"ROBERT LANSING
"THE PRESIDENT

"The White House"

"The White House"

The President, thus early advised of my unqualified opposition to any plan which was similar in principle to the one advocated by the League to Enforce Peace, naturally concluded that I would look with disfavor on an international guaranty which by implication, if not by declaration, compelled the use of force to give it effect. Doubtless he felt that I would not be disposed to aid in perfecting a plan which had as its central idea a guaranty of that nature. Disliking opposition to a plan or policy which he had originated or made his own by adoption, he preferred to consult those who without debate accepted his judgment and were in sympathy with his ideas. Undoubtedly the President by refraining from asking my advice spared himself from listening to arguments against the guaranty and the use of force which struck at the very root of his plan, for I should, if I had been asked, have stated my views with entire frankness.

The President, already aware of my strong opposition to any plan similar to the one proposed by the League to Enforce Peace, naturally assumed that I would disapprove of an international guarantee that, if not explicitly stated, implied the use of force to enforce it. He likely believed that I wouldn’t want to contribute to refining a plan centered around such a guarantee. Disliking opposition to a plan or policy he had created or adopted, he preferred to consult those who accepted his judgment without question and aligned with his views. By not asking for my advice, the President avoided hearing arguments against the guarantee and the use of force, which undermined the very foundation of his plan, because, if I had been asked, I would have shared my opinions openly.

The other reason for not consulting me, as I now realize, but did not at the time, was that I belonged to the legal profession. It is a fact, which Mr. Wilson has taken no trouble to conceal, that he does not value the advice of lawyers except on strictly legal questions, and that he considers their objections and criticisms on other subjects to be too often based on mere technicalities and their judgments to be warped by an undue regard for precedent. This prejudice against the legal profession in general was exhibited on more than one occasion during our sojourn at Paris. Looking back over my years of intercourse with the President I can now see that he chafed under the restraints imposed by usage and even by enacted laws if they interfered with his acting in a way which seemed to him right or justified by conditions. I do not say that he was lawless. He was not that, but he conformed grudgingly and with manifest displeasure to legal limitations. It was a thankless task to question a proposed course of action on the ground of illegality, because he appeared to be irritated by such an obstacle to his will and to transfer his irritation against the law to the one who raised it as an objection. I think that he was especially resentful toward any one who volunteered criticism based on a legal provision, precept, or precedent, apparently assuming that the critic opposed his purpose on the merits and in order to defeat it interposed needless legal objections. It is unnecessary to comment on the prejudice which such an attitude of mind made evident.

The other reason for not consulting me, which I now understand but didn’t at the time, was that I was part of the legal profession. It's clear, and Mr. Wilson hasn't tried to hide it, that he doesn’t value lawyers' advice except on strictly legal matters, and he thinks their objections and critiques on other topics often rely too much on technicalities, with their judgments being skewed by an excessive focus on precedent. This bias against the legal profession was shown more than once during our time in Paris. Reflecting on my years of interaction with the President, I can see that he felt constrained by traditions and even the law when they got in the way of how he believed he should act or what circumstances justified. I’m not saying he was lawless. He wasn’t, but he complied with legal limits reluctantly and with obvious frustration. It was a thankless job to question a proposed action because of its legality, as he seemed irritated by any obstacle to his will and directed his annoyance at anyone who raised such legal concerns. He appeared particularly resentful toward anyone who brought up criticism based on legal rules or precedents, seemingly thinking that the critic was opposing his goals unfairly and using unnecessary legal arguments to get in the way. It goes without saying how clear this mindset’s bias was.

After the President's exceptionally strong address at the Metropolitan Opera House in New York on September 27, 1918, I realized the great importance which he gave to the creation of a League of Nations and in view of this I devoted time and study to the subject, giving particular attention to the British and French suggestions, both of which emphasized judicial settlement. Knowing that the President had been in consultation with Colonel House on the various phases of the peace to be negotiated as well as on the terms of the armistice, I asked the latter what he knew about the former's scheme for a League of Nations.

After the President's incredibly powerful speech at the Metropolitan Opera House in New York on September 27, 1918, I understood how crucial he thought the creation of a League of Nations was. Because of this, I spent time studying the topic, paying special attention to the suggestions from Britain and France, both of which stressed the importance of judicial resolutions. Knowing that the President had been discussing various aspects of the peace to be negotiated, as well as the armistice terms, with Colonel House, I asked him what he knew about the President's plan for a League of Nations.

The Colonel discreetly avoided disclosing the details of the plan, but from our conversation I gained an idea of the general principles of the proposed organization and the way in which the President intended to apply them.

The Colonel quietly avoided sharing the specifics of the plan, but from our conversation, I got a sense of the general ideas behind the proposed organization and how the President planned to implement them.

After the Colonel and his party had sailed for France and in expectation of being consulted on the subject by President Wilson, I put my thoughts on the League of Nations into writing. In a note, which is dated October 27, 1918, appears the following:

After the Colonel and his group had set sail for France and I was waiting to be consulted on the matter by President Wilson, I wrote down my thoughts on the League of Nations. In a note dated October 27, 1918, the following appears:

"From the little I know of the President's plan I am sure that it is impracticable. There is in it too much altruistic cooperation. No account is taken of national selfishness and the mutual suspicions which control international relations. It may be noble thinking, but it is not true thinking.

"From what little I know about the President's plan, I'm sure it won't work. There's too much emphasis on selfless cooperation. It doesn't take into account national self-interest and the mutual distrust that influences international relations. It might be noble in thought, but it's not realistic thinking."

"What I fear is that a lot of dreamers and theorists will be selected to work out an organization instead of men whose experience and common sense will tell them not to attempt anything which will not work. The scheme ought to be simple and practical. If the federation, or whatever it may be called, is given too much power or if its machinery is complex, my belief is that it will be unable to function or else will be defied. I can see lots of trouble ahead unless impractical enthusiasts and fanatics are suppressed. This is a time when sober thought, caution, and common sense should control."

"What I’m worried about is that a lot of dreamers and theorists will get picked to create an organization instead of people whose experience and common sense will tell them not to try anything that won’t work. The plan should be simple and practical. If the federation, or whatever it’s called, is given too much power or if it’s too complicated, I believe it won’t be able to function or will face resistance. I see a lot of problems ahead unless impractical enthusiasts and fanatics are kept in check. This is a time when clear thinking, caution, and common sense should be in charge."

On November 22, 1918, after I had been formally designated as a Peace Commissioner, I made another note for the purpose of crystallizing my own thought on the subject of a League of Nations. Although President Wilson had not then consulted me in any way regarding his plan of organization, I felt sure that he would, and I wished to be prepared to give him my opinion concerning the fundamentals of the plan which might be proposed on behalf of the United States. I saw, or thought that I saw, a disposition to adopt physical might as the basis of the organization, because the guaranty, which the President had announced in Point XIV and evidently purposed to advocate, seemed to require the use of force in the event that it became necessary to make it good.

On November 22, 1918, after I was officially appointed as a Peace Commissioner, I wrote another note to clarify my thoughts about a League of Nations. Even though President Wilson hadn't consulted me at all about his plan for the organization, I was confident he would, and I wanted to be ready to share my views on the core principles that might be proposed on behalf of the United States. I noticed, or thought I noticed, a tendency to base the organization on military power, because the guarantee that the President announced in Point XIV and clearly intended to support seemed to require the use of force if necessary to enforce it.

From the note of November 22 I quote the following:

From the note dated November 22, I quote the following:

"The legal principle [of the equality of nations], whatever its basis in fact, must be preserved, otherwise force rather than law, the power to act rather than the right to act, becomes the fundamental principle of organization, just as it has been in all previous Congresses and Concerts of the European Powers.

"The legal principle [of the equality of nations], regardless of its actual basis, must be upheld; otherwise, force instead of law, the ability to act rather than the right to act, becomes the core principle of organization, just like it has been in all past Congresses and Concerts of the European Powers."

"It appears to me that a positive guaranty of territorial integrity and political independence by the nations would have to rest upon an open recognition of dominant coercive power in the articles of agreement, the power being commercial and economic as well as physical. The wisdom of entering into such a guaranty is questionable and should be carefully considered before being adopted.

"It seems to me that a solid guarantee of territorial integrity and political independence by the nations would need to be based on an open acknowledgment of the prevailing coercive power in the agreements, with that power being commercial and economic as well as physical. The wisdom of entering into such a guarantee is debatable and should be thoughtfully assessed before being put into place."

"In order to avoid the recognition of force as a basis and the question of dominant force with the unavoidable classification of nations into 'big' and 'little,' 'strong' and 'weak,' the desired result of a guaranty might be attained by entering into a mutual undertaking not to impair the territorial integrity or to violate the political sovereignty of any state. The breach of this undertaking would be a breach of the treaty and would sever the relations of the offending nation with all other signatories."

"To prevent force from being recognized as a foundation and to avoid classifying countries as 'big' or 'small,' 'strong' or 'weak,' the intended outcome of a guarantee could be achieved by forming a mutual agreement not to undermine the territorial integrity or violate the political sovereignty of any state. Violating this agreement would breach the treaty and cut off the offending nation’s relations with all other signatories."

I have given these two extracts from my notes in order to show the views that I held, at the time the American Commission was about to depart from the United States, in regard to the character of the guaranty which the President intended to make the central feature of the League of Nations. In the carrying out of his scheme and in creating an organization to give effect to the guaranty I believed that I saw as an unavoidable consequence an exaltation of force and an overlordship of the strong nations. Under such conditions it would be impossible to preserve within the organization the equality of nations, a precept of international law which was the universally recognized basis of intercourse between nations in time of peace. This I considered most unwise and a return to the old order, from which every one hoped that the victory over the Central Empires had freed the world.

I’ve included these two excerpts from my notes to share my thoughts at the time the American Commission was about to leave the United States, regarding the type of guarantee the President planned to make the main focus of the League of Nations. I believed that in implementing his plan and forming an organization to support this guarantee, there would be an inevitable emphasis on power and dominance by the stronger nations. In that scenario, it would be impossible to maintain equality among nations within the organization, a principle of international law that has been the universally accepted foundation of relations between countries in peacetime. I viewed this as very unwise and a step back to the old order, which everyone hoped the victory over the Central Empires had liberated the world from.

The views expressed in the notes quoted formed the basis for my subsequent course of action as an American Commissioner at Paris in relation to the League of Nations. Convinced from previous experience that to oppose every form of guaranty by the nations assembled at Paris would be futile in view of the President's apparent determination to compel the adoption of that principle, I endeavored to find a form of guaranty that would be less objectionable than the one which the President had in mind. The commitment of the United States to any guaranty seemed to me at least questionable, though to prevent it seemed impossible in the circumstances. It did not seem politic to try to persuade the President to abandon the idea altogether. I was certain that that could not be done. If he could be induced to modify his plan so as to avoid a direct undertaking to protect other nations from aggression, the result would be all that could be expected. I was guided, therefore, chiefly by expediency rather than by principle in presenting my views to the President and in openly approving the idea of a guaranty.

The views expressed in the notes I quoted shaped my later actions as an American Commissioner in Paris regarding the League of Nations. Based on past experiences, I realized that opposing every type of guarantee proposed by the nations in Paris would be pointless, given the President's strong determination to push for that principle. I aimed to find a type of guarantee that would be less problematic than the one the President envisioned. While I found the United States' commitment to any guarantee questionable, it seemed impossible to avoid it under the circumstances. It didn’t seem wise to try to convince the President to completely abandon the idea. I was sure that wouldn’t happen. If I could persuade him to modify his plan to avoid a direct commitment to protect other nations from aggression, that would be the best outcome I could hope for. Therefore, I mainly focused on practicality rather than principle when I shared my opinions with the President and openly supported the idea of a guarantee.

The only opportunity that I had to learn more of the President's plan for a League before arriving in Paris was an hour's interview with him on the U.S.S. George Washington some days after we sailed from New York. He showed me nothing in writing, but explained in a general way his views as to the form, purpose, and powers of a League. From this conversation I gathered that my fears as to the proposed organization were justified and that it was to be based on the principle of diplomatic adjustment rather than that of judicial settlement and that political expediency tinctured with morality was to be the standard of determination of an international controversy rather than strict legal justice.

The only chance I had to learn more about the President's plan for a League before arriving in Paris was an hour-long interview with him on the U.S.S. George Washington a few days after we left New York. He didn’t show me anything in writing but explained his thoughts on the League's form, purpose, and powers in general terms. From that conversation, I understood that my concerns about the proposed organization were valid. It was going to be based on the idea of diplomatic negotiation instead of judicial resolution, and that political expedience mixed with morality would be how we determined international disputes, rather than relying on strict legal justice.

In view of the President's apparent fixity of purpose it seemed unwise to criticize the plan until I could deliver to him a substitute in writing for the mutual guaranty which he evidently considered to be the chief feature of the plan. I did not attempt to debate the subject with him believing it better to submit my ideas in concrete form, as I had learned from experience that Mr. Wilson preferred to have matters for his decision presented in writing rather than by word of mouth.

Given the President's clear determination, it seemed unwise to criticize the plan until I could handed him a written alternative to the mutual guarantee, which he clearly saw as the main feature of the plan. I didn't try to discuss the issue with him, believing it was better to present my ideas in a concrete way, as I had learned from experience that Mr. Wilson preferred to have matters for his decision presented in writing rather than verbally.

CHAPTER IV

SUBSTITUTE ARTICLES PROPOSED

The President, Mr. Henry White, and I arrived in Paris on Saturday, December 14, 1918, where Colonel House and General Bliss awaited us. The days following our arrival were given over to public functions in honor of the President and to official exchanges of calls and interviews with the delegates of other countries who were gathering for the Peace Conference. On the 23d, when the pressure of formal and social engagements had in a measure lessened, I decided to present to the President my views as to the mutual guaranty which he intended to propose, fearing that, if there were further delay, he would become absolutely committed to the affirmative form. I, therefore, on that day sent him the following letter, which was marked "Secret and Urgent":

The President, Mr. Henry White, and I arrived in Paris on Saturday, December 14, 1918, where Colonel House and General Bliss were waiting for us. The days after our arrival were filled with public events in honor of the President and official visits and meetings with delegates from other countries gathering for the Peace Conference. On the 23rd, when the pressure of formal and social obligations had somewhat eased, I decided to share my thoughts with the President about the mutual guarantee he planned to propose, worried that if we delayed any longer, he would fully commit to that direction. So, I sent him the following letter that day, labeled "Secret and Urgent":

"Hotel de Crillon December 23, 1918

"Hotel de Crillon December 23, 1918"

"MY DEAR MR. PRESIDENT:

"The plan of guaranty proposed for the League of Nations, which has been the subject of discussion, will find considerable objection from other Governments because, even when the principle is agreed to, there will be a wide divergence of views as to the terms of the obligation. This difference of opinion will be seized upon by those, who are openly or secretly opposed to the League, to create controversy and discord.

"The proposed guarantee plan for the League of Nations, which has been discussed, will face significant opposition from other governments because, even if they agree on the principle, there will be many differing opinions on the specifics of the obligation. Those who are openly or secretly against the League will use this disagreement to stir up controversy and conflict."

"In addition to this there will be opposition in Congress to assuming obligations to take affirmative action along either military or economic lines. On constitutional grounds, on its effect on the Monroe Doctrine, on jealousy as to Congressional powers, etc., there will be severe criticism which will materially weaken our position with other nations, and may, in view of senatorial hostility, defeat a treaty as to the League of Nations or at least render it impotent.

"In addition to this, there will be opposition in Congress to taking on commitments for proactive military or economic actions. There will be strong criticism based on constitutional grounds, the impact on the Monroe Doctrine, jealousy over Congressional powers, and more, which will greatly weaken our standing with other nations and could, due to senatorial opposition, undermine a treaty regarding the League of Nations or at the very least make it ineffective."

"With these thoughts in mind and with an opposition known to exist among certain European statesmen and already manifest in Washington, I take the liberty of laying before you a tentative draft of articles of guaranty which I do not believe can be successfully opposed either at home or abroad."

"Keeping these thoughts in mind, along with the known opposition among some European leaders and already visible in Washington, I’m sharing a preliminary draft of guarantee articles that I don’t think can be successfully challenged either here or overseas."

I would interrupt the reader at this point to suggest that it might be well to peruse the enclosures, which will be found in the succeeding pages, in order to have a better understanding of the comments which follow. To continue:

I want to pause here to recommend that you check out the attachments, which you'll find in the next pages, to get a clearer idea of the comments that follow. To continue:

"I do not see how any nation can refuse to subscribe to them. I do not see how any question of constitutionality can be raised, as they are based essentially on powers which are confided to the Executive. They in no way raise a question as to the Monroe Doctrine. At the same time I believe that the result would be as efficacious as if there was an undertaking to take positive action against an offending nation, which is the present cause of controversy.

"I don’t see how any nation can refuse to agree to them. I don’t see how any constitutional question can be raised, since they are fundamentally based on powers entrusted to the Executive. They do not challenge the Monroe Doctrine in any way. At the same time, I believe that the outcome would be just as effective as if there were a commitment to take direct action against a nation that is causing the current controversy."

"I am so earnestly in favor of the guaranty, which is the heart of the League of Nations, that I have endeavored to find a way to accomplish this and to remove the objections raised which seem to me to-day to jeopardize the whole plan.

"I strongly support the guarantee, which is central to the League of Nations, so I've tried to figure out how to achieve this and address the concerns that I believe are putting the entire plan at risk."

"I shall be glad, if you desire it, to confer with you in regard to the enclosed paper or to receive your opinion as to the suggestions made. In any event it is my hope that you will give the paper consideration.

"I'll be happy, if you'd like, to discuss the enclosed paper with you or to hear your thoughts on the suggestions made. Either way, I hope you'll take the time to consider the paper."

"Faithfully yours

Yours faithfully

"ROBERT LANSING
"THE PRESIDENT

"28 Rue de Monceau"

"28 Rue de Monceau"

It should be borne in mind in reading this letter that I had reached the conclusion that modification rather than abandonment of the guaranty was all that I could hope to accomplish, and that, as a matter of expediency, it seemed wise to indicate a sympathetic attitude toward the idea. For that reason I expressed myself as favorable to the guaranty and termed it "the heart of the League of Nations," a phrase which the President by his subsequent use of it considered to be a proper characterization.

It’s important to remember while reading this letter that I concluded that modifying the guaranty instead of completely getting rid of it was all I could realistically achieve. For practical reasons, it felt smart to show a supportive attitude towards the idea. That’s why I spoke positively about the guaranty and called it "the heart of the League of Nations," a description that the President later adopted as fitting.

The memoranda contained in the paper enclosed in the letter were as follows:

The memos included in the paper attached to the letter were as follows:

The Constitutional Power to provide Coercion in a Treaty

The Constitutional Power to Provide Coercion in a Treaty

"December 20, 1918

December 20, 1918

"In the institution of a League of Nations we must bear in mind the limitations imposed by the Constitution of the United States upon the Executive and Legislative Branches of the Government in defining their respective powers.

"In establishing a League of Nations, we need to keep in mind the limits that the Constitution of the United States places on the Executive and Legislative branches of the government in defining their respective powers."

"The Constitution confers upon Congress the right to declare war. This right, I do not believe, can be delegated and it certainly cannot be taken away by treaty. The question arises, therefore, as to how far a provision in an agreement as to a League of Nations, which imposes on the United States the obligation to employ its military or naval forces in enforcing the terms of the agreement, would be constitutional.

"The Constitution gives Congress the authority to declare war. I don't think this authority can be delegated, and it definitely can't be removed by a treaty. So, the question is how a clause in a League of Nations agreement that requires the United States to use its military or naval forces to enforce the terms of the agreement would be constitutional."

"It would seem that the utilization of forces, whether independently or in conjunction with other nations, would in fact by being an act of war create a state of war, which constitutionally can only be done by a declaration of Congress. To contract by treaty to create a state of war upon certain contingencies arising would be equally tainted with unconstitutionality and would be null and inoperative.

"It seems that using military forces, whether on our own or alongside other countries, would actually create a state of war, which can only be done constitutionally through a declaration by Congress. Agreeing by treaty to create a state of war under certain conditions would also be unconstitutional and would be null and void."

"I do not think, therefore, that, even if it were advisable, any treaty can provide for the independent or joint use of the military or naval forces of the United States to compel compliance with a treaty or to make good a guaranty made in a treaty.

"I don't think, then, that even if it was a good idea, any treaty can allow for the independent or joint use of the military or naval forces of the United States to enforce compliance with a treaty or to fulfill a guarantee made in a treaty."

"The other method of international coercion is non-intercourse, especially commercial non-intercourse. Would a treaty provision to employ this method be constitutional?

"The other method of international coercion is non-intercourse, especially commercial non-intercourse. Would a treaty provision to use this method be constitutional?"

"As to this my mind is less clear. The Constitution in delegating powers to Congress includes the regulation of commerce. Does non-intercourse fall within the idea of regulation? Could an embargo be imposed without an act of Congress? My impression is that it could not be done without legislation and that a treaty provision agreeing in a certain event to impose an embargo against another nation would be void.

"As for this, I'm not as clear. The Constitution gives Congress the power to regulate commerce. Does non-intercourse fit under regulation? Can an embargo be put in place without a law from Congress? I believe it can't be done without legislation, and that a treaty clause agreeing to impose an embargo on another nation under certain circumstances would be invalid."

"Even if Congress was willing to delegate to the Executive for a certain purpose its powers as to making war and regulating commerce, I do not think that it could constitutionally do so. It is only in the event of war that powers conferred by the Constitution on Congress can be delegated and then only for war purposes. As a state of war would not exist at the time action was required, I do not believe that it could be done, and any provision contracting to take measures of this nature would be contrary to the Constitution and as a consequence void.

"Even if Congress was willing to give the Executive Branch the authority to declare war and manage commerce for a specific reason, I don’t believe it could do so constitutionally. Powers given to Congress by the Constitution can only be delegated in the event of war, and only for wartime purposes. Since there wouldn’t be a state of war at the time action was needed, I don’t think it could happen, and any agreement to take such measures would be against the Constitution and therefore invalid."

"But, assuming that Congress possessed the power of delegation, I am convinced that it would not only refuse to do so, but would resent such a suggestion because of the fact that both Houses have been and are extremely jealous of their rights and authority.

"But assuming that Congress has the power to delegate, I am convinced that it would not only refuse to do so but would also be offended by such a suggestion because both Houses are very protective of their rights and authority."

"Viewed from the standpoints of legality and expediency it would seem necessary to find some other method than coercion in enforcing an international guaranty, or else to find some substitute for a guaranty which would be valueless without affirmative action to support it.

"From the perspectives of legality and practicality, it seems necessary to find a different method than force to enforce an international guarantee, or to find some alternative for a guarantee that would be worthless without positive action to back it up."

"I believe that such a substitute can be found."

"I think a substitute like that can be found."

The foregoing memorandum was intended as an introduction to the negative guaranty or "self-denying covenant" which I desired to lay before the President as a substitute for the one upon which he intended to build the League of Nations. The memorandum was suggestive merely, but in view of the necessity for a speedy decision there was no time to prepare an exhaustive legal opinion. Furthermore, I felt that the President, whose hours were at that time crowded with numerous personal conferences and public functions, would find little opportunity to peruse a long and closely reasoned argument on the subject.

The previous memo was meant to introduce the negative guaranty or "self-denying covenant" that I wanted to present to the President as an alternative to the one he planned to use for the League of Nations. The memo was just a suggestion, but since a quick decision was needed, there wasn't time to write a detailed legal opinion. Plus, I thought the President, who was busy with many personal meetings and public events, wouldn’t have much chance to read a lengthy and complex argument on the topic.

The most important portion of the document was that entitled "Suggested Draft of Articles for Discussion. December 20, 1918." It reads as follows:

The most important part of the document was the section titled "Suggested Draft of Articles for Discussion. December 20, 1918." It says:

"The parties to this convention, for the purpose of maintaining international peace and preventing future wars between one another, hereby constitute themselves into a League of Nations and solemnly undertake jointly and severally to fulfill the obligations imposed upon them in the following articles:

"The countries involved in this agreement, to ensure international peace and prevent future conflicts between each other, hereby form a League of Nations and jointly commit to fulfilling the responsibilities outlined in the following articles:"

"A

"Each power signatory or adherent hereto severally covenants and guarantees that it will not violate the territorial integrity or impair the political independence of any other power signatory or adherent to this convention except when authorized so to do by a decree of the arbitral tribunal hereinafter referred to or by a three-fourths vote of the International Council of the League of Nations created by this convention.

"Each power that signs or agrees to this guarantees that it will not violate the territorial integrity or undermine the political independence of any other signatory or participant in this convention, unless allowed to do so by a decree from the arbitral tribunal mentioned below or by a three-fourths vote of the International Council of the League of Nations established by this convention."

"B

"In the event that any power signatory or adherent hereto shall fail to observe the covenant and guaranty set forth in the preceding article, such breach of covenant and guaranty shall ipso facto operate as an abrogation of this convention in so far as it applies to the offending power and furthermore as an abrogation of all treaties, conventions, and agreements heretofore or hereafter entered into between the offending power and all other powers signatory and adherent to this convention.

"If any signatory or party fails to follow the promises and guarantees stated in the previous article, that breach will automatically nullify this agreement as it applies to the violating party. Additionally, it will also void all treaties, conventions, and agreements made before or after between the violating party and all other signatories or parties to this agreement."

"C

"A breach of the covenant and guaranty declared in Article A shall constitute an act unfriendly to all other powers signatory and adherent hereto, and they shall forthwith sever all diplomatic, consular, and official relations with the offending power, and shall, through the International Council, hereinafter provided for, exchange views as to the measures necessary to restore the power, whose sovereignty has been invaded, to the rights and liberties which it possessed prior to such invasion and to prevent further violation thereof.

"A violation of the agreement and guarantee stated in Article A will be seen as an unfriendly act by all other signatory and supporting powers. They will immediately cut off all diplomatic, consular, and official relations with the offending power and will, through the International Council established hereafter, discuss the necessary measures to restore the sovereignty of the invaded power to the rights and freedoms it had before the invasion and to prevent any further violations."

"D

"Any interference with a vessel on the high seas or with aircraft proceeding over the high seas, which interference is not affirmatively sanctioned by the law of nations shall be, for the purposes of this convention, considered an impairment of political independence."

"Any interference with a ship on the open sea or with aircraft flying over the open sea, which interference is not positively approved by international law, shall be considered a violation of political independence for the purposes of this convention."

In considering the foregoing series of articles constituting a guaranty against one's own acts, instead of a guaranty against the acts of another, it must be remembered that, at the time of their preparation, I had not seen a draft of the President's proposed guaranty, though from conversations with Colonel House and from my study of Point XIV of "The Fourteen Points," I knew that it was affirmative rather than negative in form and would require positive action to be effective in the event that the menace of superior force was insufficient to prevent aggressive acts.

In looking at the series of articles that provide a guarantee against one's own actions rather than a guarantee against someone else's, it's important to note that when I was preparing these, I hadn't seen a draft of the President's proposed guarantee. However, from my discussions with Colonel House and my review of Point XIV of "The Fourteen Points," I understood that it was more about taking action rather than just stating something negative, and it would need proactive measures to work effectively if the threat of greater force wasn't enough to stop aggressive actions.

As far as I am able to judge from subsequently acquired knowledge, President Wilson at the time he received my letter of December 23 had a typewritten draft of the document which after certain amendments he later laid before the American Commissioners and which he had printed with a few verbal changes under the title of "The Covenant." In order to understand the two forms of guaranty which he had for consideration after he received my letter, I quote the article relating to it, which appears in the first printed draft of the Covenant.

As far as I can tell from what I learned later, President Wilson had a typewritten draft of the document when he received my letter on December 23. After making some changes, he presented it to the American Commissioners and had it printed with a few wording adjustments under the title "The Covenant." To understand the two types of guarantees he was considering after getting my letter, I’ll quote the article about it from the first printed draft of the Covenant.

III

"The Contracting Powers unite in guaranteeing to each other political independence and territorial integrity; but it is understood between them that such territorial readjustments, if any, as may in the future become necessary by reasons of changes in present racial conditions and aspirations or present social and political relationships, pursuant to the principle of self-determination, and also such territorial readjustments as may in the judgment of three fourths of the Delegates be demanded by the welfare and manifest interest of the people concerned, may be effected if agreeable to those peoples; and that territorial changes may involve material compensation. The Contracting Powers accept without reservation the principle that the peace of the world is superior in importance to every question of political jurisdiction or boundary."

"The Contracting Powers commit to ensuring each other's political independence and territorial integrity; however, they agree that any necessary territorial adjustments in the future, due to changes in current racial conditions, aspirations, or social and political relationships under the principle of self-determination, may occur. Additionally, if three-fourths of the Delegates believe adjustments are needed for the well-being and clear interests of the people involved, those changes can be made if the people agree to them; territorial changes may also require material compensation. The Contracting Powers fully accept that maintaining world peace is more important than any political jurisdiction or boundary issues."

It seems needless to comment upon the involved language and the uncertainty of meaning of this article wherein it provided for "territorial readjustments" of which there appeared to be two classes, one dependent on "self-determination," the other on the judgment of the Body of Delegates of the League. In view of the possible reasons which might be advanced for changes in territory and allegiance, justification for an appeal to the guarantors was by no means certain. If this article had been before me when the letter of December 23 was written, I might have gone much further in opposition to the President's plan for stabilizing peace in the world on the ground that a guaranty so conditioned would cause rather than prevent international discord.

It seems unnecessary to comment on the complicated language and unclear meaning of this article, which provided for "territorial adjustments." There seemed to be two types: one based on "self-determination" and the other on the judgment of the League's Body of Delegates. Given the possible reasons for changes in territory and allegiance, it was far from certain that there would be justification for an appeal to the guarantors. If I had seen this article when I wrote the letter on December 23, I might have strongly opposed the President's plan to stabilize peace in the world, arguing that a guarantee with such conditions would lead to, rather than prevent, international conflict.

Though without knowledge of the exact terms of the President's proposed guaranty, I did not feel for the reason stated that I could delay longer in submitting my views to the President. There was not time to work out a complete and well-digested plan for a League, but I had prepared in the rough several articles for discussion which related to the organization, and which might be incorporated in the organic agreement which I then assumed would be a separate document from the treaty restoring peace. While unwilling to lay these articles before the President until they were more carefully drafted, I enclosed in my letter the following as indicative of the character of the organization which it seemed to me would form a simple and practical agency common to all nations:

Although I didn’t know the exact details of the President’s proposed guarantee, I felt that I couldn’t wait any longer to share my thoughts with him. There wasn’t enough time to develop a complete and polished plan for a League, but I had drafted some rough articles for discussion that related to the organization and could be included in the basic agreement, which I assumed would be a separate document from the peace treaty. While I was hesitant to present these articles to the President until they were more thoroughly refined, I included the following in my letter to show the kind of organization that I believed would create a simple and practical agency common to all nations:

"Suggestions as to an International Council For Discussion

"Suggestions for an International Council for Discussion"

"December 21, 1918

December 21, 1918

"An International Council of the League of Nations is hereby constituted, which shall be the channel for communication between the members of the League, and the agent for common action.

"An International Council of the League of Nations is hereby formed, which will be the channel for communication between the members of the League and the representative for collective action."

"The International Council shall consist of the diplomatic representative of each party signatory or adherent to this convention at ——.

"The International Council will include the diplomatic representative of each party that signs or agrees to this convention at ——."

"Meetings of the International Council shall be held at ——, or in the event that the subject to be considered involves the interests of —— or its nationals, then at such other place outside the territory of a power whose interests are involved as the Supervisory Committee of the Council shall designate.

"Meetings of the International Council will be held at ——, or if the topic being discussed relates to the interests of —— or its citizens, then at a different location outside the territory of any power whose interests are involved, as designated by the Supervisory Committee of the Council."

"The officer charged with the conduct of the foreign affairs of the power where a meeting is held shall be the presiding officer thereof.

The officer responsible for managing the foreign affairs of the country where a meeting takes place will be the presiding officer.

"At the first meeting of the International Council a Supervisory Committee shall be chosen by a majority vote of the members present, which shall consist of five members and shall remain in office for two years or until their successors are elected.

"At the first meeting of the International Council, a Supervisory Committee will be elected by a majority vote of the members present. This committee will consist of five members and will serve for two years or until their successors are elected."

"The Supervisory Committee shall name a Secretariat which shall have charge of the archives of the Council and receive all communications addressed to the Council or Committee and send all communications issued by the Council or Committee.

"The Supervisory Committee will appoint a Secretariat that will be responsible for the Council's archives, receive all communications directed to the Council or Committee, and send out all communications issued by the Council or Committee."

"The Supervisory Committee may draft such rules of procedure as it deems necessary for conducting business coming before the Council or before the Committee.

"The Supervisory Committee can create rules of procedure that it thinks are necessary for handling business presented to the Council or the Committee."

"The Supervisory Committee may call a meeting of the Council at its discretion and must call a meeting at the request of any member of the Council provided the request contains a written statement of the subject to be discussed.

"The Supervisory Committee can schedule a meeting of the Council whenever it chooses and must arrange a meeting if any Council member requests it, as long as the request includes a written statement of the topic to be discussed."

"The archives of the Council shall be open at any time to any member of the Council, who may make and retain copies thereof.

"The Council's archives shall be accessible at any time to any Council member, who may make and keep copies of them."

"All expenses of the Supervisory Committee and Secretariat shall be borne equally by all powers signatory or adherent to this convention."

"All expenses of the Supervisory Committee and Secretariat will be shared equally by all countries that sign or adhere to this convention."

As indicated by the caption, this document was intended merely "for discussion" of the principal features of the organization. It should be noted that the basic principle is the equality of nations. No special privileges are granted to the major powers in the conduct of the organization. The rights and obligations of one member of the League are no more and no less than those of every other member. It is based on international democracy and denies international aristocracy.

As noted in the caption, this document was meant solely "for discussion" about the main aspects of the organization. It's important to emphasize that the core principle is the equality of nations. No special privileges are given to the major powers in the operation of the organization. The rights and responsibilities of one member of the League are exactly the same as those of every other member. It’s founded on international democracy and rejects international aristocracy.

Equality in the exercise of sovereign rights in times of peace, an equality which is imposed by the very nature of sovereignty, seemed to me fundamental to a world organization affecting in any way a nation's independence of action or its exercise of supreme authority over its external or domestic affairs. In my judgment any departure from that principle would be a serious error fraught with danger to the general peace of the world and to the recognized law of nations, since it could mean nothing less than the primacy of the Great Powers and the acknowledgment that because they possessed the physical might they had a right to control the affairs of the world in times of peace as well as in times of war. For the United States to admit that such primacy ought to be formed would be bad enough, but to suggest it indirectly by proposing an international organization based on that idea would be far worse.

Equality in the exercise of sovereign rights during peacetime, a principle dictated by the essence of sovereignty, felt essential to me for any global organization that impacts a nation's independence or its authority over its own internal or external matters. In my view, straying from that principle would be a grave mistake, presenting risks to global peace and the established laws of nations, as it could imply nothing less than the dominance of the Great Powers and the idea that their military strength grants them the right to control global affairs in both peacetime and wartime. For the United States to accept that such dominance should exist would be bad enough, but suggesting it indirectly by advocating for an international organization based on that concept would be even worse.

On January 22, 1917, the President in an address to the Senate had made the following declaration:

On January 22, 1917, the President, in a speech to the Senate, made the following declaration:

"The equality of nations upon which peace must be founded if it is to last must be an equality of rights; the guarantees exchanged must neither recognize nor imply a difference between big nations or small, between those that are powerful and those that are weak. Right must be based upon the common strength, not the individual strength, of the nations upon whose concert peace will depend. Equality of territory or of resources there of course cannot be; nor any other sort of equality not gained in the ordinary peaceful and legitimate development of the peoples themselves. But no one asks or expects anything more than an equality of rights."

"The equality of nations on which lasting peace depends must be based on equal rights; the guarantees exchanged should not acknowledge or imply any distinction between large nations and small ones, between the powerful and the weak. Rights should come from the shared strength, not the individual strength, of the nations that make up the foundation of peace. There obviously can't be equality in territory or resources, nor any other form of equality that isn't achieved through the normal peaceful and legitimate development of the people themselves. But no one asks for or expects anything more than equal rights."

In view of this sound declaration of principle it seemed hardly possible that the President, after careful consideration of the consequences of his plan of a guaranty requiring force to make it practical, would not perceive the fundamental error of creating a primacy of the Great Powers.

Given this clear statement of principle, it seemed unlikely that the President, after thoughtfully considering the implications of his plan for a guarantee that would require force to be effective, would not recognize the basic mistake of establishing the dominance of the Great Powers.

It was in order to prevent, if possible, the United States from becoming sponsor for an undemocratic principle that I determined to lay my partial plan of organization before the President at the earliest moment that I believed it would receive consideration.

It was to prevent, if possible, the United States from endorsing an undemocratic principle that I decided to present my partial plan for organization to the President at the earliest moment I thought it would be taken seriously.

To my letter of December 23 with its enclosed memoranda I never received a reply or even an acknowledgment. It is true that the day following its delivery the President went to Chaumont to spend Christmas at the headquarters of General Pershing and that almost immediately thereafter he visited London and two or three days after his return to Paris he set out for Rome. It is possible that Mr. Wilson in the midst of these crowded days had no time to digest or even to read my letter and its enclosed memoranda. It is possible that he was unable or unwilling to form an opinion as to their merits without time for meditation. I do not wish to be unjustly critical or to blame the President for a neglect which was the result of circumstance rather than of intention.

To my letter from December 23, which included some notes, I never got a response or even an acknowledgment. It’s true that the day after it was delivered, the President went to Chaumont to spend Christmas at General Pershing’s headquarters, and soon after that, he visited London. A few days after returning to Paris, he left for Rome. It’s possible that Mr. Wilson, amid these busy days, didn’t have time to digest or even read my letter and its notes. He might have been unable or unwilling to form an opinion about their value without time to think it over. I don’t want to be unfairly critical or blame the President for a lack of response that was due to circumstances rather than intention.

At the time I assumed that his failure to mention my letter in any way was because his visits to royalty exacted from him so much of his time that there was no opportunity to give the matter consideration. While some doubt was thrown on this assumption by the fact that the President held an hour's conference with the American Commissioners on January 1, just before departing for Italy, during which he discussed the favorable attitude of Mr. Lloyd George toward his (the President's) ideas as to a League of Nations, but never made any reference to my proposed substitute for the guaranty, I was still disposed to believe that there was a reasonable explanation for his silence and that upon his return from Rome he would discuss it.

At the time, I thought his failure to mention my letter was because visiting royalty took up so much of his time that he didn’t have a chance to think about it. While this assumption was somewhat questioned by the fact that the President had an hour-long meeting with the American Commissioners on January 1, just before leaving for Italy, where he talked about Mr. Lloyd George's positive attitude toward his (the President's) ideas for a League of Nations but never mentioned my proposed substitute for the guarantee, I still believed there was a reasonable explanation for his silence and that he would talk about it when he got back from Rome.

Having this expectation I continued the preparation of tentative provisions to be included in the charter of a League of Nations in the event one was negotiated, and which would in any event constitute a guide for the preparation of declarations to be included in the Treaty of Peace in case the negotiation as to a League was postponed until after peace had been restored. As has been said, it was my hope that there would be a separate convention organizing the League, but I was not as sanguine of this as many who believed this course would be followed.

With this expectation, I continued preparing preliminary guidelines to be included in the charter for a League of Nations if one were negotiated. These guidelines would also serve as a reference for creating declarations to be part of the Treaty of Peace if discussions about the League were delayed until after peace was restored. As mentioned, I hoped there would be a separate agreement to establish the League, but I wasn't as optimistic about this as many others who thought this would definitely happen.

It later developed that the President never had any other purpose than to include the detailed plan of organization in the peace treaty, whether the treaty was preliminary or definitive. When he departed for Italy he had not declared this purpose to the Commissioners, but from some source, which I failed to note at the time and cannot now recollect, I gained the impression that he intended to pursue this policy, for on December 29 I wrote in my book of notes:

It later became clear that the President's only goal was to include the detailed organizational plan in the peace treaty, regardless of whether it was preliminary or final. When he left for Italy, he hadn’t shared this goal with the Commissioners, but from some source that I didn’t record at the time and can’t remember now, I got the sense that he planned to follow through on this policy, because on December 29 I wrote in my notebook:

"It is evident that the President is determined to incorporate in the peace treaty an elaborate scheme for the League of Nations which will excite all sorts of opposition at home and abroad and invite much discussion.

"It’s clear that the President is set on including a detailed plan for the League of Nations in the peace treaty, which will stir up various kinds of opposition both at home and internationally and spark a lot of discussion."

"The articles relating to the League ought to be few and brief. They will not be. They will be many and long. If we wait till they are accepted, it will be four or five months before peace is signed, and I fear to say how much longer it will take to have it ratified.

"The articles about the League should be few and concise. They won't be. They'll be numerous and lengthy. If we wait until they are approved, it will take four or five months before peace is signed, and I dread to think about how much longer it will take to get it ratified."

"It is perhaps foolish to prophesy, but I will take the chance. Two months from now we will still be haggling over the League of Nations and an exasperated world will be cursing us for not having made peace. I hope that I am a false prophet, but I fear my prophecy will come true. We are riding a hobby, and riding to a fall."

"It might be foolish to make predictions, but I’ll take the risk. Two months from now, we’ll still be arguing over the League of Nations, and a frustrated world will be blaming us for not achieving peace. I hope I’m wrong, but I’m afraid my prediction will come true. We’re on a risky path, and it’s leading to trouble."

By the time the President returned from his triumphal journey to Rome I had completed the articles upon which I had been working; at least they were in form for discussion. At a conference at the Hôtel Crillon between President Wilson and the American Commissioners on January 7, I handed to him the draft articles saying that they were supplemental to my letter of December 23. He took them without comment and without making any reference to my unanswered letter.

By the time the President got back from his successful trip to Rome, I had finished the articles I had been working on; at least they were ready for discussion. During a meeting at the Hôtel Crillon between President Wilson and the American Commissioners on January 7, I gave him the draft articles, mentioning that they were additional to my letter from December 23. He took them without saying anything and didn't mention my unanswered letter.

The first two articles of the "International Agreement," as I termed the document, were identical in language with the memoranda dealing with a mutual covenant and with an international council which I had enclosed in my letter of December 23. It is needless, therefore, to repeat them here.

The first two articles of the "International Agreement," as I called the document, were word-for-word the same as the memoranda about a mutual covenant and an international council that I included in my letter from December 23. So, it’s unnecessary to repeat them here.

Article III of the so-called "Agreement" was entitled "Peaceful
Settlements of International Disputes," and read as follows:

Article III of the so-called "Agreement" was titled "Peaceful
Settlements of International Disputes," and stated:

"Clause 1

"Clause 1"

"In the event that there is a controversy between two or more members of the League of Nations which fails of settlement through diplomatic channels, one of the following means of settlement shall be employed:

"In case there's a disagreement between two or more members of the League of Nations that can't be resolved through diplomatic means, one of the following methods of resolution will be used:

"1. The parties to the controversy shall constitute a joint commission to investigate and report jointly or severally to their Governments the facts and make recommendations as to settlement. After such report a further effort shall be made to reach a diplomatic settlement of the controversy.

"1. The parties involved in the dispute will form a joint commission to investigate and report either together or separately to their governments on the facts and make recommendations for resolving the issue. After this report, another attempt will be made to achieve a diplomatic resolution to the dispute."

"2. The parties shall by agreement arrange for the submission of the controversy to arbitration mutually agreed upon, or to the Arbitral Tribunal hereinafter referred to.

"2. The parties agree to arrange for the submission of the dispute to mutually agreed-upon arbitration or to the Arbitral Tribunal mentioned later."

"3. Any party may, unless the second means of settlement is mutually adopted, submit the controversy to the Supervisory Committee of the International Council; and the Committee shall forthwith (a) name and direct a special commission to investigate and report upon the subject; (b) name and direct a commission to mediate between the parties to the controversy; or (c) direct the parties to submit the controversy to the Arbitral Tribunal for judicial settlement, it being understood that the direction to arbitrate may be made at any time in the event that investigation and mediation fail to result in a settlement of the controversy.

"3. Any party may submit the dispute to the Supervisory Committee of the International Council, unless both parties agree on a different method of resolving it. The Committee will promptly (a) appoint a special commission to investigate the issue and report back; (b) appoint a commission to facilitate mediation between the parties involved; or (c) direct the parties to take the dispute to the Arbitral Tribunal for a judicial resolution, recognizing that the decision to arbitrate can be made at any point if the investigation and mediation do not lead to a resolution."

"Clause 2

Clause 2

"No party to a controversy shall assume any authority or perform any acts based upon disputed rights without authorization of the Supervisory Committee, such authorization being limited in all cases to the pendency of the controversy and its final settlement and being in no way prejudicial to the rights of the parties. An authorization thus granted by the Supervisory Committee may be modified or superseded by mutual agreement of the parties, by order of an arbitrator or arbitrators selected by the parties, or by order of the Arbitral Tribunal if the controversy is submitted to it.

"No party involved in a dispute should take any actions or claim any authority regarding disputed rights without the approval of the Supervisory Committee. This approval is only valid while the dispute is ongoing and until it’s fully resolved, and it does not affect the rights of any parties involved. Any authorization given by the Supervisory Committee can be changed or replaced by mutual consent of the parties, by an order from an arbitrator or a panel of arbitrators chosen by the parties, or by an order from the Arbitral Tribunal if the dispute is brought before it."

"Clause 3

"Section 3"

"The foregoing clause shall not apply to cases in which the constituted authorities of a power are unable or fail to give protection to the lives and property of nationals of another power. In the event that it becomes necessary for a power to use its military or naval forces to safeguard the lives or property of its nationals within the territorial jurisdiction of another power, the facts and reasons for such action shall be forthwith reported to the Supervisory Committee, which shall determine the course of action to be adopted in order to protect the rights of all parties, and shall notify the same to the governments involved which shall comply with such notification. In the event that a government fails to comply therewith it shall be deemed to have violated the covenant and guaranty hereinbefore set forth."

The previous clause won't apply in situations where the authorities of one power can't or don't provide protection to the lives and property of nationals from another power. If a power needs to use its military or naval forces to protect the lives or property of its nationals within another power's territory, the details and reasons for this action must be immediately reported to the Supervisory Committee. This committee will decide on the best course of action to safeguard everyone's rights and will inform the involved governments, which must follow this notification. If a government fails to comply, it will be considered to have broken the covenant and guarantee mentioned earlier.

The other articles follow:

The other articles follow:

"ARTICLE IV

"Revision of Arbitral Tribunal and Codification of International Law

Revision of Arbitral Tribunal and Codification of International Law

"Clause 1

"Clause 1"

"The International Council, within one year after its organization, shall notify to the powers signatory and adherent to this convention and shall invite all other powers to send delegates to an international conference at such place and time as the Council may determine and not later than six months after issuance of such notification and invitation.

"The International Council, within one year of its formation, will inform the signatory and adhering powers of this convention and will invite all other powers to send delegates to an international conference at a location and time determined by the Council, and no later than six months after this notification and invitation are sent."

"Clause 2

"Clause 2"

"The International Conference shall consider the revision of the constitution and procedure of the Arbitral Tribunal and provisions for the amicable settlement of international disputes established by the I Treaty signed at The Hague in 1907, and shall formulate codes embodying the principles of international law applicable in time of peace and the rules of warfare on land and sea and in the air. The revision and codification when completed shall be embodied in a treaty or treaties.

"The International Conference will review the constitution and procedures of the Arbitral Tribunal, as well as the provisions for the peaceful resolution of international disputes set up by the I Treaty signed in The Hague in 1907. It will also develop codes that reflect the principles of international law that apply during peacetime and the rules of warfare on land, sea, and in the air. Once the revision and codification are complete, they will be included in a treaty or treaties."

"Clause 3

Section 3

"The International Council shall prepare and submit with the notification and invitation above provided a preliminary programme of the International Conference, which shall be subject to modification or amendment by the Conference.

The International Council will prepare and submit along with the notification and invitation mentioned above a preliminary program for the International Conference, which can be modified or amended by the Conference.

"Clause 4

"Clause 4"

"Until the treaty of revision of the constitution and procedure of the Arbitral Tribunal becomes operative, the provisions of the I Treaty signed at The Hague in 1907 shall continue in force, and all references herein to the 'Arbitral Tribunal' shall be understood to be the Tribunal constituted under the I Treaty, but upon the treaty of revision coming into force the references shall be construed as applying to the Arbitral Tribunal therein constituted.

"Until the revised treaty of the constitution and procedures for the Arbitral Tribunal takes effect, the rules of the I Treaty signed in The Hague in 1907 will remain in effect, and all mentions of the 'Arbitral Tribunal' here will refer to the Tribunal established under the I Treaty. However, once the revised treaty is in effect, those references will be interpreted as applying to the Arbitral Tribunal created under that treaty."

"ARTICLE V

"Publication of Treaties and Agreements

"Publishing Treaties and Agreements"

"Clause 1

"Clause 1"

"Each power, signatory or adherent to this convention, severally agrees with all other parties hereto that it will not exchange the ratification of any treaty or convention hereinafter entered into by it with any other power until thirty days after the full text of such treaty or convention has been published in the public press of the parties thereto and a copy has been filed with the Secretariat of the League of Nations.

"Each country that signs or agrees to this convention agrees with all the other parties that it will not exchange the ratification of any treaty or convention it enters into in the future with any other country until thirty days after the full text of that treaty or convention has been published in the media of the involved parties and a copy has been submitted to the Secretariat of the League of Nations."

"Clause 2

"Section 2"

"No international agreement, to which a power signatory or adherent to this convention, is a party, shall become operative or be put in force until published and filed as aforesaid.

"No international agreement, to which a signatory or supporter of this convention is a party, shall take effect or be enforced until it is published and filed as mentioned above."

"Clause 3

"Clause 3"

"All treaties, conventions and agreements, to which a power, signatory or adherent to this convention, is a party, and which are in force or to come into force and which have not been heretofore published, shall within six months after the signature of this convention be published and filed as aforesaid or abrogated or denounced.

"All treaties, conventions, and agreements that a power, signatory or adherent to this convention, is part of, and that are currently in force or will come into force and have not been published before, must be published and filed as mentioned above, or canceled or denounced, within six months after the signing of this convention."

"ARTICLE VI

"Equality of Commercial Privileges

"Equal Commercial Privileges"

"The powers, signatory and adherent to this convention agree jointly and severally not to discriminate against or in favor of any power in the matter of commerce or trade or of industrial privileges; and they further agree that all treaties, conventions and agreements now in force or to come into force or hereinafter negotiated shall be considered as subject to the 'most favored nation' doctrine, whether they contain or do not contain a clause to that effect. It is specifically declared that it is the purpose of this article not to limit any power in imposing upon commerce and trade such restrictions and burdens as it may deem proper but to make such impositions apply equally and impartially to all other powers, their nationals and ships.

The powers that have signed and agreed to this convention collectively and individually agree not to discriminate against or favor any power regarding commerce, trade, or industrial privileges. They also agree that all treaties, conventions, and agreements currently in effect, or that will come into effect, or be negotiated in the future, will be subject to the 'most favored nation' principle, regardless of whether they include a clause to that effect. It is specifically stated that this article's purpose is not to restrict any power in imposing regulations and burdens on commerce and trade as they see fit, but to ensure that such regulations apply equally and fairly to all other powers, their nationals, and their ships.

"This article shall not apply, however, to any case, in which a power has committed an unfriendly act against the members of the League of Nations as defined in Article I and in which commercial and trade relations are denied or restricted by agreements between the members as a measure of restoration or protection of the rights of a power injured by such unfriendly act."

"This article does not apply to any situation where a country has done something hostile toward the members of the League of Nations, as defined in Article I, and where trade and commercial relations are limited or restricted by agreements between the members to restore or protect the rights of a country that has been harmed by such hostile actions."

These proposed articles, which were intended for discussion before drafting the provisions constituting a League of Nations and which did not purport to be a completed document, are given in full because there seems no simpler method of showing the differences between the President and me as to the form, functions, and authority of an international organization. They should be compared with the draft of the "Covenant" which the President had when these proposed articles were handed to him; the text of the President's draft appears in the Appendix (page 281). Comparison will disclose the irreconcilable differences between the two projects.

These proposed articles were meant for discussion before drafting the provisions that would form a League of Nations, and they aren’t a finalized document. They are presented in full because there’s no easier way to illustrate the differences between the President and me regarding the structure, functions, and authority of an international organization. These should be compared to the draft of the "Covenant" that the President had when he received these proposed articles; the text of the President's draft is included in the Appendix (page 281). Comparing them will reveal the fundamental differences between the two projects.

Of these differences the most vital was in the character of the international guaranty of territorial and political sovereignty. That difference has already been discussed. The second in importance was the practical repudiation by the President of the doctrine of the equality of nations, which, as has been shown, was an unavoidable consequence of an affirmative guaranty which he had declared to be absolutely essential to an effective world union. The repudiation, though by indirection, was none the less evident in the recognition in the President's plan of the primacy of the Great Powers through giving to them a permanent majority on the "Executive Council" which body substantially controlled the activities of the League. A third marked difference was in Mr. Wilson's exaltation of the executive power of the League and the subordination of the administration of legal justice to that power, and in my advocacy of an independent international judiciary, whose decisions would be final and whose place in the organization of the nations would be superior, since I considered a judicial tribunal the most practical agency for removing causes of war.

Of these differences, the most important was in the nature of the international guarantee of territorial and political sovereignty. That difference has already been discussed. The second most significant was the President's practical rejection of the principle of equality among nations, which, as previously shown, was an unavoidable result of an affirmative guarantee he claimed was essential for an effective world union. This rejection, although indirect, was still clear in the President's plan, which acknowledged the dominance of the Great Powers by giving them a permanent majority on the "Executive Council," a group that effectively controlled the League's activities. A third notable difference was in Mr. Wilson's emphasis on the executive power of the League and the subordination of legal justice to that power, while I advocated for an independent international judiciary, whose decisions would be final and whose role in the organization of nations would be superior, as I believed that a judicial tribunal would be the most effective means of eliminating the causes of war.

The difference as to international courts and the importance of applied legal justice requires further consideration in order to understand the divergence of views which existed as to the fundamental idea of organization of the League.

The difference regarding international courts and the significance of practical legal justice needs more attention to grasp the varying opinions that were held about the core concept of the League's organization.

President Wilson in his Covenant, as at first submitted to the American Commissioners, made no provision for the establishment of a World Court of Justice, and no reference of any sort was made to The Hague Tribunal of Arbitration. It is not, in my opinion, a misstatement to say that the President intentionally omitted judicial means of composing international disputes preferring to leave settlements of that sort to arrangement between the parties or else to the Body of Delegates or the Executive Council, both of which bodies being essentially diplomatic or political in their composition would lack the judicial point of view, since their members would presumably be influenced by their respective national interests and by political considerations rather than by a desire and purpose to do impartial justice by applying legal principles.

President Wilson, in his original Covenant submitted to the American Commissioners, didn't include any plans for creating a World Court of Justice, nor did he mention The Hague Tribunal of Arbitration. In my view, it's fair to say that the President deliberately left out judicial methods for resolving international disputes, choosing instead to rely on arrangements between the involved parties or on the Body of Delegates or the Executive Council. Both of these groups are essentially diplomatic or political in nature, which means they would lack a judicial perspective; their members would likely be swayed by their own national interests and political factors rather than a commitment to fair justice through the application of legal principles.

It is true that in Article V of the first draft of the Covenant (Appendix) there is an agreement to submit to arbitration certain classes of controversies and a method of selecting arbitrators is provided—a method, by the way, which the actual experience of a century has shown to be the least satisfactory in administering legal justice, since it almost inevitably leads to a compromise which impairs the just rights of one of the parties. But, to my mind, a provision, far more objectionable than the antiquated and unsatisfactory method of arbitration provided, was that which made an arbitral award reviewable on appeal to the Body of Delegates of the League, which could set aside the award even if the arbitrators had rendered a unanimous decision and compel a rehearing before other arbitrators. International arbitration as a method of applying the principles of justice to disputes between nations would, in the first instance at least, have become a farce if this provision had been adopted. As an award based on compromise is seldom, if ever, satisfactory to both parties, the right of appeal would in substantially every case have been invoked and the award would have been reviewed by the Body of Delegates, who would practically render a final decision since the new arbitrators would presumably adopt it. The effect of this provision as to appeals was, therefore, to supplant judicial settlements by political compromises and diplomatic adjustments, in which the national interests of the judges, many of whom would be untrained in juridical procedure, would be decided, if not deciding, factors. Manifestly the expediency of the moment would be far more potent in the decisions reached than the principles and precepts of international law.

It’s true that in Article V of the first draft of the Covenant (Appendix), there’s an agreement to submit certain types of disputes to arbitration, and a method for selecting arbitrators is laid out—though, as actual experience over the past century has shown, this method is the least effective for delivering legal justice, as it tends to lead to compromises that undermine the fair rights of one party. However, I find a provision even more problematic than the outdated and ineffective arbitration method: the one that allows an arbitral award to be reviewed by the Body of Delegates of the League, which could overturn the award even if the arbitrators had reached a unanimous decision and force a rehearing with different arbitrators. If this provision had been adopted, international arbitration as a way to apply justice principles to disputes between nations would have, at least initially, become a joke. Since compromise-based awards rarely satisfy both parties, the right to appeal would practically always be used, resulting in the Body of Delegates reviewing the award, which would effectively deliver a final decision since the new arbitrators would likely go along with it. Thus, the appeal provision would replace judicial resolutions with political compromises and diplomatic adjustments, where the national interests of the judges—many of whom would lack legal training—would play a role in the outcome. Clearly, the practical concerns of the moment would weigh more heavily in the decisions than the principles and rules of international law.

I shall not express here my opinion as to the reasons which I believe impelled the President to insert in the Covenant these extraordinary provisions which deprived arbitral courts of that independence of the executive authority which has been in modern times considered essential to the impartial administration of justice. But, when one considers how jealously and effectively the Constitution of the United States and the constitutions of the various States of the Union guard the judiciary from executive and legislative interference, the proposal in the President's plan for a League of Nations to abandon that great principle in the settlement of international disputes of a justiciable nature causes speculation as to Mr. Wilson's real opinion of the American political system which emphasizes the separation and independence of the three coordinate branches of government.

I won't share my thoughts on why I think the President included these unusual provisions in the Covenant that took away arbitral courts' independence from executive authority, which is seen as essential to fair justice in modern times. However, when you consider how carefully the U.S. Constitution and the constitutions of the various states protect the judiciary from interference by the executive and legislative branches, the suggestion in the President's plan for a League of Nations to abandon that crucial principle in resolving international disputes raises questions about Mr. Wilson's true views on the American political system that prioritizes the separation and independence of the three branches of government.

That a provision found its way into the draft of the Covenant, which the President, on February 3, 1919, laid before the Commission on the League of Nations, declaring for the creation by the League of a permanent court of international justice, was not due, I feel sure, to any spontaneous thought on the part of President Wilson.

That a clause made it into the draft of the Covenant, which the President presented to the Commission on the League of Nations on February 3, 1919, advocating for the League to establish a permanent court for international justice, was not, I am certain, a result of any spontaneous idea from President Wilson.

My own views as to the relative value of the settlement of an international controversy, which is by its nature justiciable, by a body of diplomats and of the settlement by a body of trained jurists were fully set forth in an address which I delivered before the American Bar Association at its annual meeting at Boston on September 5,1919.

My thoughts on the relative value of resolving an international dispute, which can be addressed legally, by a group of diplomats versus a group of trained jurists were clearly expressed in a speech I gave to the American Bar Association at its annual meeting in Boston on September 5, 1919.

An extract from that address will show the radical difference between the President's views and mine.

An excerpt from that speech will highlight the significant difference between the President's views and mine.

"While abstract justice cannot [under present conditions] be depended upon as a firm basis on which to constitute an international concord for the preservation of peace and good relations between nations, legal justice offers a common ground where the nations can meet to settle their controversies. No nation can refuse in the face of the opinion of the world to declare its unwillingness to recognize the legal rights of other nations or to submit to the judgment of an impartial tribunal a dispute involving the determination of such rights. The moment, however, that we go beyond the clearly defined field of legal justice we enter the field of diplomacy where national interests and ambitions are to-day the controlling factors of national action. Concession and compromise are the chief agents of diplomatic settlement instead of the impartial application of legal justice which is essential to a judicial settlement. Furthermore, the two modes of settlement differ in that a judicial settlement rests upon the precept that all nations, whether great or small, are equal, but in the sphere of diplomacy the inequality of nations is not only recognized, but unquestionably influences the adjustment of international differences. Any change in the relative power of nations, a change which is continually taking place, makes more or less temporary diplomatic settlements, but in no way affects a judicial settlement.

"While abstract justice can't be relied on as a stable foundation for establishing international harmony to maintain peace and good relationships between nations, legal justice serves as a common ground where countries can come together to resolve their disputes. No nation can ignore global opinion and refuse to acknowledge the legal rights of other nations or submit a disagreement about those rights to an impartial tribunal. However, as soon as we stray from the clearly defined area of legal justice, we enter the realm of diplomacy, where national interests and ambitions dominate national actions today. In diplomatic resolutions, concession and compromise are the primary tools, rather than the fair application of legal justice that is crucial for a judicial resolution. Moreover, the two approaches to resolution differ in that a judicial settlement is based on the principle that all nations, large or small, are equal, while in diplomacy, the inequality of nations is both recognized and clearly impacts the resolution of international issues. Any shift in the relative power of nations, which is constantly occurring, makes diplomatic settlements somewhat temporary, but does not impact a judicial settlement."

"However, then, international society may be organized for the future and whatever machinery may be set up to minimize the possibilities of war, I believe that the agency which may be counted upon to function with certainty is that which develops and applies legal justice."

"However, international society can be structured for the future, and no matter what systems are put in place to reduce the chances of war, I believe that the force we can rely on to consistently work is the one that fosters and implements legal justice."

Every other agency, regardless of its form, will be found, when analyzed, to be diplomatic in character and subject to those impulses and purposes which generally affect diplomatic negotiations. With a full appreciation of the advantage to be gained for the world at large through the common consideration of a vexatious international question by a body representing all nations, we ought not to lose sight of the fact that such consideration and the action resulting from it are essentially diplomatic in nature. It is, in brief, the transference of a dispute in a particular case from the capitals of the disputants to the place where the delegates of the nations assemble to deliberate together on matters which affect their common interests. It does not—and this we should understand—remove the question from the processes of diplomacy or prevent the influences which enter into diplomacy from affecting its consideration. Nor does it to an appreciable extent change the actual inequality which exists among nations in the matter of power and influence.

Every other agency, no matter its form, will be seen, upon examination, as diplomatic in nature and influenced by the motivations and goals that typically impact diplomatic discussions. While we should recognize the benefits of addressing a troublesome international issue through a body that represents all nations, we must remember that such discussions and the resulting actions are inherently diplomatic. In simple terms, it's about moving a dispute in a specific case from the capitals of the parties involved to the location where representatives from various nations come together to talk about issues that matter to them all. It doesn't—and we need to grasp this—take the issue out of diplomatic processes or stop the forces that affect diplomacy from influencing how it's considered. Nor does it significantly alter the actual imbalance of power and influence that exists among nations.

"On the other hand, justice applied through the agency of an impartial tribunal clothed with an international jurisdiction eliminates the diplomatic methods of compromise and concession and recognizes that before the law all nations are equal and equally entitled to the exercise of their rights as sovereign and independent states. In a word, international democracy exists in the sphere of legal justice and, up to the present time, in no other relation between nations.

"On the other hand, justice administered by an impartial court with international authority removes the diplomatic tactics of compromise and concession, affirming that all nations are equal under the law and equally entitled to exercise their rights as sovereign and independent states. In short, international democracy exists within the realm of legal justice and, until now, in no other relationship between nations."

"Let us, then, with as little delay as possible establish an international tribunal or tribunals of justice with The Hague Court as a foundation; let us provide an easier, a cheaper, and better procedure than now exists; and let us draft a simple and concise body of legal principles to be applied to the questions to be adjudicated. When that has been accomplished—and it ought not to be a difficult task if the delegates of the Governments charged with it are chosen for their experience and learning in the field of jurisprudence—we shall, in my judgment, have done more to prevent international wars through removing their causes than can be done by any other means that has been devised or suggested."

"Let us quickly set up an international court or courts of justice with The Hague Court as a base; let’s create a simpler, cheaper, and better process than we have now; and let’s write a clear and straightforward set of legal principles to apply to the issues being judged. Once this is done—and it shouldn’t be too hard if the delegates selected for this task are chosen for their expertise and knowledge in law—we will have done more to prevent international wars by addressing their root causes than any other method that has been proposed."

The views, which I thus publicly expressed at Boston in September, 1919, while the President was upon his tour of the country in favor of the Covenant of the League of Nations, were the same as those that I held at Paris in December, 1918, before I had seen the President's first draft of a Covenant, as the following will indicate.

The views I publicly shared in Boston in September 1919, while the President was touring the country to promote the Covenant of the League of Nations, were the same as those I held in Paris in December 1918, before I had seen the President's first draft of the Covenant, as the following will show.

On December 17, 1918, three days after arriving in Paris, I had, as has been stated, a long conference with Colonel House on the Peace Conference and the subjects to come before it. I urged him in the course of our conversation "to persuade the President to make the nucleus of his proposed League of Nations an international court pointing out that it was the simplest and best way of organizing the world for peace, and that, if in addition the general principles of international law were codified and the right of inquiry confided to the court, everything practical would have been done to prevent wars in the future" (quoted from a memorandum of the conversation made at the time). I also urged upon the Colonel that The Hague Tribunal be made the basis of the judicial organization, but that it be expanded and improved to meet the new conditions. I shall have something further to say on this subject.

On December 17, 1918, three days after arriving in Paris, I had, as previously mentioned, a long meeting with Colonel House about the Peace Conference and the topics that would be discussed. During our conversation, I urged him to convince the President to make an international court the core of his proposed League of Nations, explaining that it was the simplest and best way to organize the world for peace. I pointed out that if we also codified the general principles of international law and entrusted the court with the right of inquiry, we would practically do everything possible to prevent future wars (quoted from a memorandum of the conversation made at the time). I also emphasized to the Colonel that we should use The Hague Tribunal as the foundation for the judicial organization but that it should be expanded and improved to adapt to new conditions. I will have more to say on this topic later.

Reverting now to the draft of articles which I had in form on January 5, 1919, it must be borne in mind that I then had no reason to think that the President would omit from his plan an independent judicial agency for the administration of legal justice, although I did realize that he gave first place to the mutual guaranty and intended to build a League on that as a nucleus. It did not seem probable that an American, a student of the political institutions of the United States and familiar with their operation, would fail to incorporate in any scheme for world organization a judicial system which would be free from the control and even from the influence of the political and diplomatic branch of the organization. The benefit, if not the necessity, of such a division of authority seemed so patent that the omission of a provision to that effect in the original draft of the Covenant condemned it to one who believed in the principles of government which found expression in American institutions. Fortunately the defect was in a measure cured before the Commission on the League of Nations formally met to discuss the subject, though not before the Covenant had been laid before the American Commissioners.

Looking back at the draft of articles I had prepared on January 5, 1919, it's important to remember that I had no reason to believe the President would leave out an independent judicial agency for administering legal justice. I understood that he prioritized mutual guarantees and intended to build a League around that as its core. It seemed unlikely that an American, knowledgeable about the political institutions of the United States and how they function, would neglect to include a judicial system in any plan for global organization—one that would be free from the control and influence of the political and diplomatic branches of the organization. The advantage, if not the necessity, of such a separation of powers was so clear that not including a provision for it in the original draft of the Covenant seemed inadequate to someone who believed in the principles reflected in American governance. Luckily, this oversight was partially addressed before the Commission on the League of Nations officially convened to discuss the matter, though it was not before the Covenant was presented to the American Commissioners.

The articles of a proposed convention for the creation of an international organization were not intended, as I have said, to form a complete convention. They were suggestive only of the principal features of a plan which could, if the President desired, arouse discussion as to the right theory and the fundamental principles of the international organization which there seemed little doubt would be declared by the Paris Conference.

The articles of a proposed convention for creating an international organization were not meant, as I mentioned, to be a complete convention. They were just meant to highlight the main features of a plan that could, if the President wanted, spark discussions about the proper theory and the fundamental principles of the international organization that would likely be established by the Paris Conference.

Among the suggested articles there was none covering the subject of disarmament, because the problem was highly technical requiring the consideration of military and naval experts. Nor was there any reference to the mandatory system because there had not been, to my knowledge, any mention of it at that time in connection with the President's plan, though General Smuts had given it prominence in his proposed scheme.

Among the suggested articles, there wasn’t any that addressed the issue of disarmament, as it was a highly technical problem that needed input from military and naval experts. There was also no mention of the mandatory system because, to my knowledge, it hadn’t been referenced at that time in relation to the President’s plan, even though General Smuts had highlighted it in his proposed scheme.

During the preparation of these suggestive articles I made a brief memorandum on the features, which seemed to me salient, of any international agreement to prevent wars in the future, and which in my opinion ought to be in mind when drafting such an agreement. The first three paragraphs of the memorandum follow:

During the preparation of these insightful articles, I jotted down a brief note on the key aspects that I believe are important for any international agreement aimed at preventing future wars, and that should be considered when creating such an agreement. The first three paragraphs of the memo are as follows:

"There are three doctrines which should be incorporated in the Treaty of Peace if wars are to be avoided and equal justice is to prevail in international affairs.

"There are three principles that should be included in the Treaty of Peace if we want to prevent wars and ensure fair justice in international relations."

   "These three doctrines may be popularly termed 'Hands Off,' the 'Open
   Door,' and 'Publicity.'

"These three doctrines can be commonly known as 'Hands Off,' the 'Open
   Door,' and 'Publicity.'

"The first pertains to national possessions and national rights; the second to international commerce and economic conditions; and the third, to international agreements."

"The first relates to national assets and national rights; the second to global trade and economic conditions; and the third to international treaties."

An examination of the articles which I prepared shows that these doctrines are developed in them, although at the time I was uncertain whether they ought to appear in the convention creating the League or in the Preliminary Treaty of Peace, which I believed, in common with the prevailing belief, would be negotiated. My impression was that they should appear in the Peace Treaty and possibly be repeated in the League Treaty, if the two were kept distinct.

An examination of the articles I prepared shows that these doctrines are included in them, although at the time I wasn't sure whether they should be in the convention creating the League or in the Preliminary Treaty of Peace, which I thought, like many others, would be negotiated. I felt they should be included in the Peace Treaty and maybe repeated in the League Treaty if the two were kept separate.

CHAPTER V

THE AFFIRMATIVE GUARANTY AND BALANCE OF POWER

While I was engaged in the preparation of these articles for discussion, which were based primarily on the equality of nations and avoided a mutual guaranty or other undertaking necessitating a departure from that principle, M. Clemenceau delivered an important address in the Chamber of Deputies at its session on December 30, 1918. In this address the French Premier declared himself in favor of maintaining the doctrine of "the balance of power" and of supporting it by a concert of the Great Powers. During his remarks he made the following significant assertion, "This system of alliances, which I do not renounce, will be my guiding thought at the Conference, if your confidence sends me to it, so that there will be no separation in peace of the four powers which have battled side by side."

While I was preparing these articles for discussion, which focused mainly on the equality of nations and avoided any mutual guarantee or other commitments that would require straying from that principle, M. Clemenceau delivered an important speech in the Chamber of Deputies on December 30, 1918. In this speech, the French Prime Minister expressed his support for maintaining the doctrine of "the balance of power" and backing it up with a concert of the Great Powers. During his comments, he made the following notable statement, "This system of alliances, which I do not reject, will be my guiding thought at the Conference, if your confidence allows me to attend, so that there will be no separation in peace among the four powers that have fought alongside each other."

M. Clemenceau's words caused a decided sensation among the delegates already in Paris and excited much comment in the press. The public interest was intensified by the fact that President Wilson had but a day or two before, in an address at Manchester, England, denounced the doctrine of "the balance of power" as belonging to the old international order which had been repudiated because it had produced the conditions that resulted in the Great War.

M. Clemenceau's comments created quite a stir among the delegates already in Paris and sparked a lot of discussion in the media. Public interest grew even more because just a day or two before, President Wilson had spoken in Manchester, England, condemning the idea of "the balance of power" as part of the outdated international system that had been rejected since it led to the circumstances that caused the Great War.

A week after the delivery of M. Clemenceau's address I discussed his declarations at some length with Colonel House, and he agreed with me that the doctrine was entirely contrary to the public opinion of the world and that every effort should be made to prevent its revival and to end the "system of alliances" which M. Clemenceau desired to continue.

A week after M. Clemenceau's speech, I talked about his statements at length with Colonel House, and he agreed that the doctrine was completely against public opinion worldwide and that we should do everything possible to stop its resurgence and to dismantle the "system of alliances" that M. Clemenceau wanted to maintain.

During this conversation I pointed out that the form of affirmative guaranty, which the President then had in mind, would unavoidably impose the burden of enforcing it upon the Great Powers, and that they, having that responsibility, would demand the right to decide at what time and in what manner the guaranty should be enforced. This seemed to me to be only a different application of the principle expressed in the doctrine of "the balance of power" and to amount to a practical continuance of the alliances formed for prosecution of the war. I said that, in my judgment, if the President's guaranty was made the central idea of the League of Nations, it would play directly into the hands of M. Clemenceau because it could mean nothing other than the primacy of the great military and naval powers; that I could not understand how the President was able to harmonize his plan of a positive guaranty with his utterances at Manchester; and that, if he clung to his plan, he would have to accept the Clemenceau doctrine, which would to all intents transform the Conference into a second Congress of Vienna and result in a reversion to the old undesirable order, and its continuance in the League of Nations.

During this conversation, I pointed out that the type of affirmative guarantee the President was thinking of would inevitably place the responsibility of enforcing it on the Great Powers. Since they would have that responsibility, they would expect the right to decide when and how the guarantee should be enforced. This seemed to me to be just a different take on the principle expressed in the doctrine of "the balance of power" and essentially a practical continuation of the alliances formed during the war. I mentioned that, in my view, if the President's guarantee became the main idea of the League of Nations, it would essentially support M. Clemenceau’s position because it could only mean the dominance of the major military and naval powers. I couldn’t understand how the President could reconcile his plan for a positive guarantee with his statements in Manchester, and that if he stuck with his plan, he would have to accept the Clemenceau doctrine, which would effectively turn the Conference into a second Congress of Vienna and lead to a return to the old, unwanted order, which would continue within the League of Nations.

It was my hope that Colonel House, to whom I had shown the letter and memoranda which I had sent to the President, would be so impressed with the inconsistency of favoring the affirmative guaranty and of opposing the doctrine of "the balance of power," that he would exert his influence with the President to persuade him to find a substitute for the guaranty which Mr. Wilson then favored. It seemed politic to approach the President in this way in view of the fact that he had never acknowledged my letter or manifested any inclination to discuss the subject with me.

I hoped that Colonel House, to whom I had shown the letter and notes I sent to the President, would be so struck by the inconsistency of supporting the affirmative guarantee while opposing the idea of "the balance of power," that he would use his influence with the President to convince him to find an alternative to the guarantee that Mr. Wilson was then supporting. It seemed smart to approach the President this way, considering he had never acknowledged my letter or shown any interest in discussing the topic with me.

This hope was increased when the Colonel came to me on the evening of the same day that we had the conversation related above and told me that he was "entirely converted" to my plan for a negative guaranty and for the organization of a League.

This hope grew when the Colonel came to me that evening, the same day we had the earlier conversation, and told me that he was "completely on board" with my idea for a negative guarantee and for the formation of a League.

At this second interview Colonel House gave me a typewritten copy of the President's plan and asked me to examine it and to suggest a way to amend it so that it would harmonize with my views. This was the first time that I had seen the President's complete plan for a League. My previous knowledge had been gained orally and was general and more or less vague in character except as to the guaranty of which I had an accurate idea through the President's "Bases of Peace" of 1917, and Point XIV of his address of January 8, 1918. At the time that the typewritten plan was handed to me another copy had already been given to the printer of the Commission. It was evident, therefore, that the President was satisfied with the document. It contained the theory and fundamental principles which he advocated for world organization.

At this second interview, Colonel House gave me a typed copy of the President's plan and asked me to review it and suggest changes to align it with my views. This was the first time I had seen the President's complete plan for a League. My earlier understanding had come from verbal discussions and was mostly general and somewhat vague, except for the guarantee, which I understood clearly from the President's "Bases of Peace" from 1917 and Point XIV of his address on January 8, 1918. When the typed plan was handed to me, another copy had already been sent to the Commission's printer. It was clear that the President was pleased with the document. It included the theory and fundamental principles he supported for global organization.

CHAPTER VI

THE PRESIDENT'S PLAN AND THE CECIL PLAN

I immediately began an examination and analysis of the President's plan for a League, having in mind Colonel House's suggestion that I consider a way to modify it so that it would harmonize with my views. The more I studied the document, the less I liked it. A cursory reading of the plan, which is printed in the Appendix (page 281), will disclose the looseness of the language and the doubtful interpretation of many of the provisions. It showed an inexpertness in drafting and a fault in expression which were chargeable to lack of appreciation of the need of exactness or else to haste in preparation. This fault in the paper, which was very apparent, could, however, be cured and was by no means a fatal defect. As a matter of fact, the faults of expression were to a certain extent removed by subsequent revisions, though some of the vagueness and ambiguity of the first draft persisted and appeared in the final text of the Covenant.

I immediately started examining and analyzing the President's plan for a League, keeping in mind Colonel House's suggestion that I think about how to modify it to align with my views. The more I studied the document, the less I liked it. A quick read of the plan, found in the Appendix (page 281), reveals the loose language and questionable interpretations of many of its provisions. It showed a lack of skill in drafting and a problem in expression that stemmed from either a failure to appreciate the need for precision or from rushing in its preparation. This issue in the paper, which was quite evident, could, however, be fixed and was by no means a critical flaw. In fact, some of the expression issues were somewhat resolved in later revisions, although some of the vagueness and ambiguity from the first draft lingered and appeared in the final text of the Covenant.

The more serious defects of the plan were in the principles on which it was based and in their application under the provisions of the articles proposed. The contemplated use of force in making good the guaranty of sovereign rights and the establishment of a primacy of the Great Powers were provided for in language which was sufficiently explicit to admit of no denial. In my opinion these provisions were entirely out of harmony with American ideals, policies, and traditions. Furthermore, the clauses in regard to arbitration and appeals from arbitral awards, to which reference has been made, the lack of any provision for the establishment of a permanent international judiciary, and the introduction of the mandatory system were strong reasons to reject the President's plan.

The more serious flaws in the plan were its underlying principles and how they were put into practice under the proposed articles. The intended use of force to uphold the guarantee of sovereign rights and the establishment of the Great Powers' dominance were stated clearly enough to leave no room for doubt. In my view, these provisions completely contradicted American ideals, policies, and traditions. Additionally, the clauses concerning arbitration and appeals from arbitration decisions, the absence of a permanent international court, and the introduction of a mandatory system were compelling reasons to reject the President's plan.

It should be borne in mind that, at the time that this document was placed in my hands, the plan of General Smuts for a League of Nations had, as I have said, been printed in the press and in pamphlet form and had been given wide publicity. In the Smuts plan, which gave first place to the system of mandates, appeared the declaration that the League of Nations was to acquire the mandated territories as "the heir of the Empires." This clever and attractive phrase caught the fancy of the President, as was evident from his frequent repetition and approval of it in discussing mandates under the League. Just as General Smuts had adopted the President's "self-determination," Mr. Wilson seized upon the Smuts idea with avidity and incorporated it in his plan. It unquestionably had a decided influence upon his conception of the right way to dispose of the colonial possessions of Germany and of the proper relation of the newly created European states to the League of Nations. As an example of the way in which President Wilson understood and applied General Smuts's phrase to the new states, I quote the following from the "Supplementary Agreements" forming part of the first printed draft of the President's Covenant, but which I believe were added to the typewritten draft after the President had examined the plan of the South African statesman:

It’s important to remember that when this document was handed to me, General Smuts’ plan for a League of Nations had already been published in newspapers and pamphlets, gaining significant attention. In Smuts' plan, which prioritized the system of mandates, there was a statement that the League of Nations would have the mandated territories as "the heir of the Empires." This clever and appealing phrase caught the President's interest, as shown by his frequent repetition and endorsement of it during discussions about mandates under the League. Just as General Smuts had embraced the President’s concept of "self-determination," Mr. Wilson eagerly adopted the Smuts idea and included it in his own plan. It certainly had a significant impact on his understanding of how to handle Germany’s colonial possessions and the appropriate relationship between the newly formed European states and the League of Nations. To illustrate how President Wilson interpreted and used General Smuts's phrase regarding the new states, I quote the following from the "Supplementary Agreements" that are part of the first printed draft of the President's Covenant, which I believe were added to the typewritten draft after the President reviewed the South African statesman’s plan:

"As successor to the Empires, the League of Nations is empowered, directly and without right of delegation, to watch over the relations inter se of all new independent states arising or created out of the Empires, and shall assume and fulfill the duty of conciliating and composing differences between them with a view to the maintenance of settled order and the general peace."

"As the successor to the Empires, the League of Nations has the authority, directly and without delegation, to oversee the relationships among all new independent states that emerge from the Empires, and will take on the responsibility of mediating and resolving conflicts between them to ensure stability and maintain general peace."

There is a natural temptation to a student of international agreements to analyze critically the composition and language of this provision, but to do so would in no way advance the consideration of the subject under discussion and would probably be interpreted as a criticism of the President's skill in accurately expressing his thoughts, a criticism which it is not my purpose to make.

There’s a natural urge for an international agreements student to critically analyze the wording and structure of this provision, but doing so won’t really help advance the discussion at hand and could likely come across as a critique of the President’s ability to express his ideas clearly, which isn’t my intention.

Mr. Wilson's draft also contained a system of mandates over territories in a form which was, to say the least, rudimentary if not inadequate. By the proposed system the League of Nations, as "the residuary trustee," was to take sovereignty over "the peoples and territories" of the defeated Empires and to issue a mandate to some power or powers to exercise such sovereignty. A "residuary trustee" was a novelty in international relations sufficient to arouse conjecture as to its meaning, but giving to the League the character of an independent state with the capacity of possessing sovereignty and the power to exercise sovereign rights through a designated agent was even more extraordinary. This departure from the long accepted idea of the essentials of statehood seemed to me an inexpedient and to a degree a dangerous adventure. The only plausible excuse for the proposal seemed to be a lack of knowledge as to the nature of sovereignty and as to the attributes inherent in the very conception of a state. The character of a mandate, a mandatory, and the authority issuing the mandate presented many legal perplexities which certainly required very careful study before the experiment was tried. Until the system was fully worked out and the problems of practical operation were solved, it seemed to me unwise to suggest it and still more unwise to adopt it. While the general idea of mandates issuing from the proposed international organization was presumably acceptable to the President from the first, his support was doubtless confirmed by the fact that it followed the groove which had been made in his mind by the Smuts phrase "the heir of the Empires."

Mr. Wilson's draft also included a system of mandates over territories that was, at best, basic and likely inadequate. According to the proposed system, the League of Nations, acting as "the residuary trustee," was supposed to take control over "the peoples and territories" of the defeated Empires and grant a mandate to one or more powers to manage that control. The concept of a "residuary trustee" was a novel idea in international relations that raised questions about its meaning. However, giving the League the status of an independent state with the ability to hold sovereignty and exercise sovereign rights through a designated agent was even more extraordinary. This shift from the long-accepted principles of statehood seemed to me unwise and somewhat risky. The only reasonable justification for the proposal appeared to be a lack of understanding of what sovereignty truly means and the inherent qualities of statehood. The nature of a mandate, the mandatory, and the authority issuing the mandate all raised many legal complexities that definitely needed thorough examination before attempting this experiment. Until the system was fully developed and the operational challenges were addressed, I thought it was unwise to propose it and even more unwise to implement it. While the general idea of mandates coming from the proposed international organization was likely acceptable to the President from the beginning, his support was surely strengthened by the influence of the Smuts phrase "the heir of the Empires."

In any event it seemed to me the course of wise statesmanship to postpone the advocacy of mandates, based on the assumption that the League of Nations could become the possessor of sovereignty, until the practical application of the theory could be thoroughly considered from the standpoint of international law as well as from the standpoint of policy. The experiment was too revolutionary to be tried without hesitation and without consideration of the effect on established principles and usage. At an appropriate place this subject will be more fully discussed.

In any case, I thought it was wise for us to delay promoting mandates, which were based on the idea that the League of Nations could hold sovereignty, until we could carefully examine the practical application of this theory from both international law and policy perspectives. The idea was too groundbreaking to be attempted without careful thought and consideration of its impact on established principles and practices. This topic will be discussed in more detail at a later point.

As to the organization and functions of the League of Nations planned by Mr. Wilson there was little that appealed to one who was opposed to the employment of force in compelling the observance of international obligations and to the establishment of an international oligarchy of the Great Powers to direct and control world affairs. The basic principle of the plan was that the strong should, as a matter of right recognized by treaty, possess a dominant voice in international councils. Obviously the principle of the equality of nations was ignored or abandoned. In the face of the repeated declarations of the Government of the United States in favor of the equality of independent states as to their rights in times of peace, this appeared to be a reversal of policy which it would be difficult, if not impossible, to explain in a satisfactory way. Personally I could not subscribe to this principle which was so destructive of the American theory of the proper relations between nations.

As for the organization and functions of the League of Nations proposed by Mr. Wilson, there wasn't much that appealed to someone like me who opposed using force to ensure countries followed international obligations and didn't support the idea of an international oligarchy made up of the Great Powers to control global affairs. The core idea of the plan was that the stronger nations should, as a matter of treaty-recognized right, have a dominant voice in international discussions. Clearly, this disregarded or abandoned the principle of equality among nations. Given the repeated statements from the Government of the United States advocating for the equality of independent states and their rights during peacetime, this seemed like a reversal of policy that would be hard, if not impossible, to explain satisfactorily. Personally, I couldn’t agree with this principle, which undermined the American view of how nations should relate to each other.

It was manifest, when I read the President's plan, that there was no possible way to harmonize my ideas with it. They were fundamentally different. There was no common basis on which to build. To attempt to bring the two theories into accord would have been futile. I, therefore, told Colonel House that it was useless to try to bring into accord the two plans, since they were founded on contradictory principles and that the only course of procedure open to me was to present my views to the President in written form, hoping that he would give them consideration, although fearing that his mind was made up, since he had ordered his plan to be printed.

It was clear, when I read the President's plan, that there was no way to align my ideas with it. They were fundamentally different. There was no common ground to build on. Trying to reconcile the two theories would have been pointless. So, I told Colonel House that it was pointless to try to align the two plans since they were based on opposing principles, and the only option I had was to present my thoughts to the President in writing, hoping he would consider them, although I was worried his mind was already made up since he had ordered his plan to be printed.

In the afternoon of the same day (January 7), on which I informed the Colonel of the impossibility of harmonizing and uniting the two plans, President Wilson held a conference with the American Commissioners during which he declared that he considered the affirmative guaranty absolutely necessary to the preservation of future peace and the only effective means of preventing war. Before this declaration could be discussed M. Clemenceau was announced and the conference came to an end. While the President did not refer in any way to the "self-denying covenant" which I had proposed as a substitute, it seemed to me that he intended it to be understood that the substitute was rejected, and that he had made the declaration with that end in view. This was the nearest approach to an answer to my letter of December 23 that I ever received. Indirect as it was the implication was obvious.

In the afternoon of the same day (January 7), when I told the Colonel that it was impossible to align and combine the two plans, President Wilson had a meeting with the American Commissioners where he stated that he believed the affirmative guarantee was essential for maintaining future peace and the only real way to prevent war. Before we could discuss this statement, M. Clemenceau arrived, and the meeting concluded. Although the President didn’t mention the “self-denying covenant” that I had suggested as an alternative, it seemed clear to me that he wanted it to be understood that the alternative was rejected, and that he had made his statement with that intention. This was the closest thing to a response I ever received to my letter from December 23. Indirect as it was, the implication was clear.

Although the settled purpose of the President to insist on his form of mutual guaranty was discouraging and his declaration seemed to be intended to close debate on the subject, I felt that no effort should be spared to persuade him to change his views or at least to leave open an avenue for further consideration. Impelled by this motive I gave to the President the articles which I had drafted and asked him if he would be good enough to read them and consider the principles on which they were based. The President with his usual courtesy of manner smilingly received them. Whether or not he ever read them I cannot state positively because he never mentioned them to me or, to my knowledge, to any one else. I believe, however, that he did read them and realized that they were wholly opposed to the theory which he had evolved, because from that time forward he seemed to assume that I was hostile to his plan for a League of Nations. I drew this conclusion from the fact that he neither asked my advice as to any provision of the Covenant nor discussed the subject with me personally. In many little ways he showed that he preferred to have me direct my activities as a Commissioner into other channels and to keep away from the subject of a League. The conviction that my counsel was unwelcome to Mr. Wilson was, of course, not formed at the time that he received the articles drafted by me. It only developed after some time had elapsed, during which incidents took place that aroused a suspicion which finally became a conviction. Possibly I was over-sensitive as to the President's treatment of my communications to him. Possibly he considered my advice of no value, and, therefore, unworthy of discussion. But, in view of his letter of February 11, 1920, it must be admitted that he recognized that I was reluctant in accepting certain of his views at Paris, a recognition which arose from my declared opposition to them. Except in the case of the Shantung settlement, there was none concerning which our judgments were so at variance as they were concerning the League of Nations. I cannot believe, therefore, that I was wrong in my conclusion as to his attitude.

Even though the President was set on insisting on his version of mutual guarantee, which was discouraging, and his statement seemed aimed at ending the discussion, I thought it was important to do everything possible to persuade him to reconsider or at least keep the door open for further discussion. Driven by this motivation, I gave the President the articles I had drafted and asked if he could read them and consider the principles they were based on. The President received them with his usual polite demeanor and a smile. I can’t say for sure whether he actually read them because he never brought them up with me or, to my knowledge, with anyone else. However, I believe he did read them and understood that they completely disagreed with his theory, because from that moment on, he seemed to think I was against his plan for a League of Nations. I came to this conclusion because he neither sought my advice on any part of the Covenant nor discussed it with me personally. In many subtle ways, he indicated that he preferred I focus my efforts as a Commissioner on other matters and stay away from the topic of a League. The belief that my input was unwelcome to Mr. Wilson didn't form when he received my articles; it developed later, after several incidents made me suspicious, which eventually led to my certainty. I might have been overly sensitive about how the President handled my communications. Maybe he thought my advice was worthless and not worth discussing. However, considering his letter from February 11, 1920, it’s clear he recognized my hesitance in accepting certain views of his in Paris, which stemmed from my stated opposition. Except for the issue of the Shantung settlement, there was no other topic where our opinions diverged as much as they did on the League of Nations. Therefore, I can’t believe I was mistaken in my conclusion about his attitude.

On the two days succeeding the one when I handed the President my draft of articles I had long conferences with Lord Robert Cecil and Colonel House. Previous to these conferences, or at least previous to the second one, I examined Lord Robert's plan for a League. His plan was based on the proposition that the Supreme War Council, consisting of the Heads of States and the Secretaries and Ministers of Foreign Affairs of the Five Great Powers, should be perpetuated as a permanent international body which should meet once a year and discuss subjects of common interest. That is, he proposed the formation of a Quintuple Alliance which would constitute itself primate over all nations and the arbiter in world affairs, a scheme of organization very similar to the one proposed by General Smuts.

In the two days after I gave the President my draft of articles, I had lengthy discussions with Lord Robert Cecil and Colonel House. Before these meetings, or at least before the second one, I reviewed Lord Robert's plan for a League. His plan was based on the idea that the Supreme War Council, made up of the Heads of States and the Secretaries and Ministers of Foreign Affairs from the Five Great Powers, should continue as a permanent international body that would meet once a year to discuss shared interests. In other words, he suggested forming a Quintuple Alliance that would act as the leader over all nations and serve as the mediator in global matters, an organizational setup quite similar to what General Smuts proposed.

Lord Robert made no attempt to disguise the purpose of his plan. It was intended to place in the hands of the Five Powers the control of international relations and the direction in large measure of the foreign policies of all nations. It was based on the power to compel obedience, on the right of the powerful to rule. Its chief merit was its honest declaration of purpose, however wrong that purpose might appear to those who denied that the possession of superior might conferred special rights upon the possessor. It seemed to provide for a rebirth of the Congress of Vienna which should be clothed in the modern garb of democracy. It could only be interpreted as a rejection of the principle of the equality of nations. Its adoption would mean that the destiny of the world would be in the hands of a powerful international oligarchy possessed of dictatorial powers.

Lord Robert didn't try to hide the goal of his plan. It aimed to give the Five Powers control over international relations and significantly influence the foreign policies of all countries. It was based on the ability to enforce obedience, on the right of the strong to govern. Its main strength was its straightforward declaration of intent, no matter how misguided that intent seemed to those who believed that having greater power didn't grant special rights to the holder. It appeared to offer a revival of the Congress of Vienna, reimagined in a modern democratic framework. It could only be seen as a rejection of the principle of equal nations. Adopting it would mean that the world's fate would rest with a powerful international oligarchy wielding dictatorial authority.

There was nothing idealistic in the plan of Lord Robert Cecil, although he was reputed to be an idealist favoring a new international order. An examination of his plan (Appendix) shows it to be a substantial revival of the old and discredited ideas of a century ago. There could be no doubt that a plan of this sort, materialistic and selfish as it was, would win the approval and cordial support of M. Clemenceau, since it fitted in with his public advocacy of the doctrine of "the balance of power." Presumably the Italian delegates would not be opposed to a scheme which gave Italy so influential a voice in international affairs, while the Japanese, not averse to this recognition of their national power and importance, would unquestionably favor an alliance of this nature. I think that it is fair to assume that all of the Five Great Powers would have readily accepted the Cecil plan—all except the United States.

There was nothing idealistic about Lord Robert Cecil's plan, even though he was thought to be an idealist in favor of a new international order. A look at his plan (Appendix) reveals it to be a significant revival of outdated and discredited ideas from a century ago. There’s no doubt that a plan like this, materialistic and self-serving as it was, would gain the approval and enthusiastic support of M. Clemenceau, since it aligned with his public endorsement of the "balance of power" doctrine. Presumably, the Italian delegates wouldn’t oppose a plan that gave Italy such a significant voice in international affairs, while the Japanese, who welcomed this acknowledgment of their national power and importance, would undoubtedly support an alliance like this. I think it’s fair to say that all of the Five Great Powers would have eagerly accepted the Cecil plan—except for the United States.

This plan, however, did not meet with the approval of President Wilson, and his open opposition to it became an obstacle which prevented its consideration in the form in which it was proposed. It is a matter of speculation what reasons appealed to the President and caused him to oppose the plan, although the principle of primacy found application in a different and less radical form in his own plan of organization. Possibly he felt that the British statesman's proposal too frankly declared the coalition and oligarchy of the Five Powers, and that there should be at least the appearance of cooperation on the part of the lesser nations. Of course, in view of the perpetual majority of the Five Powers on the Executive Council, as provided in the President's plan, the primacy of the Five was weakened little if at all by the minority membership of the small nations. The rule of unanimity gave to each nation a veto power, but no one believed that one of the lesser states represented on the Council would dare to exercise it if the Great Powers were unanimous in support of a proposition. In theory unanimity was a just and satisfactory rule; in practice it would amount to nothing. The President may also have considered the council proposed by Lord Robert to be inexpedient in view of the political organization of the United States. The American Government had no actual premier except the President, and it seemed out of the question for him to attend an annual meeting of the proposed council. It would result in the President sending a personal representative who would unavoidably be in a subordinate position when sitting with the European premiers. I think this latter reason was a very valid one, but that the first one, which seemed to appeal especially to the President, had little real merit.

This plan, however, wasn't approved by President Wilson, and his open opposition to it became a barrier that prevented it from being considered in the way it was proposed. It's uncertain why the President opposed the plan, although the idea of primacy was applied in a different, less radical form in his own organizational plan. He might have felt that the British statesman’s proposal too openly showcased the coalition and dominance of the Five Powers and that there should at least be an appearance of cooperation from the smaller countries. Of course, considering the ongoing majority of the Five Powers on the Executive Council, as outlined in the President's plan, the dominance of the Five was hardly weakened by the minority status of the smaller nations. The rule of unanimity granted each nation veto power, but no one believed that one of the smaller states on the Council would actually use it if the Great Powers were united behind a proposal. In theory, unanimity seemed just and satisfactory; in practice, it would lead to nothing. The President might have also thought that the council suggested by Lord Robert was impractical given the political structure of the United States. The American Government had no real premier except the President, and it seemed unrealistic for him to attend an annual meeting of the proposed council. This would mean the President would have to send a personal representative who would inevitably be in a subordinate role when sitting alongside the European premiers. I believe this latter reason was quite valid, but the first one, which seemed to resonate most with the President, had little real value.

In addition to his objection to the Cecil plan of administration, another was doubtless of even greater weight to Mr. Wilson and that was the entire omission in the Cecil proposal of the mutual guaranty of political independence and territorial integrity. The method of preventing wars which was proposed by Lord Robert was for the nations to enter into a covenant to submit disputes to international investigation and to obtain a report before engaging in hostilities and also a covenant not to make war on a disputant nation which accepted a report which had been unanimously adopted. He further proposed that the members of the League should undertake to regard themselves as ipso facto at war with a member violating these covenants and "to take, jointly and severally, appropriate military, economic, and other measures against the recalcitrant State," thus following closely the idea of the League to Enforce Peace.

Besides his objection to the Cecil administration plan, there was likely another concern that weighed even heavier on Mr. Wilson: the total lack of a mutual guarantee for political independence and territorial integrity in the Cecil proposal. Lord Robert suggested a way to prevent wars through a covenant where nations would agree to submit disputes to international investigation, receive a report before starting any hostilities, and also a promise not to go to war against a disputing nation that accepted a report that had been unanimously approved. He also proposed that League members should consider themselves as ipso facto at war with any member that violated these covenants and "to take, jointly and severally, appropriate military, economic, and other measures against the noncompliant State," closely following the idea of the League to Enforce Peace.

Manifestly this last provision in the Cecil plan was open to the same constitutional objections as those which could be raised against the President's mutual guaranty. My impression is that Mr. Wilson's opposition to the provision was not based on the ground that it was in contravention of the Constitution of the United States, but rather on the ground that it did not go far enough in stabilizing the terms of peace which were to be negotiated. The President was seeking permanency by insuring, through the threat or pressure of international force, a condition of changelessness in boundaries and sovereign rights, subject, nevertheless, to territorial changes based either on the principle of "self-determination" or on a three-fourths vote of the Body of Delegates. He, nevertheless, discussed the subject with Lord Robert Cecil prior to laying his draft of a Covenant before the American Commissioners, as is evident by comparing it with the Cecil plan, for certain phrases are almost identical in language in the two documents.

Clearly, this last provision in the Cecil plan faced the same constitutional issues as the President's mutual guarantee. I think Mr. Wilson's opposition to the provision wasn't because he believed it violated the U.S. Constitution, but rather because he felt it didn't go far enough in solidifying the peace terms that were supposed to be negotiated. The President was aiming for stability by ensuring, through the threat or pressure of international force, a state of unchanging borders and sovereign rights, though still allowing for territorial changes based either on the principle of "self-determination" or a three-fourths vote from the Body of Delegates. He did, however, discuss the topic with Lord Robert Cecil before presenting his draft of a Covenant to the American Commissioners, as is apparent when comparing it to the Cecil plan—certain phrases in the two documents are almost identical.

CHAPTER VII

SELF-DETERMINATION

The mutual guaranty which was advocated by President Wilson appears as
Article III of his original draft of a Covenant. It reads as follows:

The mutual guarantee that President Wilson promoted appears as
Article III of his original draft of a Covenant. It reads as follows:

"ARTICLE III

"The Contracting Powers unite in guaranteeing to each other political independence and territorial integrity; but it is understood between them that such territorial readjustments, if any, as may in the future become necessary by reason of changes in present racial conditions and aspirations or present social and political relationships, pursuant to the principle of self-determination, and also such territorial readjustments as may in the judgment of three fourths of the Delegates be demanded by the welfare and manifest interest of the peoples concerned, may be effected if agreeable to those peoples; and that territorial changes may in equity involve material compensation. The Contracting Powers accept without reservation the principle that the peace of the world is superior in importance to every question of political jurisdiction or boundary."

"The Contracting Powers agree to guarantee each other’s political independence and territorial integrity; however, they understand that any necessary territorial adjustments, resulting from changes in current racial conditions and aspirations or existing social and political relationships, should follow the principle of self-determination. Also, such adjustments may be made if three-fourths of the Delegates believe they are needed for the welfare and clear interests of the affected peoples, provided that those peoples agree. Additionally, territorial changes may require appropriate compensation. The Contracting Powers fully accept the principle that global peace is more important than any issues surrounding political jurisdiction or borders."

In the revised draft, which he laid before the Commission on the League of Nations at its first session Article III became Article 7. It is as follows:

In the revised draft, which he presented to the Commission on the League of Nations during its first session, Article III became Article 7. It reads as follows:

"ARTICLE 7

"The High Contracting Parties undertake to respect and preserve as against external aggression the territorial integrity and existing political independence of all States members of the League."

"The High Contracting Parties agree to respect and protect the territorial integrity and political independence of all member States of the League against external aggression."

The guaranty was finally incorporated in the Treaty of Peace as Article 10. It reads:

The guarantee was finally included in the Treaty of Peace as Article 10. It states:

"ARTICLE 10

"The members of the League undertake to respect and preserve as against external aggression the territorial integrity and existing political independence of all Members of the League. In case of any such aggression or in case of any threat or danger of such aggression the Council shall advise upon the means by which this obligation shall be fulfilled."

"The members of the League commit to respecting and protecting the territorial integrity and political independence of all League members against outside aggression. In the event of any such aggression or any threat or risk of aggression, the Council will recommend how this obligation should be met."

In the revision of the original draft the modifying clause providing for future territorial readjustments was omitted. It does not appear in Article 7 of the draft which was presented to the Commission on the League of Nations and which formed the basis of its deliberations. In addition to this modification the words "unite in guaranteeing" in Article III became "undertake to respect and preserve" in Article 7. These changes are only important in that they indicate a disposition to revise the article to meet the wishes, and to remove to an extent the objections, of some of the foreign delegates who had prepared plans for a League or at least had definite ideas as to the purposes and functions of an international organization.

In the revised version of the original draft, the clause about future territorial adjustments was removed. It’s not included in Article 7 of the draft that was submitted to the League of Nations Commission and served as the foundation for their discussions. Besides this change, the phrase "unite in guaranteeing" in Article III was changed to "undertake to respect and preserve" in Article 7. These modifications are significant because they show a willingness to adjust the article to align with the preferences and address some of the concerns raised by foreign delegates who had developed plans for a League or at least had clear ideas about the goals and roles of an international organization.

It was generally believed that the elimination of the modifying clause from the President's original form of guaranty was chiefly due to the opposition of the statesmen who represented the British Empire in contradistinction to those who represented the self-governing British Dominions. It was also believed that this opposition was caused by an unwillingness on their part to recognize or to apply as a right the principle of "self-determination" in arranging possible future changes of sovereignty over territories.

It was commonly thought that removing the modifying clause from the President's original guarantee was mainly because of the opposition from the politicians who represented the British Empire, as opposed to those who represented the self-governing British Dominions. People also believed that this opposition stemmed from their reluctance to acknowledge or apply the principle of "self-determination" as a right when considering potential future changes in sovereignty over territories.

I do not know the arguments which were used to induce the President to abandon this phrase and to strike it from his article of guaranty. I personally doubt whether the objection to the words "self-determination" was urged upon him. Whatever reasons were advanced by his foreign colleagues, they were successful in freeing the Covenant from the phrase. It is to be regretted that the influence, which was sufficient to induce the President to eliminate from his proposed guaranty the clause containing a formal acceptance of the principle of "self-determination," was not exerted or else was not potent enough to obtain from him an open disavowal of the principle as a right standard for the determination of sovereign authority. Without such a disavowal the phrase remained as one of the general bases upon which a just peace should be negotiated. It remained a precept of the international creed which Mr. Wilson proclaimed while the war was still in progress, for he had declared, in an address delivered on February 11, 1918, before a joint session of the Senate and House of Representatives, that "self-determination is not a mere phrase. It is an imperative principle of action which statesmen will henceforth ignore at their peril."

I don't know what arguments were used to convince the President to drop this phrase and remove it from his guarantee article. I personally doubt that the objection to the words "self-determination" was pushed on him. Whatever reasons were given by his foreign colleagues, they succeeded in getting the Covenant to remove the phrase. It's unfortunate that the influence that was strong enough to make the President eliminate the clause affirming the principle of "self-determination" from his proposed guarantee wasn't also strong enough to get him to openly reject the principle as a valid standard for determining sovereign authority. Without such a rejection, the phrase remained one of the general foundations on which a fair peace should be negotiated. It stayed a tenet of the international belief that Mr. Wilson proclaimed while the war was still ongoing, as he stated in a speech on February 11, 1918, before a joint session of the Senate and House of Representatives, that "self-determination is not a mere phrase. It is an imperative principle of action which statesmen will henceforth ignore at their peril."

"Self-determination" is as right in theory as the more famous phrase "the consent of the governed," which has for three centuries been repeatedly declared to be sound by political philosophers and has been generally accepted as just by civilized peoples, but which has been for three centuries commonly ignored by statesmen because the right could not be practically applied without imperiling national safety, always the paramount consideration in international and national affairs. The two phrases mean substantially the same thing and have to an extent been used interchangeably by those who advocate the principle as a standard of right. "Self-determination" was not a new thought. It was a restatement of the old one.

"Self-determination" is just as valid in theory as the more well-known phrase "the consent of the governed," which has been upheld as sound by political philosophers for three centuries and is widely accepted as just by civilized societies. However, for all that time, many statesmen have often ignored it because applying this right could threaten national safety, which has always been the top priority in international and national matters. The two phrases essentially mean the same thing and have been somewhat used interchangeably by those who support the principle as a standard of justice. "Self-determination" wasn't a new idea; it was just a restatement of an older one.

Under the present political organization of the world, based as it is on the idea of nationality, the new phrase is as unsusceptible of universal application as the old one was found to be. Fixity of national boundaries and of national allegiance, and political stability would disappear if this principle was uniformly applied. Impelled by new social conditions, by economic interests, by racial prejudices, and by the various forces which affect society, change and uncertainty would result from an attempt to follow the principle in every case to which it is possible to apply it.

Under the current political structure of the world, which is centered around the concept of nationality, the new phrase is just as resistant to universal application as the old one was. If this principle were applied consistently, the stability of national borders and allegiance would vanish. Driven by new social conditions, economic interests, racial biases, and various societal influences, trying to apply this principle in every situation would lead to change and uncertainty.

Among my notes I find one of December 20, 1918—that is, one week after the American Commission landed in France—in which I recorded my thoughts concerning certain phrases or epigrams of the President, which he had declared to be bases of peace, and which I considered to contain the seeds of future trouble. In regard to the asserted right of "self-determination" I wrote:

Among my notes, I find one from December 20, 1918—that is, one week after the American Commission arrived in France—where I recorded my thoughts on certain phrases or quotes from the President, which he claimed were fundamental to peace, and which I thought contained the seeds of future issues. About the claimed right of "self-determination," I wrote:

"When the President talks of 'self-determination' what unit has he in mind? Does he mean a race, a territorial area, or a community? Without a definite unit which is practical, application of this principle is dangerous to peace and stability."

"When the President talks about 'self-determination,' what group is he referring to? Is he talking about a race, a geographic region, or a community? Without a clear and practical definition of the unit involved, applying this principle could threaten peace and stability."

Ten days later (December 30) the frequent repetition of the phrase in the press and by members of certain groups and unofficial delegations, who were in Paris seeking to obtain hearings before the Conference, caused me to write the following:

Ten days later (December 30), the constant mention of the phrase in the media and by members of certain groups and unofficial delegations, who were in Paris trying to secure hearings before the Conference, prompted me to write the following:

"The more I think about the President's declaration as to the right of 'self-determination,' the more convinced I am of the danger of putting such ideas into the minds of certain races. It is bound to be the basis of impossible demands on the Peace Congress and create trouble in many lands.

"The more I think about the President's statement on the right of 'self-determination,' the more I worry about the danger of planting such ideas in the minds of certain races. It's sure to lead to unreasonable demands at the Peace Congress and cause trouble in many places."

"What effect will it have on the Irish, the Indians, the Egyptians, and the nationalists among the Boers? Will it not breed discontent, disorder, and rebellion? Will not the Mohammedans of Syria and Palestine and possibly of Morocco and Tripoli rely on it? How can it be harmonized with Zionism, to which the President is practically committed?

"What impact will it have on the Irish, the Indians, the Egyptians, and the nationalists among the Boers? Will it not create discontent, chaos, and rebellion? Will the Muslims of Syria and Palestine, and possibly Morocco and Tripoli, not depend on it? How can it be reconciled with Zionism, which the President is basically committed to?"

"The phrase is simply loaded with dynamite. It will raise hopes which can never be realized. It will, I fear, cost thousands of lives. In the end it is bound to be discredited, to be called the dream of an idealist who failed to realize the danger until too late to check those who attempt to put the principle in force. What a calamity that the phrase was ever uttered! What misery it will cause!"

"The phrase is just packed with explosive potential. It will raise hopes that can never be fulfilled. I’m afraid it will cost thousands of lives. In the end, it’s sure to be discredited, seen as the dream of an idealist who didn’t realize the danger until it was too late to stop those trying to implement the principle. What a tragedy that the phrase was ever said! What suffering it will bring!"

Since the foregoing notes were written the impracticability of the universal or even of the general application of the principle has been fully demonstrated. Mr. Wilson resurrected "the consent of the governed" regardless of the fact that history denied its value as a practical guide in modern political relations. He proclaimed it in the phrase "self-determination," declaring it to be an "imperative principle of action." He made it one of the bases of peace. And yet, in the negotiations at Paris and in the formulation of the foreign policy of the United States, he has by his acts denied the existence of the right other than as the expression of a moral precept, as something to be desired, but generally unattainable in the lives of nations. In the actual conduct of affairs, in the practical and concrete relations between individuals and governments, it doubtless exercises and should exercise a measure of influence, but it is not a controlling influence.

Since the previous notes were written, it's been clearly shown that applying the principle universally, or even generally, is not feasible. Mr. Wilson brought back "the consent of the governed," despite the fact that history has shown it isn't a practical guide in modern political relations. He labeled it as "self-determination," claiming it to be an "imperative principle of action." He established it as a foundation for peace. Yet, during the negotiations in Paris and in shaping the foreign policy of the United States, his actions have contradicted the existence of this right, seeing it merely as a moral guideline—something to aspire to, but mostly unattainable for nations. In real-world situations, in the practical and concrete interactions between individuals and governments, it certainly has and should have some influence, but it is not a determining factor.

In the Treaty of Versailles with Germany the readjustment of the German boundaries, by which the sovereignty over millions of persons of German blood was transferred to the new states of Poland and Czecho-Slovakia, and the practical cession to the Empire of Japan of the port of Kiao-Chau and control over the economic life of the Province of Shantung are striking examples of the abandonment of the principle.

In the Treaty of Versailles with Germany, the adjustment of German borders, which transferred sovereignty over millions of people of German descent to the new states of Poland and Czecho-Slovakia, along with the actual handover of the port of Kiao-Chau and control over the economic activities in the Province of Shantung to the Empire of Japan, are clear examples of the disregard for the principle.

In the Treaty of Saint-Germain the Austrian Tyrol was ceded to the Kingdom of Italy against the known will of substantially the entire population of that region.

In the Treaty of Saint-Germain, the Austrian Tyrol was given to the Kingdom of Italy despite the clear wishes of almost all the people in that area.

In both the Treaty of Versailles and the Treaty of Saint-Germain Austria was denied the right to form a political union with Germany, and when an article of the German Constitution of August, 1919, contemplating a "reunion" of "German Austria" with the German Empire was objected to by the Supreme Council, then in session at Paris, as in contradiction of the terms of the Treaty with Germany, a protocol was signed on September 22, 1919, by plenipotentiaries of Germany and the five Principal Allied and Associated Powers, declaring the article in the Constitution null and void. There could hardly be a more open repudiation of the alleged right of "self-determination" than this refusal to permit Austria to unite with Germany however unanimous the wish of the Austrian people for such union.

In both the Treaty of Versailles and the Treaty of Saint-Germain, Austria was not allowed to form a political union with Germany. When an article in the German Constitution from August 1919, which suggested a "reunion" of "German Austria" with the German Empire, was opposed by the Supreme Council, which was meeting in Paris at the time, citing it as contradictory to the treaty with Germany, a protocol was signed on September 22, 1919, by representatives of Germany and the five Principal Allied and Associated Powers. This protocol declared the article in the Constitution null and void. It's hard to find a clearer rejection of the supposed right of "self-determination" than this refusal to allow Austria to unite with Germany, regardless of the fact that the Austrian people were unanimously in favor of such a union.

But Mr. Wilson even further discredited the phrase by adopting a policy toward Russia which ignored the principle. The peoples of Esthonia, Latvia, Lithuania, the Ukraine, Georgia, and Azerbaidjan have by blood, language, and racial traits elements of difference which give to each of them in more or less degree the character of a distinct nationality. These peoples all possess aspirations to become independent states, and yet, throughout the negotiations at Paris and since that time, the Government of the United States has repeatedly refused to recognize the right of the inhabitants of these territories to determine for themselves the sovereignty under which they shall live. It has, on the contrary, declared in favor of a "Great Russia" comprising the vast territory of the old Empire except the province which belonged to the dismembered Kingdom of Poland and the lands included within the present boundaries of the Republic of Finland.

But Mr. Wilson further discredited the phrase by adopting a policy toward Russia that ignored the principle. The peoples of Estonia, Latvia, Lithuania, Ukraine, Georgia, and Azerbaijan have distinct differences in blood, language, and racial traits that give each of them a unique sense of nationality to varying degrees. These groups all have the desire to become independent states, yet throughout the negotiations in Paris and since then, the United States government has repeatedly refused to recognize their right to decide for themselves what sovereignty they should live under. Instead, it has supported a "Great Russia" that includes the vast territory of the former Empire, except for the province that belonged to the fragmented Kingdom of Poland and the areas within the current borders of the Republic of Finland.

I do not mention the policy of President Wilson as to an undivided Russia by way of criticism because I believe the policy was and has continued to be the right one. The reference to it is made for the sole purpose of pointing out another example of Mr. Wilson's frequent departure without explanation from his declared standard for the determination of political authority and allegiance. I think that it must be conceded that he has by his acts proved that "self-determination" is "a mere phrase" which ought to be discarded as misleading because it cannot be practically applied.

I’m not bringing up President Wilson's policy on a united Russia to criticize it because I believe it was and still is the right approach. I mention it only to highlight another instance where Mr. Wilson often strays from his stated principles regarding political authority and loyalty without any explanation. It's important to acknowledge that his actions have shown that "self-determination" is just "a mere phrase" that should be set aside because it can’t be applied in real life.

It may be pointed out as a matter of special interest to the student of American history that, if the right of "self-determination" were sound in principle and uniformly applicable in establishing political allegiance and territorial sovereignty, the endeavor of the Southern States to secede from the American Union in 1861 would have been wholly justifiable; and, conversely, the Northern States, in forcibly preventing secession and compelling the inhabitants of the States composing the Confederacy to remain under the authority of the Federal Government, would have perpetrated a great and indefensible wrong against the people of the South by depriving them of a right to which they were by nature entitled. This is the logic of the application of the principle of "self-determination" to the political rights at issue in the American Civil War.

It's worth noting for those studying American history that if the principle of "self-determination" were sound and consistently applied in determining political loyalty and territorial sovereignty, then the Southern States' attempt to secede from the American Union in 1861 would have been entirely justifiable. On the flip side, the Northern States, by forcibly stopping the secession and making the people of the Confederate States stay under Federal authority, would have committed a significant and unjustifiable wrong against the Southern people by denying them a right they were inherently entitled to. This illustrates how the principle of "self-determination" applies to the political issues at stake in the American Civil War.

I do not believe that there are many Americans of the present generation who would support the proposition that the South was inherently right and the North was inherently wrong in that great conflict. There were, at the time when the sections were arrayed in arms against each other, and there may still be, differences of opinion as to the legal right of secession under the Constitution of the United States, but the inherent right of a people of a State to throw off at will their allegiance to the Federal Union and resume complete sovereignty over the territory of the State was never urged as a conclusive argument. It was the legal right and not the natural right which was emphasized as justifying those who took up arms in order to disrupt the Union. But if an American citizen denies that the principle of "self-determination" can be rightfully applied to the affairs of his own country, how can he consistently maintain that it is a right inseparable from a true conception of political liberty and therefore universally applicable, just in principle, and wise from the practical point of view?

I don't think there are many Americans today who would agree that the South was fundamentally right and the North was fundamentally wrong in that major conflict. At the time when the regions were fighting against each other, there were, and still are, differing opinions on the legal right to secession under the Constitution of the United States. However, the inherent right of a state's people to willingly abandon their loyalty to the Federal Union and regain complete sovereignty over their territory was never really put forward as a definitive argument. It was the legal right, not the natural right, that was highlighted as justifying those who took up arms to disrupt the Union. But if an American citizen argues that the principle of "self-determination" cannot be legitimately applied to their own country's issues, how can they consistently argue that it is a right that is essential to a true understanding of political freedom and therefore universally applicable, just in principle, and practical in its outcomes?

Of course, those who subscribe to "self-determination" and advocate it as a great truth fundamental to every political society organized to protect and promote civil liberty, do not claim it for races, peoples, or communities whose state of barbarism or ignorance deprive them of the capacity to choose intelligently their political affiliations. As to peoples or communities, however, who do possess the intelligence to make a rational choice of political allegiance, no exception is made, so far as words go, to the undeviating application of the principle. It is the affirmation of an unqualified right. It is one of those declarations of principle which sounds true, which in the abstract may be true, and which appeals strongly to man's innate sense of moral right and to his conception of natural justice, but which, when the attempt is made to apply it in every case, becomes a source of political instability and domestic disorder and not infrequently a cause of rebellion.

Of course, those who believe in "self-determination" and promote it as a fundamental truth for any political society aimed at protecting and advancing civil liberty don't extend this idea to races, peoples, or communities whose state of barbarism or ignorance prevents them from making informed political choices. However, for those peoples or communities that do have the intelligence to make rational decisions about their political affiliations, no exceptions are made in terms of the consistent application of this principle. It is an assertion of an absolute right. It is one of those principles that sounds valid, which might be true in theory, and which resonates strongly with people's inherent sense of moral justice and their understanding of natural rights, but when it's attempted to be applied universally, it often leads to political instability and domestic unrest, and not infrequently, rebellion.

In the settlement of territorial rights and of the sovereignty to be exercised over particular regions there are several factors which require consideration. International boundaries may be drawn along ethnic, economic, geographic, historic, or strategic lines. One or all of these elements may influence the decision, but whatever argument may be urged in favor of any one of these factors, the chief object in the determination of the sovereignty to be exercised within a certain territory is national safety. National safety is as dominant in the life of a nation as self-preservation is in the life of an individual. It is even more so, as nations do not respond to the impulse of self-sacrifice. With national safety as the primary object to be attained in territorial settlements, the factors of the problem assume generally, though not always, the following order of importance: the strategic, to which is closely allied the geographic and historic; the economic, affecting the commercial and industrial life of a nation; and lastly the ethnic, including in the terms such conditions as consanguinity, common language, and similar social and religious institutions.

In settling territorial rights and determining sovereignty over specific regions, several factors need to be considered. International boundaries can be drawn based on ethnic, economic, geographic, historic, or strategic lines. One or all of these elements may affect the decision, but regardless of the arguments made for any one of these factors, the main goal in deciding sovereignty over a territory is national safety. National safety is as crucial for a nation as self-preservation is for an individual, and even more so, since nations don’t always act on the urge for self-sacrifice. With national safety as the primary objective in territorial settlements, the factors usually, though not always, rank in the following order of importance: strategic, closely linked to geographic and historic considerations; economic, impacting a nation's commercial and industrial activities; and lastly, ethnic, which includes conditions like shared ancestry, common language, and similar social and religious institutions.

The national safety and the economic welfare of the United States were at stake in the War of Secession, although the attempt to secede resulted from institutional rather than ethnic causes. The same was true when in the Papineau Rebellion of 1837 the French inhabitants of the Province of Lower Canada attempted for ethnic reasons to free themselves from British sovereignty. Had the right of "self-determination" in the latter case been recognized as "imperative" by Great Britain, the national life and economic growth of Canada would have been strangled because the lines of communication and the commercial routes to the Atlantic seaboard would have been across an alien state. The future of Canada, with its vast undeveloped resources, its very life as a British colony, depended upon denying the right of "self-determination." It was denied and the French inhabitants of Quebec were forced against their will to accept British sovereignty.

The safety of the nation and the economic well-being of the United States were on the line during the Civil War, even though the push for secession stemmed from institutional rather than ethnic issues. A similar situation occurred during the Papineau Rebellion of 1837 when the French residents of Lower Canada tried to break free from British rule for ethnic reasons. If Great Britain had recognized the right to "self-determination" in that case as "essential," Canada’s national life and economic development would have been stifled, as the communication lines and trade routes to the Atlantic coast would have gone through a foreign state. Canada’s future, with its vast untapped resources and its existence as a British colony, relied on denying the right to "self-determination." This right was denied, and the French residents of Quebec were compelled against their will to accept British sovereignty.

Experience has already demonstrated the unwisdom of having given currency to the phrase "self-determination." As the expression of an actual right, the application of which is universal and invariable, the phrase has been repudiated or at least violated by many of the terms of the treaties which brought to an end the World War. Since the time that the principle was proclaimed, it has been the excuse for turbulent political elements in various lands to resist established governmental authority; it has induced the use of force in an endeavor to wrest the sovereignty over a territory or over a community from those who have long possessed and justly exercised it. It has formed the basis for territorial claims by avaricious nations. And it has introduced into domestic as well as international affairs a new spirit of disorder. It is an evil thing to permit the principle of "self-determination" to continue to have the apparent sanction of the nations when it has been in fact thoroughly discredited and will always be cast aside whenever it comes in conflict with national safety, with historic political rights, or with national economic interests affecting the prosperity of a nation.

Experience has already shown how unwise it is to adopt the term "self-determination." As a claim to a genuine right that should apply universally and consistently, this phrase has been rejected or at least violated by many of the treaties that ended World War I. Since the principle was declared, it has been used by disruptive political groups in various countries to challenge established governments; it has led to the use of force in attempts to take control of a territory or community from those who have long held and rightfully exercised that control. It has formed the basis for territorial claims by greedy nations. Furthermore, it has introduced a new level of chaos into both domestic and international affairs. It is harmful to allow the idea of "self-determination" to continue to be seemingly endorsed by nations when it has actually been thoroughly discredited and will always be discarded whenever it conflicts with national security, historical political rights, or economic interests that affect a nation's prosperity.

This discussion of the right of "self-determination," which was one of the bases of peace which President Wilson declared in the winter of 1918, and which was included in the modifying clause of his guaranty as originally drafted, is introduced for the purpose of showing the reluctance which I felt in accepting his guidance in the adoption of a principle so menacing to peace and so impossible of practical application. As a matter of fact I never discussed the subject with Mr. Wilson as I purposed doing, because a situation arose on January 10, 1919, which discouraged me from volunteering to him advice on matters which did not directly pertain to legal questions and to the international administration of legal justice.

This discussion of the right to "self-determination," which was one of the foundations of peace that President Wilson announced in the winter of 1918 and was included in the modifying clause of his guarantee as originally drafted, is introduced to highlight my hesitation in following his lead on a principle that seemed threatening to peace and impractical in application. In fact, I never had the chance to talk about this with Mr. Wilson as I intended because a situation arose on January 10, 1919, that made me reluctant to offer him advice on topics that didn't directly involve legal matters and the international administration of legal justice.

CHAPTER VIII

THE CONFERENCE OF JANUARY 10, 1919

It is with extreme reluctance, as the reader will understand, that I make any reference to the conference which the President held with the American Commissioners at the Hotel Crillon on January 10, because of the personal nature of what occurred. It would be far more agreeable to omit an account of this unpleasant episode. But without referring to it I cannot satisfactorily explain the sudden decision I then reached to take no further part in the preparation or revision of the text of the Covenant of the League of Nations. Without explanation my subsequent conduct would be, and not without reason, open to the charge of neglect of duty and possibly of disloyalty. I do not feel called upon to rest under that suspicion, or to remain silent when a brief statement of what occurred at that conference will disclose the reason for the cessation of my efforts to effect changes in the plan of world organization which the President had prepared. In the circumstances there can be no impropriety in disclosing the truth as to the cause for a course of action when the course of action itself must be set forth to complete the record and to explain an ignorance of the subsequent negotiations regarding the League of Nations, an ignorance which has been the subject of public comment. Certainly no one who participated in the conference can object to the truth being known unless for personal reasons he prefers that a false impression should go forth. After careful consideration I can see no public reason for withholding the facts. At this meeting, to which I refer, the President took up the provisions of his original draft of a Covenant, which was at the time in typewritten form, and indicated the features which he considered fundamental to the proper organization of a League of Nations. I pointed out certain provisions which appeared to me objectionable in principle or at least of doubtful policy. Mr. Wilson, however, clearly indicated—at least so I interpreted his words and manner—that he was not disposed to receive these criticisms in good part and was unwilling to discuss them. He also said with great candor and emphasis that he did not intend to have lawyers drafting the treaty of peace. Although this declaration was called forth by the statement that the legal advisers of the American Commission had been, at my request, preparing an outline of a treaty, a "skeleton treaty" in fact, the President's sweeping disapproval of members of the legal profession participating in the treaty-making seemed to be, and I believe was, intended to be notice to me that my counsel was unwelcome. Being the only lawyer on the delegation I naturally took this remark to myself, and I know that other American Commissioners held the same view of its purpose. If my belief was unjustified, I can only regret that I did not persevere in my criticisms and suggestions, but I could not do so believing as I then did that a lawyer's advice on any question not wholly legal in nature was unacceptable to the President, a belief which, up to the present time, I have had no reason to change.

It is with great reluctance, as the reader will understand, that I mention the conference the President held with the American Commissioners at the Hotel Crillon on January 10 due to the personal nature of what happened. It would be much easier to leave out this unpleasant episode. However, I can’t explain my sudden decision to stop participating in the preparation or revision of the text of the Covenant of the League of Nations without referring to it. Without an explanation, my later actions could understandably be seen as neglecting my duty and possibly being disloyal. I don’t want to be under that suspicion or stay silent when a brief statement about what happened at that conference will clarify why I ceased my efforts to make changes to the world organization plan that the President had created. In this context, there’s no reason to keep the truth of my actions hidden when it needs to be disclosed to complete the record and explain the misunderstanding regarding the subsequent negotiations about the League of Nations, a misunderstanding that has drawn public attention. Surely, anyone who participated in the conference can’t object to the truth being known unless they have personal reasons for wanting a false impression to spread. After careful thought, I see no public reason to withhold the facts. At this meeting, which I’m referring to, the President went over the provisions of his original draft of a Covenant, which was then in typewritten form, and pointed out the features he considered essential for organizing a League of Nations. I identified certain provisions that seemed objectionable to me in principle or at least questionable in policy. However, Mr. Wilson clearly indicated—at least that’s how I interpreted his words and demeanor—that he was not open to these criticisms and did not want to discuss them. He also stated very openly and emphatically that he didn’t plan to have lawyers drafting the peace treaty. This statement came in response to my remark that the legal advisors of the American Commission had been preparing a draft treaty outline at my request, a “skeleton treaty,” to be precise. The President’s broad rejection of legal professionals taking part in the treaty-making felt, and I believe was meant to be, a signal to me that my input was unwelcome. Being the only lawyer in the delegation, I naturally took this comment personally, and I know other American Commissioners felt the same way. If my belief was unwarranted, I can only regret that I didn’t continue with my criticisms and suggestions, but I couldn’t do so believing at the time that any legal advice on a question that wasn’t purely legal was not acceptable to the President—a belief I still have no reason to change.

It should be understood that this account of the conference of January 10 is given by way of explanation of my conduct subsequent to it and not in any spirit of complaint or condemnation of Mr. Wilson's attitude. He had a right to his own opinion of the worth of a lawyer's advice and a right to act in accordance with that opinion. If there was any injustice done, it was in his asking a lawyer to become a Peace Commissioner, thereby giving the impression that he desired his counsel and advice as to the negotiations in general, when in fact he did not. But, disregarding the personal element, I consider that he was justified in his course, as the entire constitutional responsibility for the negotiation of a treaty was on his shoulders and he was, in the performance of his duty, entitled to seek advice from those only in whose judgment he had confidence.

It should be clear that this account of the conference on January 10 is meant to clarify my actions afterward, not to complain about or criticize Mr. Wilson's views. He was entitled to his own opinion regarding the value of a lawyer's advice and to act based on that opinion. If there was any injustice, it was in him asking a lawyer to become a Peace Commissioner, which gave the impression that he wanted his input on the negotiations when, in reality, he did not. However, putting aside the personal aspect, I believe he was justified in his actions, as the entire constitutional responsibility for negotiating a treaty rested with him, and he was entitled to seek advice only from those whose judgment he trusted.

In spite of this frank avowal of prejudice by the President there was no outward change in the personal and official relations between him and myself. The breach, however, regardless of appearances, was too wide and too deep to be healed. While subsequent events bridged it temporarily, it remained until my association with President Wilson came to an end in February, 1920. I never forgot his words and always felt that in his mind my opinions, even when he sought them, were tainted with legalism.

In spite of the President's honest admission of bias, there was no visible change in our personal or official relationship. However, the rift, despite how it looked, was too broad and too deep to fix. While later events temporarily closed it, the divide persisted until my time with President Wilson ended in February 1920. I never forgot his words and always sensed that he viewed my opinions, even when he asked for them, as influenced by legalism.

CHAPTER IX

A RESOLUTION INSTEAD OF THE COVENANT

As it seemed advisable, in view of the incident of January 10, to have nothing to do with the drafting of the Covenant unless the entire theory was changed, the fact that there prevailed at that time a general belief that a preliminary treaty of peace would be negotiated in the near future invited an effort to delay the consideration of a complete and detailed charter of the League of Nations until the definitive treaty or a separate treaty dealing with the League alone was considered. As delay would furnish time to study and discuss the subject and prevent hasty acceptance of an undesirable or defective plan, it seemed to me that the advisable course to take was to limit reference to the organization in the preliminary treaty to general principles.

As it seemed wise, considering the events of January 10, to avoid getting involved in drafting the Covenant unless the whole approach was changed, the widespread belief at that time that a preliminary peace treaty would be negotiated soon encouraged efforts to postpone discussing a complete and detailed charter for the League of Nations until the final treaty or a separate treaty focused solely on the League was addressed. Since delaying would allow time to study and discuss the matter and prevent rushed acceptance of an undesirable or flawed plan, I thought the best course of action was to restrict references to the organization in the preliminary treaty to general principles.

The method that I had in mind in carrying out this policy was to secure the adoption, by the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace, of a resolution embodying a series of declarations as to the creation, the nature, and the purposes of a League of Nations, which declarations could be included in the preliminary treaty of peace accompanied by an article providing for the negotiation of a detailed plan based on these declarations at the time of the negotiation of the definitive treaty or else by an article providing for the summoning of a world congress, in which all nations, neutrals as well as belligerents, would be represented and have a voice in the drafting of a convention establishing a League of Nations in accordance with the general principles declared in the preliminary treaty. Personally I preferred a separate treaty, but doubted the possibility of obtaining the assent of the Conference to that plan because some of the delegates showed a feeling of resentment toward certain neutral nations on account of their attitude during the war, while the inclusion of the four powers which had formed the Central Alliance seemed almost out of the question.

The approach I had in mind for implementing this policy was to secure the adoption, by the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace, of a resolution that laid out a series of statements regarding the creation, nature, and purposes of a League of Nations. These statements could be included in the preliminary peace treaty, along with an article that provided for the negotiation of a detailed plan based on these declarations when the definitive treaty was being negotiated, or an article that called for a world congress where all nations, both neutral and warring, would be represented and have a voice in drafting a convention to establish a League of Nations according to the general principles stated in the preliminary treaty. Personally, I preferred a separate treaty but was uncertain about the possibility of getting the Conference to agree to that plan because some delegates expressed resentment toward certain neutral nations due to their stance during the war, while the inclusion of the four powers that had formed the Central Alliance seemed nearly impossible.

In addition to the advantage to be gained by postponing the determination of the details of the organization until the theory, the form, the purposes and the powers of the proposed League could be thoroughly considered, it would make possible the speedy restoration of a state of peace. There can be no doubt that peace at the earliest possible moment was the supreme need of the world. The political and social chaos in the Central Empires, due to the overthrow of their strong autocratic governments and the prevailing want, suffering, and despair, in which the war had left their peoples, offered a fertile field for the pernicious doctrines of Bolshevism to take root and thrive. A proletarian revolution seemed imminent. The Spartacists in Germany, the Radical Socialists in Austria, and the Communists in Hungary were the best organized and most vigorous of the political groups in those countries and were conducting an active and seemingly successful propaganda among the starving and hopeless masses, while the Russian duumvirs, Lenine and Trotsky, were with funds and emissaries aiding these movements against established authority and social order. Eastern Europe seemed to be a volcano on the very point of eruption. Unless something was speedily done to check the peril, it threatened to spread to other countries and even to engulf the very foundations of modern civilization.

Along with the benefit of delaying the details of the organization until the theory, structure, goals, and powers of the proposed League could be fully considered, this approach would allow for a quick return to peace. There's no doubt that achieving peace as soon as possible was the world's greatest need. The political and social turmoil in the Central Empires, caused by the collapse of their strong autocratic governments and the widespread deprivation, suffering, and hopelessness left in the wake of the war, created a perfect environment for the dangerous ideas of Bolshevism to take hold and grow. A worker-led revolution seemed imminent. The Spartacists in Germany, the Radical Socialists in Austria, and the Communists in Hungary were the best organized and most active political groups in those nations, running effective propaganda campaigns among the starving and desperate populace. Meanwhile, the Russian leaders, Lenin and Trotsky, were supporting these movements against established authority and social order with funding and messengers. Eastern Europe looked like a volcano ready to erupt. If action wasn’t taken quickly to contain this threat, it risked spreading to other nations, possibly undermining the very foundations of modern civilization.

A restoration of commercial relations and of normal industrial conditions through the medium of a treaty of peace appeared to offer the only practical means of resisting these movements and of saving Europe from the horrors of a proletarian despotism which had brought the Russian people to so low a state. This was the common judgment of those who at that time watched with increasing impatience the slow progress of the negotiations at Paris and with apprehension the political turmoil in the defeated and distracted empires of Central Europe.

A restoration of trade and normal industrial conditions through a peace treaty seemed to be the only practical way to counter these movements and save Europe from the terrible prospect of a working-class dictatorship that had brought Russia to such a desperate situation. This was the shared opinion of those who, at that time, watched with growing frustration the slow progress of negotiations in Paris and with concern the political chaos in the defeated and troubled empires of Central Europe.

An immediate restoration of peace was, as I then saw it, of vital importance to the world as it was the universal demand of all mankind. To delay it for the purpose of completing the organization of a League of Nations or for any other purpose than the formulation of terms essential to peace seemed to me to be taking a risk as to the future wholly unwarranted by the relative importance of the subjects. There is no question, in the light of subsequent events, that the peoples of the Central Empires possessed a greater power of resistance to the temptations of lawlessness and disorder than was presumed in the winter of 1918-19. And yet it was a critical time. Anything might have happened. It would have taken very little to turn the scale. What occurred later cannot excuse the delay in making peace. It was not wise statesmanship and foresight that saved the world from a great catastrophe but the fortunate circumstance that a people habituated to obedience were not led astray by the enemies of the existing order.

An immediate return to peace was, as I saw it, crucial for the world because it was what all of humanity was demanding. Delaying it to finalize the organization of a League of Nations or for any reason other than to establish terms necessary for peace seemed to me to be an unnecessary risk for the future given how relatively unimportant those other subjects were. There’s no doubt, in light of what happened later, that the people of the Central Empires had a stronger ability to resist the temptations of chaos and disorder than was thought in the winter of 1918-19. And still, it was a critical time. Anything could have happened. It would have taken very little to shift the balance. What happened afterward doesn't justify the delay in achieving peace. It wasn't wise leadership or foresight that saved the world from a major disaster, but rather the lucky situation that a population used to following orders wasn't led astray by those opposed to the current system.

Of the importance of negotiating a peace without waiting to complete a detailed plan for a League of Nations I was firmly convinced in those early days at Paris, and I know that the President's judgment as to this was contrary to mine. He considered—at least his course can only be so interpreted—that the organization of a League in all its details was the principal task to be accomplished by the Conference, a task that he felt must be completed before other matters were settled. The conclusion is that the necessity of an immediate peace seemed to him subordinate to the necessity of erecting an international agency to preserve the peace when it was restored. In fact one may infer that the President was disposed to employ the general longing for peace as a means of exerting pressure on the delegates in Paris and on their Governments to accept his plan for a League. It is generally believed that objections to certain provisions of the Covenant were not advanced or, if advanced, were not urged because the discussion of objections would mean delay in negotiating the peace.

I was strongly convinced from the beginning in Paris about the importance of negotiating a peace without having to finalize a detailed plan for a League of Nations, and I know that the President disagreed with me on this. He believed—at least his actions can only be understood that way—that outlining the League in all its specifics was the main task of the Conference, a job he thought needed to be finished before addressing other issues. The conclusion is that he viewed the need for an immediate peace as less important than creating an international body to maintain peace once it was established. In fact, one could suggest that the President intended to use the general desire for peace as leverage to pressure the delegates in Paris and their governments to accept his League plan. It's widely thought that objections to certain parts of the Covenant were either not raised or, if they were, not pushed hard because discussing those objections would slow down the peace negotiations.

Mr. Wilson gave most of his time and thought prior to his departure for the United States in February, 1919, to the revision of the plan of organization which he had prepared and to the conversion of the more influential members of the Conference to its support. While other questions vital to a preliminary peace treaty were brought up in the Council of Ten, he showed a disposition to keep them open and to avoid their settlement until the Covenant had been reported to the Conference. In this I could not conscientiously follow him. I felt that the policy was wholly wrong since it delayed the peace.

Mr. Wilson focused most of his time and thoughts before leaving for the United States in February 1919 on revising the organizational plan he had created and persuading the more influential members of the Conference to support it. While other important issues related to an initial peace treaty were discussed in the Council of Ten, he seemed inclined to keep them unresolved and to postpone their settlement until the Covenant was presented to the Conference. I couldn't support him on this. I believed that this approach was entirely misguided because it was delaying peace.

Though recognizing the President's views as to the relative importance of organizing a League and of restoring peace without delay, and suspecting that he purposed to use the impatience and fear of the delegates to break down objections to his plan of organization, I still hoped that the critical state of affairs in Europe might induce him to adopt another course. With that hope I began the preparation of a resolution to be laid before the Conference, which, if adopted, would appear in the preliminary treaty in the form of declarations which would constitute the bases of a future negotiation regarding a League of Nations.

Even though I understood the President's views on the importance of creating a League and restoring peace quickly, and I suspected he intended to use the delegates' impatience and fear to push through his organization plan, I still hoped that the serious situation in Europe might lead him to take a different approach. With that hope in mind, I started drafting a resolution to present to the Conference, which, if accepted, would be included in the preliminary treaty as declarations that would lay the groundwork for future negotiations about a League of Nations.

At a conference on January 20 between the President and the American Commissioners, all being present except Colonel House, I asked the President if he did not think that, in view of the shortness of time before he would be compelled to return to Washington on account of the approaching adjournment of Congress, it would be well to prepare a resolution of this sort and to have it adopted in order that it might clear the way for the determination of other matters which should be included in a preliminary treaty. From the point of view of policy I advanced the argument that a series of declarations would draw the fire of the opponents and critics of the League and would give opportunity for an expression of American public opinion which would make possible the final drafting of the charter of a League in a way to win the approval of the great mass of the American people and in all probability insure approval of the Covenant by the Senate of the United States.

At a conference on January 20 with the President and the American Commissioners, everyone was there except Colonel House. I asked the President if he thought it would be wise to prepare a resolution of this kind, given the short time left before he had to return to Washington due to Congress's upcoming adjournment. I suggested that adopting such a resolution could help pave the way for addressing other issues to be included in a preliminary treaty. From a policy perspective, I argued that a series of declarations would take the heat off the League's opponents and critics, providing a chance for American public opinion to be expressed, which would facilitate the final drafting of the League's charter in a way that could gain broad approval from the American people and likely secure the Senate's endorsement of the Covenant.

In reviewing what took place at this conference I realize now, as I did not then, that it was impolitic for me to have presented an argument based on the assumption that changes in the President's plan might be necessary, as he might interpret my words to be another effort to revise the theory of his plan. At the time, however, I was so entirely convinced of the expediency of this course, from the President's own point of view as well as from the point of view of those who gave first place to restoring peace, that I believed he would see the advantage to be gained and would adopt the course suggested. I found that I was mistaken. Mr. Wilson without discussing the subject said that he did not think that a resolution of that sort was either necessary or advisable.

Looking back on what happened at this conference, I realize now, as I didn’t at the time, that it was unwise for me to argue based on the assumption that changes to the President's plan might be needed, as he could interpret my words as an attempt to revise his theory. Back then, I was so convinced that this approach was necessary, both from the President's perspective and from the standpoint of those prioritizing peace, that I thought he would recognize the benefits and agree to the suggested course. I was wrong. Mr. Wilson stated, without discussing the topic, that he didn’t believe a resolution like that was either needed or advisable.

While this definite rejection of the proposal seemed to close the door to further effort in that direction, I decided to make another attempt before abandoning the plan. The next afternoon (January 21) at a meeting of the Council of Ten, the discussion developed in a way that gave me an excuse to present the proposal informally to the Council. The advantages to be gained by adopting the suggested action apparently appealed to the members, and their general approval of it impressed the President, for he asked me in an undertone if I had prepared the resolution. I replied that I had been working upon it, but had ceased when he said to me the day before that he did not think it necessary or advisable, adding that I would complete the draft if he wished me to do so. He said that he would be obliged to me if I would prepare one.

While this clear rejection of the proposal seemed to shut the door on further efforts in that direction, I decided to make one more attempt before giving up on the plan. The next afternoon (January 21) at a meeting of the Council of Ten, the discussion unfolded in a way that gave me an opportunity to present the proposal informally to the Council. The benefits of adopting the suggested action seemed to resonate with the members, and their general approval impressed the President, who quietly asked me if I had prepared the resolution. I replied that I had been working on it, but had stopped when he mentioned the day before that he didn't think it was necessary or advisable, adding that I would finish the draft if he wanted me to. He said he would appreciate it if I could prepare one.

Encouraged by the support received in the Council and by the seeming willingness of the President to give the proposal consideration, I proceeded at once to draft a resolution.

Encouraged by the support I received in the Council and by the apparent willingness of the President to consider the proposal, I quickly got to work on drafting a resolution.

The task was not an easy one because it would have been useless to insert in the document any declaration which seemed to be contradictory of the President's theory of an affirmative guaranty or which was not sufficiently broad to be interpreted in other terms in the event that American public opinion was decidedly opposed to his theory, as I felt that it would be. It was also desirable, from my point of view, that the resolution should contain a declaration in favor of the equality of nations or one which would prevent the establishment of an oligarchy of the Great Powers, and another declaration which would give proper place to the administration of legal justice in international disputes.

The task wasn't easy because it would have been pointless to include any statement in the document that seemed to contradict the President's idea of a positive guarantee or that wasn't broad enough to be reinterpreted if American public opinion strongly opposed his theory, which I suspected it would. Additionally, I thought it was important for the resolution to include a statement supporting the equality of nations or one that would stop an oligarchy among the Great Powers, as well as another statement that would ensure the fair administration of justice in international disputes.

The handicaps and difficulties under which I labored are manifest, and the resolution as drafted indicates them in that it does not express as clearly and unequivocally as it would otherwise do the principles which formed the bases of the articles which I handed to the President on January 7 and which have already been quoted in extenso.

The challenges and obstacles I faced are obvious, and the proposed resolution reflects this since it doesn't clearly and directly convey the principles that were the foundation of the articles I presented to the President on January 7, which have already been quoted in extenso.

The text of the resolution, which was completed on the 22d, reads as follows:

The text of the resolution, which was finished on the 22nd, says:

"Resolved that the Conference makes the following declaration:

"Resolved that the Conference makes the following declaration:"

"That the preservation of international peace is the standing policy of civilization and to that end a league of nations should be organized to prevent international wars;

"Maintaining international peace is the ongoing goal of civilization, and to achieve this, there should be a league of nations formed to prevent international wars;"

"That it is a fundamental principle of peace that all nations are equally entitled to the undisturbed possession of their respective territories, to the full exercise of their respective sovereignties, and to the use of the high seas as the common property of all peoples; and

"That it is a fundamental principle of peace that all nations have an equal right to peacefully possess their territories, fully exercise their sovereignties, and use the high seas as the shared property of all peoples; and"

"That it is the duty of all nations to engage by mutual covenants—

"That it is the responsibility of all nations to connect through mutual agreements—

"(1) To safeguard from invasion the sovereign rights of one another;

"(1) To protect each other's sovereign rights from invasion;

"(2) To submit to arbitration all justiciable disputes which fail of settlement by diplomatic arrangement;

"(2) To agree to arbitration for all disputes that can be settled legally and that can't be resolved through diplomatic negotiations;

"(3) To submit to investigation by the league of nations all non-justiciable disputes which fail of settlement by diplomatic arrangement; and

"(3) To submit for investigation by the League of Nations all disputes that cannot be resolved through diplomatic means;"

"(4) To abide by the award of an arbitral tribunal and to respect a report of the league of nations after investigation;

"(4) To follow the decision of an arbitration panel and to honor a report from the League of Nations after an investigation;"

"That the nations should agree upon—

"That the nations should agree upon—

"(1) A plan for general reduction of armaments on land and sea;

"(1) A plan for the overall reduction of weapons on land and at sea;

"(2) A plan for the restriction of enforced military service and the governmental regulation and control of the manufacture and sale of munitions of war;

"(2) A plan to limit mandatory military service and government oversight of the production and sale of weapons;"

"(3) Full publicity of all treaties and international agreements;

"(3) Complete transparency regarding all treaties and international agreements;

"(4) The equal application to all other nations of commercial and trade regulations and restrictions imposed by any nation; and

"(4) The equal application of commercial and trade rules and restrictions imposed by any nation to all other nations; and"

   "(5) The proper regulation and control of new states pending complete
   independence and sovereignty."

"(5) The appropriate regulation and oversight of new states before they achieve full
independence and sovereignty."

This draft of a resolution was discussed with the other American
Commissioners, and after some changes of a more or less minor character
which it seemed advisable to make because of the appointment of a
Commission on the League of Nations at a plenary session of the
Conference on January 25, of which Commission President Wilson and
Colonel House were the American members, I sent the draft to the
President on the 31st, four days before the Commission held its first
meeting in Colonel House's office at the Hotel Crillon.

This draft of a resolution was talked about with the other American
Commissioners, and after making a few minor adjustments that seemed necessary because a
Commission on the League of Nations was appointed during a plenary session of the
Conference on January 25, where Commission President Wilson and
Colonel House represented the U.S., I sent the draft to the
President on the 31st, four days before the Commission had its first
meeting in Colonel House's office at the Hotel Crillon.

As the Sixty-Fifth Congress would come to an end on March 4, and as the interpretation which had been placed on certain provisions of the Federal Constitution required the presence of the Chief Executive in Washington during the last days of a session in order that he might pass upon legislation enacted in the days immediately preceding adjournment, Mr. Wilson had determined that he could not remain in Paris after February 14. At the time that I sent him the proposed resolution there remained, therefore, but two weeks for the Commission on the League of Nations to organize, to deliberate, and to submit its report to the Conference, provided its report was made prior to the President's departure for the United States. It did not seem to me conceivable that the work of the Commission could be properly completed in so short a time if the President's Covenant became the basis of its deliberations. This opinion was shared by many others who appreciated the difficulties and intricacies of the subject and who felt that a hasty and undigested report would be unwise and endanger the whole plan of a world organization.

As the Sixty-Fifth Congress was set to end on March 4, and given that the interpretation placed on certain provisions of the Federal Constitution required the presence of the Chief Executive in Washington during the final days of a session to review legislation passed shortly before adjournment, Mr. Wilson decided he could not stay in Paris after February 14. At the time I sent him the proposed resolution, there were only two weeks left for the Commission on the League of Nations to organize, deliberate, and submit its report to the Conference, assuming the report was finalized before the President left for the United States. It seemed impossible to me that the Commission could properly complete its work in such a short timeframe if the President's Covenant served as the foundation for its discussions. Many others who understood the challenges and complexities of the topic shared this view and believed that a rushed and poorly thought-out report would be unwise and jeopardize the entire plan for a world organization.

In view of this situation, which seemed to be a strong argument for delay in drafting the plan of international organization, I wrote a letter to the President, at the time I sent him the proposed resolution, saying that in my opinion no plan could be prepared with sufficient care to warrant its submission to the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace before he left Paris and that unless a plan was reported he would be in the position of returning empty-handed to the United States. I urged him in the circumstances to secure the adoption of a resolution by the delegates similar in nature, if not in language, to the draft which was enclosed, thereby avoiding a state of affairs which would be very disheartening to the advocates of a League of Nations and cause general discontent among all peoples who impatiently expected evidence that the restoration of peace was not far distant.

Given this situation, which seemed to strongly suggest delaying the drafting of the international organization plan, I wrote a letter to the President when I sent him the proposed resolution. I mentioned that, in my view, no plan could be developed thoroughly enough to be presented at the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace before he left Paris. I pointed out that if no plan was reported, he'd return to the United States empty-handed. I urged him to push for the delegates to adopt a resolution similar in intent, if not in wording, to the draft I enclosed, in order to prevent a disappointing scenario for those supporting a League of Nations and to avoid broader dissatisfaction among people eager for signs that peace was on the horizon.

It would be presumptuous on my part to speculate on the President's feelings when he received and read my letter and the proposed resolution. It was never answered or acknowledged, and he did not act upon the suggestion or discuss acting upon it, to my knowledge, with any of his colleagues. On the contrary, he summoned the Commission on the League of Nations to meet on February 3, eleven days before the date fixed for his departure for the United States, and laid before that body his revised draft of a Covenant which formed the groundwork for the Commission's report presented to the Conference on February 14.

It would be presumptuous for me to guess what the President felt when he received and read my letter and the proposed resolution. It was never answered or acknowledged, and he didn't take action on the suggestion or discuss it, as far as I know, with any of his colleagues. On the contrary, he called the Commission on the League of Nations to meet on February 3, eleven days before his scheduled departure for the United States, and presented his revised draft of a Covenant, which became the basis for the Commission's report submitted to the Conference on February 14.

The question naturally arises—Why did the President ask me to complete and send to him the resolution embodying a series of declarations if he did not intend to make it a subject of consideration and discussion? It is a pertinent question, but the true answer remains with Mr. Wilson himself. Possibly he concluded that the only way to obtain his plan for a League was to insist upon its practical acceptance before peace was negotiated, and that, unless he took advantage of the universal demand for peace by making the acceptance of the Covenant a condition precedent, he would be unable to obtain its adoption. While I believe this is a correct supposition, it is not responsive to the question as to the reason why he wished me to deliver to him a draft resolution. In fact it suggests another question—What, from the President's point of view, was to be gained by having the resolution in his hands?

The question naturally comes up—Why did the President ask me to complete and send him the resolution containing a series of declarations if he didn't plan to consider and discuss it? It's a valid question, but the true answer lies with Mr. Wilson himself. He may have thought that the only way to get his plan for a League accepted was to push for its practical acceptance before peace was negotiated, and that if he didn't take advantage of the universal demand for peace by making acceptance of the Covenant a prerequisite, he wouldn't be able to get it adopted. While I believe this is a reasonable assumption, it doesn't answer why he wanted me to deliver a draft resolution. In fact, it raises another question—What, from the President's perspective, was to be gained by having the resolution in his hands?

I think the answer is not difficult to find when one remembers that Mr. Wilson had disapproved a resolution of that sort and that the Council of Ten had seemed disposed to approve it. There was no surer way to prevent me from bringing the subject again before the Council than by having the proposed resolution before him for action. Having submitted it to him I was bound, on account of our official relationship, to await his decision before taking any further steps. In a word, his request for a draft practically closed my mouth and tied my hands. If he sought to check my activities with the members of the Council in favor of the proposed course of action, he could have taken no more effectual way than the one which he did take. It was undoubtedly an effective means of "pigeonholing" a resolution, the further discussion of which might interfere with his plan to force through a report upon the Covenant before the middle of February.

I think the answer isn’t hard to find when you remember that Mr. Wilson disapproved of a resolution like that and that the Council of Ten seemed ready to approve it. The best way to stop me from bringing the issue up again with the Council was to have the proposed resolution in front of him for decision. Since I had submitted it to him, I had to wait for his decision before taking any further steps due to our official relationship. In short, his request for a draft pretty much silenced me and limited my actions. If he wanted to curb my efforts with the Council members in favor of the proposed course of action, he couldn’t have chosen a more effective method than what he did. It was definitely a smart way to "pigeonhole" a resolution whose further discussion could interfere with his plan to push through a report on the Covenant before mid-February.

This opinion as to the motive which impelled the President to pursue the course that he did in regard to a resolution was not the one held by me at the time. It was formed only after subsequent events threw new light on the subject. The delay perplexed me at the time, but the reason for it was not evident. I continued to hope, even after the Commission on the League of Nations had assembled and had begun its deliberations, that the policy of a resolution would be adopted. But, as the days went by and the President made no mention of the proposal, I realized that he did not intend to discuss it, and the conviction was forced upon me that he had never intended to have it discussed. It was a disappointing result and one which impressed me with the belief that Mr. Wilson was prejudiced against any suggestion that I might make, if it in any way differed with his own ideas even though it found favor with others.

This view about the motive that led the President to take the actions he did regarding a resolution wasn't my perspective at the time. I formed it only after later events provided more context. The delay confused me then, but the reason for it wasn't clear. I kept hoping, even after the Commission on the League of Nations had gathered and started its discussions, that the resolution's policy would be accepted. However, as days passed and the President said nothing about the proposal, I realized he didn’t plan to bring it up, and I was convinced he had never meant to discuss it at all. It was a disappointing outcome that made me believe that Mr. Wilson was biased against any suggestion I might offer, if it differed from his own views, even if it was supported by others.

CHAPTER X

THE GUARANTY IN THE REVISED COVENANT

During the three weeks preceding the meeting of the Commission on the League the work of revising the President's original draft of the Covenant had been in progress, the President and Colonel House holding frequent interviews with the more influential delegates, particularly the British and French statesmen who had been charged with the duty of studying the subject. While I cannot speak from personal knowledge, I learned that the suggested changes in terms and language were put into form by members of the Colonel's office staff. In addition to modifications which were made to meet the wishes of the foreign statesmen, especially the British, Mr. Gordon Auchincloss, the son-in-law and secretary of Colonel House, and Mr. David Hunter Miller, Auchincloss's law partner and one of the accredited legal advisers of the American Commission, prepared an elaborate memorandum on the President's draft of a Covenant which contained comments and also suggested changes in the text. On account of the intimate relations existing between Messrs. Miller and Auchincloss and Colonel House it seems reasonable to assume that their comments and suggestions were approved by, if they did not to an extent originate with, the Colonel. The memorandum was first made public by Mr. William C. Bullitt during his hearing before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations in September, 1919 (Senate Doc. 106, 66th Congress, 1st Session, pages 1177 et seq.).

In the three weeks leading up to the meeting of the Commission on the League, work was ongoing to revise the President's original draft of the Covenant. The President and Colonel House frequently met with key delegates, especially the British and French leaders assigned to study the matter. While I can't speak from personal experience, I learned that the proposed changes in wording and language were drafted by staff members in Colonel House's office. Besides the adjustments made to accommodate the foreign leaders' preferences, particularly those from Britain, Mr. Gordon Auchincloss, Colonel House's son-in-law and secretary, along with Mr. David Hunter Miller, Auchincloss's law partner and one of the American Commission's official legal advisors, created a detailed memorandum on the President's Covenant draft. This document included comments and suggested changes to the text. Given the close relationship between Messrs. Miller and Auchincloss and Colonel House, it’s reasonable to assume that their feedback was either approved by or originated from the Colonel himself. Mr. William C. Bullitt first made the memorandum public during his testimony before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations in September 1919 (Senate Doc. 106, 66th Congress, 1st Session, pages 1177 et seq.).

The most important amendment to the Covenant suggested by these advisers was, in my judgment, the one relating to Article III of the draft, which became Article 10 in the Treaty. After a long criticism of the President's proposed guaranty, in which it is declared that "such an agreement would destroy the Monroe Doctrine," and that "any guaranty of independence and integrity means war by the guarantor if a breach of the independence or integrity of the guaranteed State is attempted and persisted in," the memorandum proposed that the following be substituted:

The most crucial change to the Covenant recommended by these advisers, in my opinion, was the one concerning Article III of the draft, which became Article 10 in the Treaty. After a lengthy critique of the President's proposed guarantee, where it is stated that "this agreement would undermine the Monroe Doctrine," and that "any guarantee of independence and integrity implies war by the guarantor if there is a violation of the independence or integrity of the guaranteed State that continues," the memorandum suggested that the following be replaced:

"Each Contracting Power severally covenants and guarantees that it will not violate the territorial integrity or impair the political independence of any other Contracting Power."

"Each Contracting Power individually agrees and guarantees that it will not breach the territorial integrity or undermine the political independence of any other Contracting Power."

This proposed substitute should be compared with the language of the "self-denying covenant" that I sent to the President on December 23, 1918, the pertinent portion of which is repeated here for the purpose of such comparison:

This proposed substitute should be compared with the wording of the "self-denying covenant" that I sent to the President on December 23, 1918, the relevant part of which is repeated here for that comparison:

"Each power signatory or adherent hereto severally covenants and guarantees that it will not violate the territorial integrity or impair the political sovereignty of any other power signatory or adherent to this convention, …"

"Each power that signs or agrees to this convention individually promises and guarantees that it will not violate the territorial integrity or undermine the political sovereignty of any other power that signs or agrees to this convention, …"

The practical adoption of the language of my proposed substitute in the memorandum furnishes conclusive proof that Colonel House was "entirely converted" to my form of a guaranty as he had frankly assured me that he was on the evening of January 6. I am convinced also that Mr. Henry White and General Bliss held the same views on the subject. It is obvious that President Wilson was the only one of the American representatives at Paris who favored the affirmative guaranty, but, as he possessed the constitutional authority to determine independently the policy of the United States, his form of a guaranty was written into the revised draft of a Covenant submitted to the Commission on the League of Nations and with comparatively little change was finally adopted in the Treaty of Peace with Germany.

The practical adoption of the language in my proposed replacement in the memorandum provides clear evidence that Colonel House was "completely convinced" of my version of a guaranty, as he had honestly told me he was on the evening of January 6. I'm also sure that Mr. Henry White and General Bliss shared the same views on this matter. It's clear that President Wilson was the only one of the American representatives in Paris who supported the affirmative guaranty, but since he had the constitutional authority to independently set the policy of the United States, his version of a guaranty was included in the revised draft of a Covenant submitted to the Commission on the League of Nations and was ultimately adopted in the Treaty of Peace with Germany with relatively few changes.

The memorandum prepared by Messrs. Miller and Auchincloss was apparently in the President's hands before the revised draft was completed, for certain changes in the original draft were in accord with the suggestions made in their memorandum. His failure to modify the guaranty may be considered another rejection of the "self-denying covenant" and a final decision to insist on the affirmative form of guaranty in spite of the unanimous opposition of his American colleagues.

The memo created by Mr. Miller and Mr. Auchincloss was clearly in the President's hands before the revised draft was finished, as some changes in the original draft aligned with the suggestions in their memo. His choice not to alter the guarantee can be seen as yet another dismissal of the "self-denying covenant" and a final decision to stick to the affirmative form of guarantee despite the unanimous opposition from his American colleagues.

In view of what later occurred a very definite conclusion may be reached concerning the President's rejection of the proposed substitute for his guaranty. Article 10 was from the first the storm center of opposition to the report of the Commission on the League of Nations and the chief cause for refusal of consent to the ratification of the Treaty of Versailles by the Senate of the United States. The vulnerable nature of the provision, which had been so plainly pointed out to the President before the Covenant was submitted to the Commission, invited attack. If he had listened to the advice of his colleagues, in fact if he had listened to any American who expressed an opinion on the subject, the Treaty would probably have obtained the speedy approval of the Senate. There would have been opposition from those inimical to the United States entering any international organization, but it would have been insufficient to prevent ratification of the Treaty.

Given what happened later, a very clear conclusion can be drawn about the President's rejection of the proposed alternative to his guarantee. Article 10 was from the beginning the main point of contention regarding the Commission's report on the League of Nations and the primary reason the U.S. Senate refused to ratify the Treaty of Versailles. The weak nature of this provision, which had been clearly highlighted to the President before the Covenant was presented to the Commission, invited criticism. If he had taken the advice of his colleagues, or really listened to any American who shared their views on the matter, the Treaty likely would have received quick approval from the Senate. There would have been opposition from those against the U.S. joining any international organization, but it would not have been enough to stop the ratification of the Treaty.

As it was, the President's unalterable determination to have his form of guaranty in the Covenant, in which he was successful, and his firm refusal to modify it in any substantial way resulted in strengthening the opponents to the League to such an extent that they were able to prevent the Treaty from obtaining the necessary consent of two thirds of the Senators.

As it turned out, the President's unwavering decision to include his version of a guarantee in the Covenant, which he succeeded in doing, along with his strong refusal to change it in any significant way, ended up empowering the opponents of the League to the point where they could stop the Treaty from gaining the required approval of two-thirds of the Senators.

The sincerity of Mr. Wilson's belief in the absolute necessity of the guaranty, which he proposed, to the preservation of international peace cannot be doubted. While his advisers were practically unanimous in the opinion that policy, as well as principle, demanded a change in the guaranty, he clung tenaciously to the affirmative form. The result was that which was feared and predicted by his colleagues. The President, and the President alone, must bear the responsibility for the result.

The sincerity of Mr. Wilson's belief in the essential need for the guarantee he proposed to maintain international peace is unquestionable. While his advisors were largely in agreement that both policy and principle called for a change in the guarantee, he stubbornly stuck to the original positive form. As a result, what his colleagues feared and predicted happened. The President, and only the President, had to take responsibility for the outcome.

CHAPTER XI

INTERNATIONAL ARBITRATION

On the day that the Commission on the League of Nations held its first meeting and before I had reason to suspect that Mr. Wilson intended to ignore the letter which I had sent him with the suggested resolution enclosed, I determined to appeal to him in behalf of international arbitration. I decided to do this on the assumption that, even if the plan for a resolution was approved, the Commission would continue its sessions in preparation for the subsequent negotiation of an agreement of some sort providing for world organization. The provision as to arbitration in the President's original draft of a Covenant was so wrong from my point of view and showed such a lack of knowledge of the practical side of the subject that I was impelled to make an effort to induce him to change the provision. Except for the fact that the matter was wholly legal in character and invited an opinion based on technical knowledge, I would have remained silent in accordance with my feeling that it would be inadvisable for me to have anything to do with drafting the Covenant. I felt, however, that the constitution and procedure of international courts were subjects which did not affect the general theory of organization and concerning which my views might influence the President and be of aid to him in the formulation of the judicial feature of any plan adopted.

On the day the Commission on the League of Nations held its first meeting, before I had any reason to think that Mr. Wilson intended to disregard the letter I had sent him with the suggested resolution, I decided to reach out to him about international arbitration. I took this step thinking that, even if the resolution plan was approved, the Commission would keep meeting to prepare for negotiating some kind of agreement for global organization. The section on arbitration in the President's original draft of the Covenant seemed completely wrong to me and showed a lack of understanding of the practical aspects of the issue, so I felt compelled to encourage him to revise it. If it weren’t for the fact that the issue was entirely legal and called for an opinion based on specialized knowledge, I would have stayed silent, following my instinct that it would be unwise for me to be involved in drafting the Covenant. However, I believed that the structure and processes of international courts were topics that didn’t impact the overall theory of organization, and my insights might help the President in shaping the judicial aspect of any plan adopted.

With this object in view I wrote to him the following letter:

With this goal in mind, I wrote him the following letter:

"_Hôtel Crillon, Paris

"Hôtel Crillon, Paris"

"February_ 3, 1919

February 3, 1919

"My Dear Mr. President:

"Dear Mr. President:"

"I am deeply interested, as you know, in the constitution and procedure of international courts of arbitration, and having participated in five proceedings of this sort I feel that I can speak with a measure of authority.

"I am really interested, as you know, in the structure and process of international arbitration courts, and having taken part in five cases like this, I feel confident that I can speak with some authority."

"In the first place let me say that a tribunal, on which representatives of the litigants sit as judges, has not proved satisfactory even though the majority of the tribunal are nationals of other countries. However well prepared from experience on the bench to render strict justice, the litigants' arbitrators act in fact as advocates. As a consequence the neutral arbitrators are decidedly hampered in giving full and free expression to their views, and there is not that frank exchange of opinion which should characterize the conference of judges. It has generally resulted in a compromise, in which the nation in the wrong gains a measure of benefit and the nation in the right is deprived of a part of the remedy to which it is entitled. In fact an arbitration award is more of a political and diplomatic arrangement than it is a judicial determination. I believe that this undesirable result can be in large measure avoided by eliminating arbitrators of the litigant nations. It is only in the case of monetary claims that these observations do not apply.

"First of all, I want to say that a panel where representatives of the parties involved sit as judges has not been satisfactory, even though most of the panel members are from other countries. No matter how experienced the judges are, the arbitrators representing the parties essentially act as advocates. This makes it difficult for the neutral arbitrators to express their views freely, and it prevents the open exchange of opinions that should happen among judges. As a result, it often leads to a compromise where the nation at fault benefits in some way, while the nation that is right loses part of the remedy it deserves. In reality, an arbitration award is more about political and diplomatic arrangements than a true judicial decision. I believe we can mostly avoid this negative outcome by removing arbitrators from the involved nations. This does not apply only to monetary claims."

"Another difficulty has been the method of procedure before international tribunals. This does not apply to monetary claims, but to disputes arising out of boundaries, interpretation of treaties, national rights, etc. The present method of an exchange of cases and of counter-cases is more diplomatic than judicial, since it does not put the parties in the relation of complainant and defendant. This relation can in every case be established, if not by mutual agreement, then by some agency of the League of Nations charged with that duty. Until this reform of procedure takes place there will be no definition of issues, and arbitration will continue to be the long and elaborate proceeding it has been in the past.

"Another challenge has been the process used by international tribunals. This isn’t about monetary claims, but rather disputes involving borders, treaty interpretations, national rights, and so on. The current approach of exchanging cases and counter-cases feels more diplomatic than judicial, as it doesn’t put the parties in the roles of complainant and defendant. This relationship can be established in every case, either through mutual agreement or by an agency of the League of Nations assigned to handle that. Until this procedural reform happens, there will be no clarity on the issues, and arbitration will remain a lengthy and complicated process as it has been in the past."

"There is another practical obstacle to international arbitration as now conducted which ought to be considered, and that is the cost. This obstacle does not affect wealthy nations, but it does prevent small and poor nations from resorting to it as a means of settling disputes. Just how this can be remedied I am not prepared to say, although possibly the international support of all arbitral tribunals might be provided. At any rate, I feel that something should be done to relieve the great expense which now prevents many of the smaller nations from resorting to arbitration.

There’s another practical issue with how international arbitration is currently conducted, and that’s the cost. This problem doesn’t impact wealthy countries, but it does stop small and poor countries from using it to settle disputes. I’m not sure how exactly to fix this, though maybe there could be international support for all arbitration tribunals. Regardless, I believe something needs to be done to ease the high costs that keep many smaller nations from using arbitration.

"I would suggest, therefore, that the Peace Treaty contain a provision directing the League of Nations to hold a conference or to summon a conference to take up this whole matter and draft an international treaty dealing with the constitution of arbitral tribunals and radically revising the procedure.

I would suggest, therefore, that the Peace Treaty include a provision directing the League of Nations to hold a conference or to call a conference to address this entire matter and create an international treaty that covers the structure of arbitral tribunals and significantly revises the procedure.

"On account of the difficulties of the subject, which do not appear on the surface, but which experience has shown to be very real, I feel that it would be impracticable to provide in the Peace Treaty too definitely the method of constituting arbitral tribunals. It will require considerable thought and discussion to make arbitration available to the poor as well as the rich, to make an award a judicial settlement rather than a diplomatic compromise, and to supersede the cumbersome and prolonged procedure with its duplication of documents and maps by a simple method which will settle the issues and materially shorten the proceedings which now unavoidably drag along for months, if not for years.

"Due to the complexities of the topic, which aren’t obvious at first glance but have proven to be quite significant, I believe it would be unrealistic to specify the exact way to set up arbitral tribunals in the Peace Treaty. It will take a lot of consideration and discussion to make arbitration accessible to both the poor and the wealthy, to ensure that a ruling is a judicial resolution rather than merely a diplomatic compromise, and to replace the lengthy and complicated process, which involves a lot of duplicate documents and maps, with a straightforward approach that will resolve issues and significantly reduce the lengthy proceedings that currently stretch on for months or even years."

"Faithfully yours

"Yours faithfully"

"ROBERT LANSING
"THE PRESIDENT

"28 Rue de Monceau"

"28 Rue de Monceau"

At the time that I sent this letter to Mr. Wilson I had not seen the revised draft of the Covenant which he laid before the Commission on the League of Nations. The probability is that, if I had seen it, the letter would not have been written, for in the revision of the original draft the objectionable Article V, relating to arbitration and appeals from arbitral awards, was omitted. In place of it there were substituted two articles, 11 and 12, the first being an agreement to arbitrate under certain conditions and the other providing that "the Executive Council will formulate plans for the establishment of a Permanent Court of International Justice, and this Court will be competent to hear and determine any matter which the parties recognize as suitable for submission to it for arbitration."

At the time I sent this letter to Mr. Wilson, I hadn't seen the updated draft of the Covenant that he presented to the Commission on the League of Nations. It's likely that if I had seen it, I wouldn't have written the letter, because in the revision of the original draft, the problematic Article V, concerning arbitration and appeals from arbitral awards, was removed. Instead, two articles, 11 and 12, were introduced. The first establishes an agreement to arbitrate under certain conditions, and the second states that "the Executive Council will develop plans for creating a Permanent Court of International Justice, which will be authorized to hear and resolve any issue that the parties agree is appropriate for arbitration."

Unadvised as to this change, which promised a careful consideration of the method of applying legal principles of justice to international disputes, I did not feel that I could let pass without challenge the unsatisfactory provisions of the President's original draft. Knowing the contempt which Mr. Wilson felt for The Hague Tribunal and his general suspicion of the justice of decisions which it might render, it seemed to me inexpedient to suggest that it should form the basis of a newly constituted judiciary, a suggestion which I should have made had I been dealing with any one other than President Wilson. In view of the intensity of the President's prejudices and of the uselessness of attempting to remove them, my letter was intended to induce him to postpone a determination of the subject until the problems which it presented could be thoroughly studied and a judicial system developed by an international body of representatives more expert in juridical matters than the Commission on the League of Nations, the American members of which were incompetent by training, knowledge, and practical experience to consider the subject.

Unaware of this change, which promised to carefully consider how to apply legal principles of justice to international disputes, I felt it was necessary to challenge the unsatisfactory aspects of the President's original draft. Given Mr. Wilson's disdain for The Hague Tribunal and his general mistrust of its decisions, I thought it wasn't wise to suggest that it should be the foundation for a new judicial system—a suggestion I would have made if I were dealing with anyone other than President Wilson. Considering the depth of the President's biases and the futility of trying to change them, my letter aimed to persuade him to delay any decisions on the subject until the issues could be thoroughly examined and a judicial system created by an international group of representatives who are more knowledgeable about legal matters than the Commission on the League of Nations, whose American members lacked the training, knowledge, and practical experience to address the issue adequately.

No acknowledgment, either written or oral, was ever made of my letter of February 3. Possibly President Wilson considered it unnecessary to do so in view of the provision in his revised Covenant postponing discussion of the subject. At the time, however, I naturally assumed that my voluntary advice was unwelcome to him. His silence as to my communications, which seemed to be intended to discourage a continuance of them, gave the impression that he considered an uninvited opinion on any subject connected with the League of Nations an unwarranted interference with a phase of the negotiations which he looked upon as his own special province, and that comment or suggestion, which did not conform wholly to his views, was interpreted into opposition and possibly into criticism of him personally.

No acknowledgment, either written or verbal, was ever made of my letter from February 3. Perhaps President Wilson thought it unnecessary to respond given his revised Covenant's provision postponing the discussion of the topic. At the time, though, I naturally assumed that my unsolicited advice was not welcome to him. His silence regarding my communications, which seemed aimed at discouraging further correspondence, created the impression that he viewed an unsolicited opinion on any matter related to the League of Nations as an unwarranted interference in negotiations he considered to be solely within his domain, and that any comments or suggestions that didn’t fully align with his views were interpreted as opposition and possibly as personal criticism of him.

This judgment of the President's mental attitude, which was formed at the time, may have been too harsh. It is possible that the shortness of time in which to complete the drafting of the report of the Commission on the League of Nations, upon which he had set his heart, caused him to be impatient of any criticism or suggestion which tended to interrupt his work or that of the Commission. It may have been that pressure for time prevented him from answering letters of the character of the one of February 3. Whatever the real reason was, the fact remains that the letter went unnoticed and the impression was made that it was futile to attempt to divert the President from the single purpose which he had in mind. His fidelity to his own convictions and his unswerving determination to attain what he sought are characteristics of Mr. Wilson which are sources of weakness as well as of strength. Through them success has generally crowned his efforts, success which in some instances has been more disastrous than failure would have been.

The judgment of the President's mindset at that time might have been too severe. It’s possible that the tight deadline for completing the draft of the Commission on the League of Nations, which he was very committed to, made him impatient with any criticism or suggestions that interrupted his work or the Commission's. The pressure of time might have prevented him from responding to letters like the one from February 3. Whatever the actual reason, the fact is that the letter went ignored, and it created the impression that it was pointless to try to steer the President away from his singular focus. His loyalty to his beliefs and his unwavering determination to achieve his goals are traits of Mr. Wilson that can be both a strength and a weakness. Because of these traits, he has often found success, which in some cases has been more harmful than failure would have been.

By what means the change of Article V of the original draft of the Covenant took place, I cannot say. In the memorandum of Messrs. Miller and Auchincloss no suggestion of a Court of International Justice appears, which seems to indicate that the provision in the revised draft did not originate with them or with Colonel House. In fact on more than one occasion I had mentioned arbitration to the Colonel and found his views on the subject extremely vague, though I concluded that he had almost as poor an opinion of The Hague Tribunal as did the President. The probability is that the change was suggested to Mr. Wilson by one of the foreign statesmen in a personal interview during January and that upon sounding others he found that they were practically unanimous in favor of a Permanent Court of Justice. As a matter of policy it seemed wise to forestall amendment by providing for its future establishment. If this is the true explanation, Article 12 was not of American origin, though it appears in the President's revised draft.

I can’t say how Article V of the original draft of the Covenant was changed. In the memo from Messrs. Miller and Auchincloss, there’s no mention of a Court of International Justice, which suggests that the provision in the revised draft didn’t come from them or Colonel House. In fact, I brought up arbitration with the Colonel several times, and his views on it were pretty unclear; I got the sense that he had a low opinion of The Hague Tribunal, much like the President. It seems likely that one of the foreign leaders suggested the change to Mr. Wilson during a personal meeting in January, and upon checking with others, he found that they were nearly all in favor of a Permanent Court of Justice. To avoid any amendments later, it seemed smart to set up for its future establishment. If this is the case, then Article 12 wasn’t originally from the U.S., even though it shows up in the President’s revised draft.

To be entirely frank in stating my views in regard to Mr. Wilson's attitude toward international arbitration and its importance in a plan of world organization, I have always been and still am skeptical of the sincerity of the apparent willingness of the President to accept the change which was inserted in his revised draft. It is difficult to avoid the belief that Article V of the original draft indicated his true opinion of the application of legal principles to controversies between nations. That article, by depriving an arbitral award of finality and conferring the power of review on a political body with authority to order a rehearing, shows that the President believed that more complete justice would be rendered if the precepts and rules of international law were in a measure subordinated to political expediency and if the judges were not permitted to view the questions solely from the standpoint of legal justice. There is nothing that occurred, to my knowledge, between the printing of the original draft of the Covenant and the printing of the revised draft, which indicated a change of opinion by the President. It may be that this is a misinterpretation of Mr. Wilson's attitude, and that the change toward international arbitration was due to conviction rather than to expediency; but my belief is that expediency was the sole cause.

To be completely honest about my views on Mr. Wilson's stance towards international arbitration and its significance in a global organization plan, I have always been, and still am, doubtful about the genuineness of the President's apparent willingness to accept the change in his revised draft. It's hard to shake the feeling that Article V of the original draft revealed his true beliefs about applying legal principles to disputes between nations. That article, which took away the finality of an arbitral award and gave a political body the power to review it and order a rehearing, suggests that the President thought a more complete form of justice would be achieved if the guidelines of international law were somewhat subordinate to political practicality and if judges weren't allowed to consider the issues solely from a legal justice perspective. To my knowledge, nothing happened between the printing of the original draft of the Covenant and the revised draft that indicated a change in the President's opinion. It’s possible that this is a misunderstanding of Mr. Wilson's viewpoint, and that the shift towards international arbitration came from genuine belief rather than practicality; however, I believe that practicality was the only reason.

CHAPTER XII

REPORT OF COMMISSION ON LEAGUE OF NATIONS

The Commission on the League of Nations, over which President Wilson presided, held ten meetings between February 3 and February 14, on which latter day it submitted a report at a plenary session of the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace. The report was presented by the President in an address of exceptional excellence which made a deep impression on his hearers. His dignity of manner, his earnestness, and his logical presentation of the subject, clothed as it was in well-chosen phrases, unquestionably won the admiration of all, even of those who could not reconcile their personal views with the Covenant, as reported by the Commission. It was a masterly effort, an example of literary rather than emotional oratory, peculiarly fitting to the occasion and to the temper and intellectual character of the audience.

The Commission on the League of Nations, led by President Wilson, held ten meetings between February 3 and February 14, on which last day it delivered a report at a plenary session of the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace. The President presented the report with an outstanding speech that left a strong impression on everyone who heard it. His dignified demeanor, sincerity, and logical approach to the topic, expressed in carefully chosen words, undoubtedly earned the respect of all, including those who disagreed with the Covenant as proposed by the Commission. It was an impressive performance, showcasing literary skill rather than emotional appeal, perfectly suited to the occasion and the mindset and intellect of the audience.

Considering the brief time given to its discussion in the Commission and the necessary haste required to complete the document before the President's departure, the Covenant as reported to the Conference was a creditable piece of work. Many of the more glaring errors of expression and some of the especially objectionable features of the President's revised draft were eliminated. There were others which persisted, but the improvement was so marked that the gross defects in word and phrase largely disappeared. If one accepted the President's theory of organization, there was little to criticize in the report, except a certain inexactness of expression which indicated a lack of technical knowledge on the part of those who put the Covenant into final form. But these crudities and ambiguities of language would, it was fair to presume, disappear if the articles passed through the hands of drafting experts.

Considering the limited time available for discussion in the Commission and the urgency needed to finish the document before the President's departure, the Covenant presented at the Conference was a commendable effort. Many of the more obvious mistakes in wording and some of the particularly unacceptable aspects of the President's revised draft were eliminated. A few issues remained, but the overall improvement was so significant that the major flaws in wording and phrases mostly vanished. If one accepted the President's organizational theory, there was little to criticize in the report, except for some inaccuracies in expression that suggested a lack of technical knowledge from those who finalized the Covenant. However, it was reasonable to assume that these rough patches and language ambiguities would be resolved if the articles were reviewed by drafting experts.

Fundamentally, however, the Covenant as reported was as wrong as the President's original draft, since it contained the affirmative guaranty of political independence and territorial integrity, the primacy of the Five Great Powers on the Executive Council, and the perplexing and seemingly unsound system of mandates. In this I could not willingly follow President Wilson, but I felt that I had done all that I could properly do in opposition to his theory. The responsibility of decision rested with him and he had made his decision. There was nothing more to be said.

However, at its core, the Covenant, as presented, was just as flawed as the President's original draft. It included guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity, prioritized the Five Great Powers in the Executive Council, and had a confusing and seemingly questionable system of mandates. I couldn't fully support President Wilson on this, but I believed I had done everything I could to oppose his approach. The responsibility for the final decision was his, and he had made it. There was nothing more to say.

On the evening of the day of the plenary session, at which the report of the League of Nations was submitted, the President left Paris for Brest where the George Washington was waiting to convey him to the United States. He carried with him the report of the Commission, whose deliberations and decisions he had so manifestly dominated. He went prepared to meet his political antagonists and the enemies of the League, confidently believing that he could win a popular support that would silence the opposition which had been increasingly manifest in the Halls of Congress and in some of the Republican newspapers which declined to follow Mr. Taft, Mr. Wickersham, Mr. Straus, and other influential Republican members of the League to Enforce Peace.

On the evening of the day of the plenary session when the League of Nations report was presented, the President left Paris for Brest, where the George Washington was waiting to take him back to the United States. He brought along the Commission's report, which he had clearly influenced throughout the discussions and decisions. He was ready to face his political opponents and the critics of the League, feeling confident that he could gain enough public support to quiet the growing opposition in Congress and among several Republican newspapers that were not backing Mr. Taft, Mr. Wickersham, Mr. Straus, and other key Republican members of the League to Enforce Peace.

During the ten days preceding February 14, when the Commission on the League of Nations held daily sessions, the President had no conferences with the American Commissioners except, of course, with Colonel House, his American colleague on the Commission on the League. On the morning of the 14th, however, he called a meeting of the Commissioners and delivered to them the printed report which was to be presented that afternoon to the plenary session. As the meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations had been secret, the American Commissioners, other than Colonel House, were almost entirely ignorant of the proceedings and of the progress being made. Colonel House's office staff knew far more about it than did Mr. White, General Bliss, or I. When the President delivered the report to the Commissioners they were, therefore, in no position to express an opinion concerning it. The only remarks were expressions of congratulation that he had been able to complete the work before his departure. They were merely complimentary. As to the merits of the document nothing was or could be said by the three Commissioners, since no opportunity had been given them to study it, and without a critical examination any comment concerning its provisions would have been worthless. I felt and I presume that my two colleagues, who had not been consulted as to the work of the Commission on the League, felt, that it was, in any event, too late to offer suggestions or make criticisms. The report was in print; it was that afternoon to be laid before the Conference; in twelve hours the President would be on his way to the United States. Clearly it would have been useless to find fault with the report, especially if the objections related to the fundamental ideas of the organization which it was intended to create. The President having in the report declared the American policy, his commissioned representatives were bound to acquiesce in his decision whatever their personal views were. Acquiescence or resignation was the choice, and resignation would have undoubtedly caused an unfortunate, if not a critical, situation. In the circumstances acquiescence seemed the only practical and proper course.

During the ten days leading up to February 14, when the Commission on the League of Nations held daily meetings, the President didn’t have any discussions with the American Commissioners, except for Colonel House, his American colleague on the Commission. However, on the morning of the 14th, he called a meeting of the Commissioners and handed them the printed report that was set to be presented that afternoon at the plenary session. Since the meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations had been secret, the American Commissioners, other than Colonel House, were mostly unaware of the discussions and progress made. Colonel House’s office staff knew much more about it than Mr. White, General Bliss, or I did. When the President presented the report to the Commissioners, they were therefore not in a position to give their opinions on it. The only comments made were congratulatory remarks about his ability to finish the work before his departure. They were just compliments. Regarding the merits of the document, nothing could be said by the three Commissioners since they hadn’t had a chance to study it, and without a detailed examination, any comments about its provisions would have been meaningless. I felt, and I assume my two colleagues, who hadn’t been consulted about the work of the Commission on the League, felt the same, that it was, in any case, too late to offer suggestions or criticisms. The report was in print; it was scheduled to be presented at the Conference that afternoon; in twelve hours, the President would be on his way back to the United States. Clearly, it would have been pointless to criticize the report, especially if the objections were related to the fundamental ideas of the organization it aimed to establish. Since the President had outlined American policy in the report, his commissioned representatives had to accept his decision, regardless of their personal opinions. The choice was acquiescence or resignation, and resignation would have undoubtedly led to an unfortunate, if not critical, situation. Given the circumstances, acquiescence seemed to be the only practical and appropriate course of action.

The fact that in ten meetings and in a week and a half a Commission composed of fifteen members, ten of whom represented the Five Great Powers and five of whom represented the lesser powers (to which were later added four others), completed the drafting of a detailed plan of a League of Nations, is sufficient in itself to raise doubts as to the thoroughness with which the work was done and as to the care with which the various plans and numerous provisions proposed were studied, compared, and discussed. It gives the impression that many clauses were accepted under the pressing necessity of ending the Commission's labors within a fixed time. The document itself bears evidence of the haste with which it was prepared, and is almost conclusive proof in itself that it was adopted through personal influence rather than because of belief in the wisdom of all its provisions.

The fact that in just ten meetings over a week and a half, a Commission made up of fifteen members—ten representing the Five Great Powers and five representing the smaller powers (with four more added later)—finished drafting a detailed plan for a League of Nations raises serious questions about how thoroughly the work was done and how carefully the various proposals and provisions were examined, compared, and discussed. It seems that many clauses were accepted due to the urgent need to complete the Commission's work on time. The document itself shows signs of the rush in which it was created and serves as strong evidence that it was adopted based on personal influence rather than genuine belief in the effectiveness of all its elements.

The Covenant of the League of Nations was intended to be the greatest international compact that had ever been written. It was to be the Maxima Charta of mankind securing to the nations their rights and liberties and uniting them for the preservation of universal peace. To harmonize the conflicting views of the members of the Commission—and it was well known that they were conflicting—and to produce in eleven days a world charter, which would contain the elements of greatness or even of perpetuity, was on the face of it an undertaking impossible of accomplishment. The document which was produced sufficiently establishes the truth of this assertion.

The Covenant of the League of Nations was meant to be the most significant international agreement ever created. It was supposed to be the Maxima Charta of humanity, ensuring nations their rights and freedoms while bringing them together to maintain global peace. Trying to reconcile the differing opinions of the Commission members—known to be conflicting—and to create a world charter in just eleven days that would embody greatness or even endure over time seemed like an impossible task. The document that emerged clearly supports this claim.

It required a dominant personality on the Commission to force through a detailed plan of a League in so short a time. President Wilson was such a personality. By adopting the scheme of an oligarchy of the Great Powers he silenced the dangerous opposition of the French and British members of the Commission who willingly passed over minor defects in the plan provided this Concert of Powers, this Quintuple Alliance, was incorporated in the Covenant. And for the same reason it may be assumed the Japanese and Italians found the President's plan acceptable. Mr. Wilson won a great personal triumph, but he did so by surrendering the fundamental principle of the equality of nations. In his eagerness to "make the world safe for democracy" he abandoned international democracy and became the advocate of international autocracy.

It took a strong personality on the Commission to push through a detailed plan for a League in such a short time. President Wilson was that kind of personality. By endorsing a scheme that favored the Great Powers, he quieted the significant pushback from the French and British members of the Commission, who overlooked minor flaws in the plan as long as this Concert of Powers, this Quintuple Alliance, was included in the Covenant. For similar reasons, it's likely that the Japanese and Italians found the President's plan acceptable. Mr. Wilson achieved a significant personal victory, but he did so at the cost of the fundamental principle of equality among nations. In his eagerness to "make the world safe for democracy," he sacrificed international democracy and instead advocated for international autocracy.

It is not my purpose to analyze the provisions of the Covenant which was submitted to the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace on February 14, 1919. My objections to it have been sufficiently discussed in the preceding pages. It would be superfluous to repeat them. The innumerable published articles and the endless debates on the Covenant have brought out its good features as well as its defects. Unfortunately for the opponents and defenders of the document alike some of the objections urged have been flagrantly unjustifiable and based on false premises and misstatements of fact and of law, which seem to show political motives and not infrequently personal animosity toward Mr. Wilson. The exaggerated statements and unfair arguments of some of the Senators, larded, as they often were, with caustic sarcasm and vindictive personalities, did much to prevent an honest and useful discussion of the merits and demerits of the Covenant.

I'm not here to analyze the provisions of the Covenant that was presented to the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace on February 14, 1919. I've already expressed my objections in the earlier sections. It would be unnecessary to repeat them. The countless articles published and the ongoing debates about the Covenant have highlighted both its strengths and weaknesses. Unfortunately for those both for and against the document, some objections raised were clearly unjustifiable, based on false premises and misstatements of fact and law, which seem to reveal political motivations and often personal grudges against Mr. Wilson. The exaggerated claims and unfair arguments from some Senators, frequently filled with harsh sarcasm and personal attacks, hindered a sincere and constructive discussion of the Covenant's pros and cons.

The effect upon President Wilson of this campaign against him personally—and it seems to me that it would have had the same effect upon any man of spirit—was to arouse his indignation. Possibly a less stubborn man would not have assumed so uncompromising an attitude as he did or have permitted his ire to find expression in threats, but it cannot be denied that there was provocation for the resentment which he exhibited. The President has been blamed for not having sought more constantly to placate the opponents of the Covenant and to meet them on a common ground of compromise, especially during his visit to the United States in February, 1919. From the point of view of policy there is justice in blaming him, but, when one considers the personal animus shown and the insolent tone assumed by some of his critics, his conduct was very human; not wise, but human. Mr. Wilson had never shown a spirit of conciliation in dealing with those who opposed him. Even in the case of a purely political question he appeared to consider opposition to be a personal affront and he was disposed to retaliate in a personal way. In a measure this explains the personal enmity of many of his political foes. I think that it is not unjust to say that President Wilson was stronger in his hatreds than in his friendships. He seemed to lack the ability to forgive one who had in any way offended him or opposed him.

The impact of the campaign against President Wilson personally—something I believe would have affected any spirited person—was to ignite his anger. A less stubborn individual might not have taken such a hardline stance or allowed his frustration to express itself in threats, but it’s undeniable that there was good reason for the resentment he displayed. The President has faced criticism for not trying harder to appease the opponents of the Covenant and finding common ground for compromise, especially during his trip to the United States in February 1919. From a policy perspective, it's fair to critique him, but when you consider the personal hostility and arrogant tone some of his critics took, his response was very human; not wise, but human. Mr. Wilson had never shown a willingness to reconcile with those who disagreed with him. Even in purely political matters, he seemed to view opposition as a personal insult and was inclined to retaliate personally. This partly explains the deep-seated animosity many of his political rivals had toward him. I think it’s fair to say that President Wilson was stronger in his hatreds than in his friendships. He appeared to struggle with the ability to forgive anyone who had wronged or opposed him in any way.

Believing that much of the criticism of the Covenant was in reality criticism of him as its author, a belief that was in a measure justified, the President made it a personal matter. He threatened, in a public address delivered in the New York Opera House on the eve of his departure for France, to force the Republican majority to accept the Covenant by interweaving the League of Nations into the terms of peace to such an extent that they could not be separated, so that, if they rejected the League, they would be responsible for defeating the Treaty and preventing a restoration of peace. With the general demand for peace this seemed no empty threat, although the propriety of making it may be questioned. It had, however, exactly the opposite effect from that which the President intended. Its utterance proved to be as unwise as it was ineffective. The opposition Senators resented the idea of being coerced. They became more than ever determined to defeat a President whom they charged with attempting to disregard and nullify the right of the Senate to exercise independently its constitutional share in the treaty-making power. Thus at the very outset of the struggle between the President and the Senate a feeling of hostility was engendered which continued with increasing bitterness on both sides and prevented any compromise or concession in regard to the Covenant as it finally appeared in the Treaty of Versailles.

Believing that much of the criticism of the Covenant was really aimed at him as its author—a belief that was somewhat justified—the President took it personally. In a public speech at the New York Opera House just before he left for France, he threatened to make the Republican majority accept the Covenant by tying the League of Nations to the peace terms so closely that they couldn't be separated. He implied that if they rejected the League, they would be responsible for blocking the Treaty and stopping the restoration of peace. Given the widespread desire for peace, this didn’t seem like an empty threat, though the appropriateness of making it can be questioned. However, it had the exact opposite effect from what the President intended. His comment turned out to be as unwise as it was ineffective. The opposing Senators resented being pressured. They became even more determined to defeat a President who they accused of trying to sidestep and undermine the Senate's right to independently exercise its constitutional role in treaty-making. Thus, right from the start of the conflict between the President and the Senate, a sense of hostility was created, which only grew more bitter on both sides and blocked any compromise or concession regarding the Covenant as it ultimately appeared in the Treaty of Versailles.

When President Wilson returned to Paris after the adjournment of the Sixty-Fifth Congress on March 4, 1919, he left behind him opponents who were stronger and more confident than they were when he landed ten days before. While his appeal to public opinion in favor of the League of Nations had been to an extent successful, there was a general feeling that the Covenant as then drafted required amendment so that the sovereign rights and the traditional policies of the United States should be safeguarded. Until the document was amended it seemed that the opposition had the better of the argument with the people. Furthermore, when the new Congress met, the Republicans would have a majority in the Senate which was of special importance in the matter of the Treaty which would contain the Covenant, because it would, when sent to the Senate, be referred to the Committee on Foreign Relations to report on its ratification and a majority of that Committee, under a Republican organization, would presumably be hostile to the plan for a League advocated by the President. The Committee could hinder and possibly prevent the acceptance of the Covenant, while it would have the opportunity to place the opposition's case in a favorable light before the American people and to attack the President's conduct of the negotiations at Paris.

When President Wilson returned to Paris after the Sixty-Fifth Congress adjourned on March 4, 1919, he left behind opponents who were stronger and more confident than they had been just ten days earlier. Although his appeal to public opinion in favor of the League of Nations had some success, there was a widespread belief that the Covenant, as it was drafted, needed changes to protect the sovereign rights and traditional policies of the United States. Until the document was revised, it seemed that the opposition had the upper hand with the public. Additionally, when the new Congress convened, the Republicans would have a majority in the Senate, which was particularly significant for the Treaty that would include the Covenant. When the Treaty was sent to the Senate, it would go to the Committee on Foreign Relations for a report on its ratification, and with a Republican majority, that Committee would likely be against the League plan proposed by the President. The Committee could obstruct or even prevent the acceptance of the Covenant, while also having the chance to present the opposition's perspective positively to the American people and criticize the President's handling of the negotiations in Paris.

I believe that the President realized the loss of strategic position which he had sustained by the Democratic defeat at the polls in November, 1918, but was persuaded that, by making certain alterations in the Covenant suggested by Republicans favorable to the formation of a League, and especially those advocating a League to Enforce Peace, he would be able to win sufficient support in the Senate and from the people to deprive his antagonists of the advantage which they had gained by the elections. This he sought to do on his return to Paris about the middle of March. If the same spirit of compromise had been shown while he was in America it would doubtless have gone far to weaken hostility to the Covenant. Unfortunately for his purpose he assumed a contrary attitude, and in consequence the sentiment against the League was crystallized and less responsive to the concessions which the President appeared willing to make when the Commission on the League of Nations resumed its sittings, especially as the obnoxious Article 10 remained intact.

I believe the President realized he had lost strategic ground due to the Democratic defeat in the November 1918 elections. However, he was convinced that by making a few changes to the Covenant, suggested by Republicans who supported the creation of a League, especially those pushing for a League to Enforce Peace, he could gain enough backing in the Senate and from the public to undermine the advantage his opponents had gained from the elections. He aimed to do this upon his return to Paris around mid-March. If he had shown the same spirit of compromise while he was in America, it likely would have reduced the hostility toward the Covenant. Unfortunately, he took a different approach, which solidified opposition to the League and made it less open to the compromises he seemed willing to offer when the Commission on the League of Nations resumed its meetings, especially since the controversial Article 10 remained unchanged.

In the formulation of the amendments to the Covenant, which were incorporated in it after the President's return from the United States and before its final adoption by the Conference, I had no part and I have no reason to think that Mr. White or General Bliss shared in the work. As these amendments or modifications did not affect the theory of organization or the fundamental principles of the League, they in no way changed my views or lessened the differences between the President's judgment and mine. Our differences were as to the bases and not as to the details of the Covenant. Since there was no disposition to change the former we were no nearer an agreement than we were in January.

In creating the amendments to the Covenant, which were added after the President returned from the United States and before the Conference's final approval, I was not involved, and I have no reason to believe that Mr. White or General Bliss contributed either. Since these amendments or modifications didn’t affect the organization’s theory or the League's core principles, they didn’t change my opinions or lessen the disagreements between the President's views and mine. Our differences were based on the fundamentals, not the specifics of the Covenant. As there was no inclination to alter the fundamentals, we were no closer to an agreement than we were in January.

The President's visit to the United States had been disappointing to the friends of a League in that he had failed to rally to the support of the Covenant an overwhelming popular sentiment in its favor which the opposition in the Senate could not resist. The natural reaction was that the peoples of Europe and their statesmen lost a measure of their enthusiasm and faith in the project. Except in the case of a few idealists, there was a growing disposition to view it from the purely practical point of view and to speculate on its efficacy as an instrument to interpret and carry out the international will. Among the leaders of political thought in the principal Allied countries, the reports of the President's reception in the United States were sufficiently conflicting to arouse doubt as to whether the American people were actually behind him in his plan for a League, and this doubt was not diminished by his proposed changes in the Covenant, which indicated that he was not in full control of the situation at home.

The President's visit to the United States was disappointing for those who supported a League because he didn't manage to generate strong public support for the Covenant that the Senate opposition couldn't ignore. The natural result was that the people of Europe and their leaders became less enthusiastic and confident about the project. Aside from a few idealists, there was an increasing tendency to look at it from a practical standpoint and to question its effectiveness as a way to express and implement international agreement. Among the leading political thinkers in the major Allied countries, the varying reports of the President's reception in the U.S. raised doubts about whether the American public really supported his plan for a League, and this uncertainty was increased by his suggested changes to the Covenant, which suggested he wasn't fully in control of the situation at home.

Two weeks after the President had resumed his duties as a negotiator and had begun the work of revising the Covenant, I made a memorandum of my views as to the situation that then existed. The memorandum is as follows:

Two weeks after the President had returned to his role as a negotiator and started revising the Covenant, I wrote down my thoughts on the current situation. The memorandum is as follows:

"March 25, 1919

March 25, 1919

"With the increasing military preparations and operations throughout Eastern Europe and the evident purpose of all these quarreling nations to ignore any idea of disarmament and to rely upon force to obtain and retain territory and rights, the League of Nations is being discussed with something like contempt by the cynical, hard-headed statesmen of those countries which are being put on a war-footing. They are cautious and courteous out of regard for the President. I doubt if the truth reaches him, but it comes to me from various sources.

"With the growing military buildup and operations across Eastern Europe, and the clear intention of these conflicting nations to dismiss any notion of disarmament while depending on force to acquire and keep territory and rights, the League of Nations is being talked about with a sort of disdain by the cynical, pragmatic leaders of the countries gearing up for war. They are careful and polite out of respect for the President. I doubt if he hears the full truth, but it has reached me from various sources."

"These men say that in theory the idea is all right and is an ideal to work toward, but that under present conditions it is not practical in preventing war. They ask, what nation is going to rely on the guaranty in the Covenant if a jealous or hostile neighbor maintains a large army. They want to know whether it would be wise or not to disarm under such conditions. Of course the answers are obvious. But, if the guaranty is not sufficient, or accepted as sufficient, protection, what becomes of the central purpose of the League and the chief reason for creating it?

"These guys say that in theory the idea seems good and is a goal to strive for, but that given the current situation, it's not practical for preventing war. They ask, which country is going to trust the guarantee in the Covenant if a jealous or hostile neighbor has a large army? They want to know if it would be wise to disarm under those circumstances. Obviously, the answers are clear. But if the guarantee isn't enough or isn't seen as sufficient protection, what happens to the main purpose of the League and the primary reason for its creation?"

"I believe that the President and Colonel House see this, though they do not admit it, and that to save the League from being cast into the discard they will attempt to make of it a sort of international agency to do certain things which would normally be done by independent international commissions. Such a course would save the League from being still-born and would so interweave it with the terms of peace that to eliminate it would be to open up some difficult questions.

"I think the President and Colonel House recognize this, even if they don’t say so, and in order to prevent the League from being dismissed, they will try to turn it into an international agency to handle certain tasks that would typically be managed by independent international commissions. This approach would ensure the League doesn’t fail right from the start and would integrate it with the peace terms in such a way that removing it would raise some tricky issues."

"Of course the League of Nations as originally planned had one supreme object and that was to prevent future wars. That was substantially all that it purposed to do. Since then new functions have been gradually added until the chief argument for the League's existence has been almost lost to sight. The League has been made a convenient 'catch-all' for all sorts of international actions. At first this was undoubtedly done to give the League something to do, and now it is being done to save it from extinction or from being ignored.

"Of course, the League of Nations was originally designed with one main goal: to prevent future wars. That was pretty much its entire purpose. Since then, new roles have slowly been added, and the original reason for the League's existence has nearly been overlooked. The League has become a handy 'catch-all' for various international actions. Initially, this was definitely done to give the League something to do, and now it’s being done to keep it from disappearing or being ignored."

"I am not denying that a common international agent may be a good thing. In fact the plan has decided merit. But the organization of the League does not seem to me suitable to perform efficiently and properly these new functions.

"I’m not saying that having a common international agent might not be beneficial. In fact, the idea has real merit. However, the way the League is organized doesn’t seem to me to be suited to carry out these new functions effectively and appropriately."

"However, giving this character to the League may save it from being merely an agreeable dream. As the repository of international controversies requiring long and careful consideration it may live and be useful.

"However, giving this character to the League may save it from being just a pleasant fantasy. As the place where international disputes that need extensive and thoughtful consideration are addressed, it can survive and be beneficial."

"My impression is that the principal sponsors for the League are searching through the numerous disputes which are clogging the wheels of the Conference, seizing upon every one which can possibly be referred, and heaping them on the League of Nations to give it standing as a useful and necessary adjunct to the Treaty.

"My impression is that the main sponsors for the League are digging through the many disputes that are slowing down the Conference, picking out every single one that could possibly be referred, and piling them onto the League of Nations to make it seem like a useful and essential part of the Treaty."

"At least that is an interesting view of what is taking place and opens a wide field for speculation as to the future of the League and the verdict which history will render as to its origin, its nature, and its real value."

"At least that's an interesting perspective on what's happening and opens up a lot of possibilities for speculation about the future of the League and the judgment history will make regarding its origins, its nature, and its actual value."

I quote this memorandum because it gives my thoughts at the time concerning the process of weaving the League into the terms of peace as the President had threatened to do. I thought then that it had a double purpose, to give a practical reason for the existence of the League and to make certain the ratification of the Covenant by the Senate. No fact has since developed which has induced me to change my opinion.

I’m quoting this memo because it reflects my thoughts at the time about integrating the League into the peace terms, as the President had threatened. I believed it served two main purposes: to provide a practical justification for the League's existence and to ensure the Senate ratified the Covenant. Nothing has occurred since then that has caused me to change my mind.

In consequence of the functions which were added to the League, the character of the League itself underwent a change. Instead of an agency created solely for the prevention of international wars, it was converted into an agency to carry out the terms of peace. Its idealistic conception was subordinated to the materialistic purpose of confirming to the victorious nations the rewards of victory. It is true that during the long struggle between the President and the Senate on the question of ratification there was in the debates a general return to the original purpose of the League by both the proponents and opponents of the Covenant, but that fact in no way affects the truth of the assertion that, in order to save the League of Nations, its character was changed by extending its powers and duties as a common agent of the nations which had triumphed over the Central Alliance.

As a result of the new functions added to the League, its overall nature changed. Instead of being an organization created solely to prevent international wars, it transformed into one that aimed to implement the terms of peace. Its idealistic vision was overshadowed by the practical aim of rewarding the victorious nations. It's true that during the lengthy struggle between the President and the Senate over ratification, there was a general return to the League's original purpose in the debates among both supporters and opponents of the Covenant. However, this fact doesn’t change the truth that, to save the League of Nations, its character was altered by expanding its powers and responsibilities as a common agent for the nations that had triumphed over the Central Alliance.

The day before the Treaty of Peace was delivered to the German plenipotentiaries (May 6) its terms induced me to write a note entitled "The Greatest Loss Caused by the War," referring to the loss of idealism to the world. In that note I wrote of the League of Nations as follows:

The day before the Treaty of Peace was given to the German representatives (May 6), its terms prompted me to write a note titled "The Greatest Loss Caused by the War," which discussed the loss of idealism in the world. In that note, I expressed my thoughts on the League of Nations as follows:

"Even the measure of idealism, with which the League of Nations was at the first impregnated, has, under the influence and intrigue of ambitious statesmen of the Old World, been supplanted by an open recognition that force and selfishness are primary elements in international co-operation. The League has succumbed to this reversion to a cynical materialism. It is no longer a creature of idealism. Its very source and reason have been dried up and have almost disappeared. The danger is that it will become a bulwark of the old order, a check upon all efforts to bring man again under the influence which he has lost."

"Even the idealism that the League of Nations was initially filled with has, due to the influence and schemes of ambitious politicians from the Old World, been replaced by a clear acknowledgment that force and self-interest are fundamental aspects of international cooperation. The League has fallen victim to this shift towards a cynical materialism. It’s no longer driven by idealism. Its very foundation and purpose have withered away and nearly vanished. The risk is that it will turn into a stronghold for the old order, hindering all attempts to reintroduce the influence that humanity has lost."

The President, in the addresses which he afterward made in advocacy of the Covenant and of ratification of the Treaty, indicated clearly the wide divergence of opinion between us as to the character of the League provided for in the Treaty. I do not remember that the subject was directly discussed by us, but I certainly took no pains to hide my misgivings as to the place it would have in the international relations of the future. However, as Mr. Wilson knew that I disapproved of the theory and basic principles of the organization, especially the recognition of the oligarchy of the Five Powers, he could not but realize that I considered that idealism had given place to political expediency in order to secure for the Covenant the support of the powerful nations represented at the Conference. This was my belief as to our relations when the Treaty of Peace containing the Covenant was laid before the Germans at the Hôtel des Reservoirs in Versailles.

The President, in the speeches he later gave supporting the Covenant and the ratification of the Treaty, clearly showed the significant differences in opinion between us regarding the nature of the League outlined in the Treaty. I don’t recall us discussing the topic directly, but I certainly didn’t try to hide my concerns about its role in future international relations. However, since Mr. Wilson knew I disagreed with the theory and fundamental principles of the organization, especially the acknowledgment of the oligarchy of the Five Powers, he must have realized that I believed idealism had been replaced by political practicality to gain the support of the powerful nations at the Conference for the Covenant. This was my view when the Treaty of Peace containing the Covenant was presented to the Germans at the Hôtel des Reservoirs in Versailles.

CHAPTER XIII

THE SYSTEM OF MANDATES

In the foregoing review of the opposite views held by the President and by me in regard to the plan for a League of Nations and specifically in regard to the Covenant as originally drawn and as revised, mention was made of the proposed mandatory system as one of the subjects concerning which we were not in agreement. My objections to the system were advanced chiefly on the ground of the legal difficulties which it presented because it seemed probable that the President would give more weight to my opinion on that ground than on one which concerned the policy of adopting the system. Viewed from the latter standpoint it appeared to me most unwise for the President to propose a plan, in which the United States would be expected to participate and which, if it did participate, would involve it in the political quarrels of the Old World. To do so would manifestly require a departure from the traditional American policy of keeping aloof from the political jealousies and broils of Europe. Without denying that present conditions have, of necessity, modified the old policy of isolation and without minimizing the influence of that fact on the conduct of American foreign affairs, it did not seem essential for the United States to become the guardian of any of the peoples of the Near East, who were aspiring to become independent nationalities, a guardianship which the President held to be a duty that the United States was bound to perform as its share of the burden imposed by the international coöperation which he considered vital to the new world order.

In the earlier discussion of the differing opinions between the President and me regarding the plan for a League of Nations, particularly about the original and revised Covenant, we talked about the proposed mandatory system as one area where we disagreed. My objections to the system were mainly based on the legal challenges it presented because it seemed likely that the President would value my viewpoint on this issue more than on the policy of adopting the system itself. From the latter perspective, I thought it was unwise for the President to suggest a plan in which the United States would have to participate, as this would draw us into the political disputes of the Old World. This would clearly require a shift from the traditional American stance of staying out of European political conflicts. While I acknowledge that current circumstances have inevitably changed the old policy of isolation and recognize its impact on American foreign relations, it didn't seem necessary for the United States to act as the guardian for any Near Eastern peoples aspiring for independence, a responsibility the President believed was a duty the U.S. should undertake as part of the international cooperation he deemed essential for a new world order.

The question of mandates issuing from the League of Nations was discussed at length by the Council of Ten in connection with the disposition and future control of the German colonies and incidentally as to the dismemberment of the Ottoman Empire. The discussions were chiefly along the lines of practicability, of policy, and of moral obligation. The President's strong support of the mandatory system and his equally strong objection to the idea of condominium showed that his mind was made up in favor of the issuance of mandates by the League. Since it would have been highly improper for me to oppose openly a policy which the President had declared under his constitutional authority, there was no proper opportunity to present the legal difficulties of the system to the Council.

The question of mandates from the League of Nations was discussed extensively by the Council of Ten regarding the handling and future oversight of the German colonies, as well as the breakup of the Ottoman Empire. The conversations primarily focused on practicality, policy, and moral obligation. The President's strong support for the mandatory system and his equally strong opposition to the idea of condominium made it clear that he was in favor of the League issuing mandates. Since it would have been very inappropriate for me to openly oppose a policy that the President had declared under his constitutional authority, there was no appropriate chance to raise the legal challenges of the system to the Council.

However, the seriousness of these difficulties and the possible troubles and controversies which might be anticipated from attempting to put the system into operation induced me, after one of the sessions of the Council of Ten, to state briefly to the President some of the serious objections to League mandates from the standpoint of international law and the philosophy of government. President Wilson listened with his usual attentiveness to what I had to say, though the objections evidently did not appeal to him, as he characterized them as "mere technicalities" which could be cured or disregarded. Impressed myself with the importance of these "technicalities" and their direct bearing on the policy of adopting the mandatory system, I later, on February 2, 1919, embodied them in a memorandum. At the time I hoped and believed that the negotiation of the completed Covenant might be postponed and that there would be another opportunity to raise the question. The memorandum, prepared with this end in view, is as follows:

However, the seriousness of these difficulties and the potential issues and controversies that could arise from trying to implement the system led me, after one of the sessions of the Council of Ten, to briefly express to the President some of the major objections to League mandates from the perspective of international law and government philosophy. President Wilson listened attentively, as he usually did, to my concerns, but it was clear that he didn’t find them compelling, as he dismissed them as "mere technicalities" that could be fixed or ignored. I was struck by the importance of these "technicalities" and their direct impact on the decision to adopt the mandatory system, so I later summarized them in a memorandum on February 2, 1919. At that time, I hoped and believed that the negotiation of the finalized Covenant could be delayed, giving us another chance to address the issue. The memorandum, prepared with this goal in mind, is as follows:

"The system of 'mandatories under the League of Nations,' when applied to territories which were formerly colonies of Germany, the system which has been practically adopted and will be written into the plan for the League, raises some interesting and difficult questions:

"The system of 'mandatories under the League of Nations,' when applied to territories that used to be German colonies, the system that has been mostly accepted and will be included in the plan for the League, brings up some intriguing and challenging questions:

"The one, which is the most prominent since it enters into nearly all of the international problems presented, is—Where does the sovereignty over these territories reside?

"The one that stands out the most, as it relates to nearly all international issues at hand, is—Where does the sovereignty over these territories lie?"

"Sovereignty is inherent in the very conception of government. It cannot be destroyed, though it may be absorbed by another sovereignty either by compulsion or cession. When the Germans were ousted from their colonies, the sovereignty passed to the power or powers which took possession. The location of the sovereignty up to the present is clear, but with the introduction of the League of Nations as an international primate superior to the conquerors some rather perplexing questions will have to be answered.

"Sovereignty is built into the very idea of government. It can’t be destroyed, though it can be taken over by another sovereignty, either through force or agreement. When the Germans were removed from their colonies, sovereignty transferred to the power or powers that assumed control. The current status of sovereignty is clear, but with the establishment of the League of Nations as an international authority above the conquerors, some confusing questions will need to be addressed."

   "Do those who have seized the sovereignty transfer it or does Germany
   transfer it to the League of Nations? If so, how?

"Do those who have taken the sovereignty transfer it, or does Germany
transfer it to the League of Nations? If so, how?

   "Does the League assume possession of the sovereignty on its
   renunciation by Germany? If so, how?

"Does the League take ownership of the sovereignty upon Germany's
   renunciation? If so, how?

   "Does the League merely direct the disposition of the sovereignty
   without taking possession of it?

"Does the League just manage the use of sovereignty
without actually possessing it?

"Assuming that the latter question is answered in the affirmative, then after such disposition of the right to exercise sovereignty, which will presumably be a limited right, where does the actual sovereignty reside?

"Assuming that the latter question is answered positively, then after the decision regarding the right to exercise sovereignty, which will likely be a limited right, where does the actual sovereignty lie?"

"The appointment of a mandatory to exercise sovereign rights over territory is to create an agent for the real sovereign. But who is the real sovereign?

"The appointment of a representative to exercise sovereign rights over a territory creates an agent for the actual sovereign. But who is the actual sovereign?"

"Is the League of Nations the sovereign, or is it a common agent of the nations composing the League, to whom is confided solely the duty of naming the mandatory and issuing the mandate?

"Is the League of Nations sovereign, or is it just a common agent of the nations that make up the League, which is solely responsible for appointing the mandatory and issuing the mandate?"

   "If the League is the sovereign, can it avoid responsibility for the
   misconduct of the mandatory, its agent?

"If the League is in charge, can it escape responsibility for the
misconduct of the mandatory, its representative?

   "If it is not the League, who is responsible for the mandatory's
   conduct?

"If it's not the League, who is responsible for the mandatory's
   conduct?

"Assuming that the mandatory in faithfully performing the provisions of the mandate unavoidably works an injustice upon another party, can or ought the mandatory to be held responsible? If not, how can the injured party obtain redress? Manifestly the answer is, 'From the sovereign,' but who is the sovereign?

"Assuming that the required actions in faithfully carrying out the terms of the mandate inevitably cause unfairness to another party, can or should the one who is mandated be held accountable? If not, how can the harmed party seek compensation? Clearly, the answer is, 'From the authority,' but who is considered the authority?"

"In the Treaty of Peace Germany will be called upon to renounce sovereignty over her colonial possessions. To whom will the sovereignty pass?

"In the Treaty of Peace, Germany will be required to give up sovereignty over its colonial possessions. To whom will the sovereignty go?"

   "If the reply is, 'The League of Nations,' the question is: Does the
   League possess the attributes of an independent state so that it can
   function as an owner of territory? If so, what is it? A world state?

"If the answer is, 'The League of Nations,' then the question is: Does the
   League have the qualities of an independent state, allowing it to
   operate as a territory owner? If it does, what is it? A global state?

"If the League does not constitute a world state, then the sovereignty would have to pass to some national state. What national state? What would be the relation of the national state to the League?

"If the League isn't a world government, then sovereignty would need to shift to some national government. Which national government? How would that national government relate to the League?"

"If the League is to receive title to the sovereignty, what officers of the League are empowered to receive it and to transfer its exercise to a mandatory?

"If the League is going to receive the title to sovereignty, which officers of the League are authorized to accept it and transfer its exercise to a mandatory?"

"What form of acceptance should be adopted?

"What kind of acceptance should we embrace?"

"Would every nation which is a member of the League have to give its representatives full powers to accept the title?

"Would every nation that is a member of the League have to give its representatives full authority to accept the title?"

"Assuming that certain members decline to issue such powers or to accept title as to one or more of the territories, what relation would those members have to the mandatory named?"

"Assuming that some members choose not to grant such powers or accept title to one or more of the territories, what relationship would those members have with the named mandatory?"

There is no attempt in the memorandum to analyze or classify the queries raised, and, as I review them in the light of the terms of the Treaty of Versailles, I do not think that some of them can be asked with any helpful purpose. On the other hand, many of the questions, I believe the large majority, were as pertinent after the Treaty was completed as they were when the memorandum was made.

There is no effort in the memorandum to break down or categorize the questions raised, and as I look at them through the lens of the Treaty of Versailles, I believe that some of them cannot be asked with any constructive intent. On the flip side, many of the questions, I think the vast majority, were just as relevant after the Treaty was finalized as they were when the memorandum was created.

As Colonel House was the other member of the Commission on the League of Nations and would have to consider the practicability and expediency of including the mandatory system in the Covenant, I read the memorandum to him stating that I had orally presented most of the questions to the President who characterized them as "legal technicalities" and for that reason unimportant. I said to the Colonel that I differed with the President, as I hoped he did, not only as to the importance of considering the difficulties raised by the questions before the system of mandates was adopted, but also as to the importance of viewing from every standpoint the wisdom of the system and the difficulties that might arise in its practical operation. I stated that, in my opinion, a simpler and better plan was to transfer the sovereignty over territory to a particular nation by a treaty of cession under such terms as seemed wise and, in the case of some of the newly erected states, to have them execute treaties accepting protectorates by Powers mutually acceptable to those states and to the League of Nations.

As Colonel House was another member of the Commission on the League of Nations and needed to think about the practicality and appropriateness of adding the mandatory system to the Covenant, I read the memorandum to him, explaining that I had previously discussed most of the issues with the President, who dismissed them as "legal technicalities" and therefore not important. I told the Colonel that I disagreed with the President, as I hoped he did too, not just about the importance of addressing the challenges presented by these questions before adopting the mandate system, but also about the necessity of examining the wisdom of the system from all perspectives and the potential issues that could arise during its implementation. I mentioned that, in my view, a simpler and better solution was to transfer sovereignty over territory to a specific nation through a treaty of cession under terms that seemed prudent, and, in the case of some newly formed states, to have them sign treaties to accept protectorates from Powers that were mutually acceptable to those states and the League of Nations.

Colonel House, though he listened attentively to the memorandum and to my suggestions, did not seem convinced of the importance of the questions or of the advantages of adopting any other plan than that of the proposed mandatory system. To abandon the system meant to abandon one of the ideas of international supervision, which the President especially cherished and strongly advocated. It meant also to surrender one of the proposed functions of the League as an agent in carrying out the peace settlements under the Treaty, functions which would form the basis of an argument in favor of the organization of the League and furnish a practical reason for its existence. Of course the presumed arguments against the abandonment of mandates may not have been considered, but at the time I believed that they were potent with Colonel House and with the President. The subsequent advocacy of the system by these two influential members of the Commission on the League of Nations, which resulted in its adoption, in no way lessened my belief as to the reasons for their support.

Colonel House, while he listened carefully to the memorandum and my suggestions, didn’t seem convinced about the significance of the issues or the benefits of choosing any plan other than the proposed mandatory system. Abandoning the system would mean giving up one of the ideas of international oversight that the President especially valued and strongly supported. It would also entail losing one of the proposed roles of the League as a facilitator in implementing the peace agreements under the Treaty, roles that would provide a strong argument in favor of the League's organization and offer a practical reason for its existence. Of course, the potential arguments against abandoning mandates might not have been fully considered, but at the time, I believed they carried weight with Colonel House and the President. The later support of this system by these two influential members of the Commission on the League of Nations, which led to its adoption, did not diminish my belief in the reasons for their backing.

The mandatory system, a product of the creative mind of General Smuts, was a novelty in international relations which appealed strongly to those who preferred to adopt unusual and untried methods rather than to accept those which had been tested by experience and found practical of operation. The self-satisfaction of inventing something new or of evolving a new theory is inherent with not a few men. They are determined to try out their ideas and are impatient of opposition which seeks to prevent the experiment. In fact opposition seems sometimes to enhance the virtue of a novelty in the minds of those who propose or advocate its adoption. Many reformers suffer from this form of vanity.

The mandatory system, created by General Smuts, was a new concept in international relations that strongly appealed to those who preferred to try unconventional and untested methods instead of relying on approaches that had been proven effective through experience. Many individuals take pride in inventing something new or developing a new theory. They are eager to test their ideas and often impatient with any opposition that tries to stop the experiment. In fact, sometimes opposition seems to make a new idea even more appealing to those who propose or support its implementation. Many reformers deal with this kind of vanity.

In the case of the system of mandates its adoption by the Conference and the conferring on the League of Nations the power to issue mandates seemed at least to the more conservative thinkers at Paris a very doubtful venture. It appeared to possess no peculiar advantages over the old method of transferring and exercising sovereign control either in providing added protection to the inhabitants of territory subject to a mandate or greater certainty of international equality in the matter of commerce and trade, the two principal arguments urged in favor of the proposed system.

In the case of the mandate system, its adoption by the Conference and the League of Nations being given the authority to issue mandates seemed, at least to the more conservative thinkers in Paris, a very questionable move. It didn't seem to have any specific benefits over the previous method of transferring and exercising sovereign control, either in providing more protection to the residents of areas under a mandate or in ensuring greater international equality in trade and commerce, the two main arguments put forward in support of the proposed system.

If the advocates of the system intended to avoid through its operation the appearance of taking enemy territory as the spoils of war, it was a subterfuge which deceived no one. It seemed obvious from the very first that the Powers, which under the old practice would have obtained sovereignty over certain conquered territories, would not be denied mandates over those territories. The League of Nations might reserve in the mandate a right of supervision of administration and even of revocation of authority, but that right would be nominal and of little, if any, real value provided the mandatory was one of the Great Powers as it undoubtedly would be. The almost irresistible conclusion is that the protagonists of the theory saw in it a means of clothing the League of Nations with an apparent usefulness which justified the League by making it the guardian of uncivilized and semi-civilized peoples and the international agent to watch over and prevent any deviation from the principle of equality in the commercial and industrial development of the mandated territories.

If the supporters of the system aimed to avoid the impression of seizing enemy territory as war loot, it was a trick that fooled no one. It was clear from the beginning that the Powers, which would have gained control over certain conquered territories in the old system, would not be denied mandates over those areas. The League of Nations might claim a right to supervise the administration and even revoke authority in the mandate, but that right would be nominal and of little, if any, real significance as long as the mandatory was one of the Great Powers, which it inevitably would be. The almost undeniable conclusion is that the advocates of this theory saw it as a way to give the League of Nations an appearance of usefulness, justifying the League by positioning it as the guardian of uncivilized and semi-civilized peoples and as the international body responsible for ensuring that there were no deviations from the principle of equality in the commercial and industrial development of the mandated territories.

It may appear surprising that the Great Powers so readily gave their support to the new method of obtaining an apparently limited control over the conquered territories, and did not seek to obtain complete sovereignty over them. It is not necessary to look far for a sufficient and very practical reason. If the colonial possessions of Germany had, under the old practice, been divided among the victorious Powers and been ceded to them directly in full sovereignty, Germany might justly have asked that the value of such territorial cessions be applied on any war indemnities to which the Powers were entitled. On the other hand, the League of Nations in the distribution of mandates would presumably do so in the interests of the inhabitants of the colonies and the mandates would be accepted by the Powers as a duty and not to obtain new possessions. Thus under the mandatory system Germany lost her territorial assets, which might have greatly reduced her financial debt to the Allies, while the latter obtained the German colonial possessions without the loss of any of their claims for indemnity. In actual operation the apparent altruism of the mandatory system worked in favor of the selfish and material interests of the Powers which accepted the mandates. And the same may be said of the dismemberment of Turkey. It should not be a matter of surprise, therefore, that the President found little opposition to the adoption of his theory, or, to be more accurate, of the Smuts theory, on the part of the European statesmen.

It might seem surprising that the Great Powers quickly supported the new method of gaining what seemed like limited control over the conquered territories without seeking full sovereignty over them. A straightforward and practical reason explains this. If Germany's colonial possessions had, under the old practice, been divided among the victorious Powers and handed over directly with full sovereignty, Germany could rightfully have demanded that the value of those territorial transfers be counted towards any war reparations owed to the Powers. On the flip side, the League of Nations, when distributing mandates, was likely to do so for the benefit of the colonies' inhabitants, and the Powers would accept the mandates as a responsibility rather than as a means to gain new territories. As a result, under the mandatory system, Germany lost her territorial assets that could have significantly lessened her financial burden to the Allies, while the Allies obtained German colonial possessions without forfeiting any of their claims for reparations. In practice, the supposed altruism of the mandatory system ended up serving the selfish and material interests of the Powers that accepted the mandates. The same applies to the division of Turkey. Therefore, it’s not surprising that the President encountered little resistance to the adoption of his theory, or, to be more precise, the Smuts theory, from European leaders.

There was one case, however, in which the issuance of a mandate appeared to have a definite and practical value and to be superior to a direct transfer of complete sovereignty or of the conditional sovereignty resulting from the establishment of a protectorate. The case was that of a territory with or without a national government, which, not being self-supporting and not sufficiently strong to protect its borders from aggressive neighbors, or its people sufficiently enlightened to govern themselves properly, would be a constant source of expense instead of profit to the Power, which as its protector and tutor became its overlord. Under such conditions there was more probability of persuading a nation inspired by humanitarian and altruistic motives to assume the burden for the common good under the mandatory system than under the old method of cession or of protectorate. As to nations, however, which placed national interests first and made selfishness the standard of international policy it was to be assumed that an appeal under either system would be ineffective.

There was one situation, however, where issuing a mandate seemed to have clear practical value and was better than directly transferring full sovereignty or the conditional sovereignty that comes with a protectorate. This situation involved a territory, whether it had a national government or not, that was not self-sufficient and not strong enough to protect its borders from aggressive neighbors, or whose people were not educated enough to govern themselves properly. Such a territory would likely be a constant expense rather than a profit for the Power, which, as its protector and guardian, would become its overlord. In these conditions, it was more likely to convince a nation motivated by humanitarian and altruistic reasons to take on the responsibility for the common good under the mandatory system than under the old methods of cession or protectorate. However, for nations that prioritized their own interests and based their international policies on selfishness, it was assumed that an appeal under either system would be ineffective.

The truth of this was very apparent at Paris. In the tentative distribution of mandates among the Powers, which took place on the strong presumption that the mandatory system would be adopted, the principal European Powers appeared to be willing and even eager to become mandatories over territories possessing natural resources which could be profitably developed and showed an unwillingness to accept mandates for territories which, barren of mineral or agricultural wealth, would be continuing liabilities rather than assets. This is not stated by way of criticism, but only in explanation of what took place.

The truth of this was very clear in Paris. During the tentative distribution of mandates among the Powers, which was based on the strong assumption that the mandatory system would be accepted, the major European Powers seemed eager to take on mandates for territories with natural resources that could be profitably developed. They showed a reluctance to accept mandates for areas that lacked mineral or agricultural wealth, which would be financial burdens rather than beneficial assets. This is mentioned not as a criticism, but simply to explain what happened.

From the beginning to the end of the discussions on mandates and their distribution among the Powers it was repeatedly declared that the United States ought to participate in the general plan for the upbuilding of the new states which under mandatories would finally become independent nationalities, but it was never, to my knowledge, proposed, except by the inhabitants of the region in question, that the United States should accept a mandate for Syria or the Asiatic coast of the Aegean Sea. Those regions were rich in natural resources and their economic future under a stable government was bright. Expenditures in their behalf and the direction of their public affairs would bring ample returns to the mandatory nations. On the other hand, there was a sustained propaganda—for it amounted to that—in favor of the United States assuming mandates over Armenia and the municipal district of Constantinople, both of which, if limited by the boundaries which it was then purposed to draw, would be a constant financial burden to the Power accepting the mandate, and, in the case of Armenia, would require that Power to furnish a military force estimated at not less than 50,000 men to prevent the aggression of warlike neighbors and to preserve domestic order and peace.

From the start to the finish of the discussions about mandates and how they would be distributed among the Powers, it was repeatedly stated that the United States should be involved in the overall plan to develop the new states that, under mandatory control, would eventually become independent nations. However, to my knowledge, it was never proposed, except by the people of the regions in question, that the United States should take on a mandate for Syria or the Asian coast of the Aegean Sea. Those areas were rich in natural resources, and their economic future under stable governance looked promising. Investing in them and managing their public affairs would yield significant returns for the nations taking on the mandates. On the other hand, there was ongoing propaganda—because that’s what it was—for the United States to take on mandates for Armenia and the municipality of Constantinople, both of which, if constrained by the borders that were being considered, would be a constant financial burden for the nation accepting the mandate. In the case of Armenia, it would also require that nation to provide a military force of at least 50,000 troops to prevent aggression from hostile neighbors and to maintain order and peace domestically.

It is not too severe to say of those who engaged in this propaganda that the purpose was to take advantage of the unselfishness of the American people and of the altruism and idealism of President Wilson in order to impose on the United States the burdensome mandates and to divide those which covered desirable territories among the European Powers. I do not think that the President realized at the time that an actual propaganda was going on, and I doubt very much whether he would have believed it if he had been told. Deeply impressed with the idea that it was the moral duty of the great and enlightened nations to aid the less fortunate and especially to guard the nationalities freed from autocratic rule until they were capable of self-government and self-protection, the President apparently looked upon the appeals made to him as genuine expressions of humanitarianism and as manifestations of the opinion of mankind concerning the part that the United States ought to take in the reconstruction of the world. His high-mindedness and loftiness of thought blinded him to the sordidness of purpose which appears to have induced the general acquiescence in his desired system of mandates, and the same qualities of mind caused him to listen sympathetically to proposals, the acceptance of which would give actual proof of the unselfishness of the United States.

It's not too harsh to say that those who took part in this propaganda aimed to exploit the selflessness of the American people and the altruism and idealism of President Wilson to impose heavy mandates on the United States and to divide the desirable territories among European powers. I don't think the President realized at the time that an actual campaign was underway, and I seriously doubt he would have believed it if someone had told him. Deeply convinced that it was the moral obligation of great, enlightened nations to help the less fortunate, especially to protect the nationalities freed from authoritarian control until they could govern and defend themselves, the President seemed to view the appeals made to him as sincere expressions of humanitarianism and as reflections of what people believed the United States should do in rebuilding the world. His high ideals and noble thoughts blinded him to the self-serving motives that seemed to inspire the general acceptance of his proposed system of mandates, and those same qualities led him to listen sympathetically to suggestions, the acceptance of which would provide tangible proof of the United States' selflessness.

Reading the situation thus and convinced of the objections against the mandatory system from the point of view of international law, of policy and of American interests, I opposed the inclusion of the system in the plan for a League of Nations. In view of the attitude which Mr. Wilson had taken toward my advice regarding policies I confined the objections which I presented to him, as I have stated, to those based on legal difficulties. The objections on the ground of policy were made to Colonel House in the hope that through him they might reach the President and open his eyes to the true state of affairs. Whether they ever did reach him I do not know. Nothing in his subsequent course of action indicated that they did.

Reading the situation this way and convinced of the objections to the mandatory system from the perspectives of international law, policy, and American interests, I opposed including the system in the plan for a League of Nations. Given Mr. Wilson's stance on my policy advice, I limited the objections I presented to him, as I mentioned, to those based on legal issues. The objections regarding policy were directed to Colonel House in hopes that they might reach the President and make him aware of the real situation. Whether they ever reached him, I don't know. Nothing in his later actions suggested that they did.

But, if they did, he evidently considered them as invalid as he did the objections arising from legal difficulties. The system of mandates was written into the Treaty and a year after the Treaty was signed President Wilson asked the Congress for authority to accept for the United States a mandate over Armenia. This the Congress refused. It is needless to make further comment.

But if they did, he clearly viewed them as just as invalid as the objections stemming from legal issues. The system of mandates was included in the Treaty, and a year after the Treaty was signed, President Wilson asked Congress for permission to accept a mandate over Armenia for the United States. Congress refused this request. There's no need for further comment.

CHAPTER XIV

DIFFERENCES AS TO THE LEAGUE RECAPITULATED

The differences between the President's views and mine in regard to the character of the League of Nations and to the provisions of the Covenant relating to the organization and functions of the League were irreconcilable, and we were equally in disagreement as to the duties of the League in carrying out certain provisions of the Treaty of Peace as the common agent of the signatory Powers. As a commissioned representative of the President of the United States acting under his instructions I had no alternative but to accept his decisions and to follow his directions, since surrender of my commission as Peace Commissioner seemed to me at the time to be practically out of the question. I followed his directions, however, with extreme reluctance because I felt that Mr. Wilson's policies were fundamentally wrong and would unavoidably result in loss of prestige to the United States and to him as its Chief Magistrate. It seemed to me that he had endangered, if he had not destroyed, his preeminent position in world affairs in order to obtain the acceptance of his plan for a League of Nations, a plan which in theory and in detail was so defective that it would be difficult to defend it successfully from critical attack.

The differences between the President's views and mine regarding the nature of the League of Nations and the provisions of the Covenant related to the organization and functions of the League were unresolvable, and we also disagreed on the League's responsibilities in implementing certain aspects of the Treaty of Peace as the shared representative of the signatory Powers. As a commissioned representative of the President of the United States acting under his instructions, I had no choice but to accept his decisions and follow his directions, since resigning from my role as Peace Commissioner seemed completely out of the question at that time. However, I followed his directions very reluctantly because I believed that Mr. Wilson's policies were fundamentally flawed and would inevitably lead to a loss of prestige for both the United States and him as its leader. It appeared to me that he had jeopardized, if not completely ruined, his leading position in global affairs to get acceptance of his plan for a League of Nations, a plan that was so fundamentally and specifically defective that defending it against criticism would be quite challenging.

The objections to the terms of the Covenant, which I had raised at the outset, were based on principle and also on policy, as has been shown in the preceding pages; and on the same grounds I had opposed their hasty adoption and their inclusion in the Peace Treaty to be negotiated at Paris by the Conference. These objections and the arguments advanced in their support did not apparently have any effect on President Wilson, for they failed to change his views or to modify the plan which he, with General Smuts and Lord Robert Cecil, had worked out for an international organization. They did not swerve him one jot from his avowed purpose to make the creation of the League of Nations the principal feature of the negotiations and the provisions of the Covenant the most prominent articles in the Treaties of Peace with the Central Powers.

The objections to the terms of the Covenant that I raised at the beginning were based on principles and policy, as explained in the previous pages. For the same reasons, I opposed their rushed adoption and inclusion in the Peace Treaty to be negotiated in Paris by the Conference. These objections and the arguments made in their support didn't seem to influence President Wilson, as they failed to change his views or alter the plan he, along with General Smuts and Lord Robert Cecil, had developed for an international organization. They did not deter him at all from his stated goal of making the creation of the League of Nations the main focus of the negotiations, with the provisions of the Covenant being the most important points in the Treaties of Peace with the Central Powers.

Instead of accomplishing their designed purpose, my efforts to induce the President to change his policy resulted only in my losing his confidence in my judgment and in arousing in his mind, if I do not misinterpret his conduct, doubts of my loyalty to him personally. It was characteristic of Mr. Wilson that his firm conviction as to the soundness of his conclusions regarding the character of the League of Nations and his fixity of purpose in seeking to compel its adoption by the Peace Conference were so intense as to brook no opposition, especially from one whom he expected to accept his judgment without question and to give support in thought and word to any plan or policy which he advocated. In view of this mental attitude of the President it is not difficult to understand his opinion of my course of action at Paris. The breach in our confidential relations was unavoidable in view of my conviction of the duty of an official adviser and his belief that objections ought not to be urged as to a matter concerning which he had expressed his opinion. To give implied assent to policies and intentions which seemed to me wrong or unwise would have been violative of a public trust, though doubtless by remaining silent I might have won favor and approval from the President and retained his confidence.

Instead of achieving the intended goal, my attempts to persuade the President to alter his policy only led to him losing trust in my judgment and, if I’m not misreading his actions, raised doubts in his mind about my loyalty to him personally. It was typical of Mr. Wilson that his strong belief in the validity of his conclusions regarding the League of Nations and his determination to push for its acceptance by the Peace Conference were so intense that they allowed for no opposition, especially from someone he expected to accept his decisions without question and support any plan or policy he advocated. Given the President's mindset, it's easy to see why he viewed my actions in Paris as he did. The breakdown in our private relationship was unavoidable, given my belief in the responsibilities of an official adviser and his belief that objections shouldn’t be raised regarding a matter on which he had already made up his mind. To quietly agree with policies and intentions I believed were wrong or foolish would have breached a public trust, though I might have gained favor and approval from the President and kept his confidence by remaining silent.

In summarizing briefly the subjects of disagreement between the President and myself concerning the League of Nations I will follow the order of importance rather than the order in which they arose. While they also divide into two classes, those based on principle and those based on policy, it does not seem advisable to treat them by classes in the summary.

In briefly summarizing the disagreements between the President and me regarding the League of Nations, I'll focus on their importance rather than the order in which they came up. While they can be categorized into two groups—those based on principle and those based on policy—I don’t think it’s necessary to separate them in this summary.

The most serious defect in the President's Covenant was, in my opinion, one of principle. It was the practical denial of the equality of nations in the regulation of international affairs in times of peace through the recognition in the Executive Council of the League of the right of primacy of the Five Great Powers. This was an abandonment of a fundamental principle of international law and comity and was destructive of the very conception of national sovereignty both as a term of political philosophy and as a term of constitutional law. The denial of the equal independence and the free exercise of sovereign rights of all states in the conduct of their foreign affairs, and the establishment of this group of primates, amounted to a recognition of the doctrine that the powerful are, in law as well as in fact, entitled to be the overlords of the weak. If adopted, it legalized the mastery of might, which in international relations, when peace prevailed, had been universally condemned as illegal and its assertion as reprehensible.

The biggest flaw in the President's Covenant, in my view, was a matter of principle. It practically denied the equality of nations in managing international affairs during peacetime by allowing the Five Great Powers to have a special status in the Executive Council of the League. This went against a core principle of international law and mutual respect, undermining the idea of national sovereignty both politically and constitutionally. By denying equal independence and the free exercise of sovereign rights for all states in their foreign affairs, and by establishing this group of primates, it effectively endorsed the belief that the powerful are, both legally and in reality, entitled to dominate the weaker. If this were accepted, it would legitimize the rule of the strong, which had been widely condemned as illegal and its practice as unacceptable when peace was maintained in international relations.

It was this doctrine, that the possessors of superior physical power were as a matter of right the supervisors, if not the dictators, of those lacking the physical power to resist their commands, which was the vital element of ancient imperialism and of modern Prussianism. Belief in it as a true theory of world polity justified the Great War in the eyes of the German people even when they doubted the plea of their Government that their national safety was in peril. The victors, although they had fought the war with the announced purpose of proving the falsity of this pernicious doctrine and of emancipating the oppressed nationalities subject to the Central Powers, revived the doctrine with little hesitation during the negotiations at Paris and wrote it into the Covenant of the League of Nations by contriving an organization which would give practical control over the destinies of the world to an oligarchy of the Five Great Powers. It was an assumption of the right of supremacy based on the fact that the united strength of these Powers could compel obedience. It was a full endorsement of the theory of "the balance of power" in spite of the recognized evils of that doctrine in its practical application. Beneath the banner of the democracies of the world was the same sinister idea which had found expression in the Congress of Vienna with its purpose of protecting the monarchical institutions of a century ago. It proclaimed in fact that mankind must look to might rather than right, to force rather than law, in the regulation of international affairs for the future.

It was this belief that those with greater physical strength had the right to be in charge, if not outright rulers, over those who lacked the power to resist, which was a key aspect of ancient imperialism and modern Prussianism. This idea, seen as a legitimate theory of global politics, justified the Great War in the minds of the German people, even when they questioned their government's claim that national safety was at risk. The victors, although they had fought the war with the declared aim of disproving this harmful doctrine and liberating the oppressed nations under the Central Powers, readily revived the doctrine during the negotiations in Paris and included it in the Covenant of the League of Nations by creating an organization that gave real control over the world's fate to an oligarchy of the Five Great Powers. This was a claim to supremacy based on the fact that the combined strength of these Powers could enforce obedience. It fully endorsed the idea of "the balance of power," despite the acknowledged problems that this doctrine had caused in practice. Under the banner of the world's democracies was the same troubling idea that had been present at the Congress of Vienna, which aimed to protect the monarchical institutions of a century ago. It effectively asserted that humanity should rely on strength rather than justice, on force instead of law, in managing international relations moving forward.

This defect in the theory, on which the League of Nations was to be organized, was emphasized and given permanency by the adoption of a mutual guaranty of territorial integrity and political independence against external aggression. Since the burden of enforcing the guaranty would unavoidably fall upon the more powerful nations, they could reasonably demand the control over affairs which might develop into a situation requiring a resort to the guaranty. In fact during a plenary session of the Peace Conference held on May 31, 1919, President Wilson stated as a broad principle that responsibility for protecting and maintaining a settlement under one of the Peace Treaties carried with it the right to determine what that settlement should be. The application to the case of responsible guarantors is obvious and was apparently in mind when the Covenant was being evolved. The same principle was applied throughout the negotiations at Paris.

This flaw in the theory on which the League of Nations was supposed to be built was highlighted and solidified by the decision to adopt a mutual guarantee of territorial integrity and political independence against outside aggression. Since the responsibility for enforcing the guarantee would inevitably fall on the more powerful nations, they could reasonably seek control over situations that might require activating the guarantee. In fact, during a plenary session of the Peace Conference on May 31, 1919, President Wilson explained that the responsibility for protecting and maintaining a settlement under one of the Peace Treaties also included the right to decide what that settlement should be. The application to the case of responsible guarantors is clear and was likely considered while the Covenant was being developed. This same principle was applied throughout the negotiations in Paris.

The mutual guaranty from its affirmative nature compelled in fact, though not in form, the establishment of a ruling group, a coalition of the Great Powers, and denied, though not in terms, the equality of nations. The oligarchy was the logical result of entering into the guaranty or the guaranty was the logical result of the creation of the oligarchy through the perpetuation of the basic idea of the Supreme War Council. No distinction was made as to a state of war and a state of peace. Strongly opposed to the abandonment of the principle of the equality of nations in times of peace I naturally opposed the affirmative guaranty and endeavored to persuade the President to accept as a substitute for it a self-denying or negative covenant which amounted to a promise of "hands-off" and in no way required the formation of an international oligarchy to make it effective.

The mutual guarantee, due to its positive nature, effectively created a ruling group, a coalition of the Great Powers, and undermined the equality of nations, even if it didn't do so explicitly. The establishment of this oligarchy logically followed from the guarantee, or conversely, the guarantee arose from the formation of the oligarchy, which continued the core idea of the Supreme War Council. No distinction was made between a state of war and a state of peace. Strongly against the abandonment of the principle of equality among nations in peace times, I naturally opposed the affirmative guarantee and tried to convince the President to accept a self-denying or negative covenant instead, which would be a "hands-off" promise and wouldn’t require the creation of an international oligarchy to be effective.

In addition to the foregoing objection I opposed the guaranty on the ground that it was politically inexpedient to attempt to bind the United States by a treaty provision which by its terms would certainly invite attack as to its constitutionality. Without entering into the strength of the legal argument, and without denying that there are two sides to the question, the fact that it was open to debate whether the treaty-making power under the Constitution could or could not obligate the Government of the United States to make war under certain conditions was in my judgment a practical reason for avoiding the issue. If the power existed to so bind the United States by treaty on the theory that the Federal Government could not be restricted in its right to make international agreements, then the guaranty would be attacked as an unwise and needless departure from the traditional policies of the Republic. If the power did not exist, then the violation of the Constitution would be an effective argument against such an undertaking. Whatever the conclusion might be, therefore, as to the legality of the guaranty or as to whether the obligation was legal or moral in nature, it did not seem possible for it to escape criticism and vigorous attack in America.

Besides the previous objection, I opposed the guarantee because it didn't make sense politically to try to bind the United States with a treaty provision that would certainly lead to questions about its constitutionality. Without diving into the strength of the legal argument, and without denying that there are two sides to the issue, I believed that the fact it was debatable whether the treaty-making power under the Constitution could obligate the U.S. Government to go to war under certain conditions was a practical reason to avoid the issue. If the power existed to bind the United States by treaty on the assumption that the Federal Government couldn't be restricted in making international agreements, then the guarantee would be criticized as an unwise and unnecessary departure from the traditional policies of the Republic. If the power didn't exist, then the violation of the Constitution would be a strong argument against such an attempt. Therefore, regardless of the conclusion about the legality of the guarantee or whether the obligation was legal or moral, it seemed unavoidable that it would face criticism and strong opposition in America.

It seemed to me that the President's guaranty was so vulnerable from every angle that to insist upon it would endanger the acceptance of any treaty negotiated if the Covenant was, in accordance with the President's plan, made an integral part of it. Then, too, opposition would, in my opinion, develop on the ground that the guaranty would permit European Powers to participate, if they could not act independently, in the forcible settlement of international quarrels in the Western Hemisphere whenever there was an actual invasion of territory or violation of sovereignty, while conversely the United States would be morally, if not legally, bound to take part in coercive measures in composing European differences under similar conditions. It could be urged with much force that the Monroe Doctrine in the one case and the Washington policy of avoiding "entangling alliances" in the other would be so affected that they would both have to be substantially abandoned or else rewritten. If the American people were convinced that this would be the consequence of accepting the affirmative guaranty, it meant its rejection. In any event it was bound to produce an acrimonious controversy. From the point of view of policy alone it seemed unwise to include the guaranty in the Covenant, and believing that an objection on that ground would appeal to the President more strongly than one based on principle, I emphasized that objection, though in my own mind the other was the more vital and more compelling.

It seemed to me that the President's guarantee was so weak from every angle that insisting on it would jeopardize the acceptance of any treaty negotiated if the Covenant became a core part of it, as the President intended. Additionally, I believed that opposition would arise based on the argument that this guarantee would allow European Powers to get involved—if they couldn't act independently—in forcibly resolving international conflicts in the Western Hemisphere whenever there was an actual invasion of territory or violation of sovereignty. At the same time, the United States would be morally, if not legally, obligated to take part in coercive measures to resolve European disputes under similar situations. It could be strongly argued that both the Monroe Doctrine and Washington's policy of avoiding "entangling alliances" would be significantly impacted, necessitating that both be largely abandoned or rewritten. If the American people were convinced that accepting the affirmative guarantee would lead to such consequences, it would result in its rejection. In any case, it was sure to spark a heated controversy. From a purely policy perspective, it seemed unwise to include the guarantee in the Covenant, and I felt that this concern would resonate more with the President than an objection based on principle. Still, in my mind, the other issue was more critical and compelling.

The points of difference relating to the League of Nations between the President's views and mine, other than the recognition of the primacy of the Great Powers, the affirmative guaranty and the resulting denial in fact of the equality of nations in times of peace, were the provisions in the President's original draft of the Covenant relating to international arbitrations, the subordination of the judicial power to the political power, and the proposed system of mandates. Having discussed with sufficient detail the reasons which caused me to oppose these provisions, and having stated the efforts made to induce President Wilson to abandon or modify them, repetition would be superfluous. It is also needless, in view of the full narrative of events contained in these pages, to state that I failed entirely in my endeavor to divert the President from his determination to have these provisions inserted in the Covenant, except in the case of international arbitrations, and even in that case I do not believe that my advice had anything to do with his abandonment of his ideas as to the method of selecting arbitrators and the right of appeal from arbitral awards. Those changes and the substitution of an article providing for the future creation of a Permanent Court of International Justice, were, in my opinion, as I have said, a concession to the European statesmen and due to their insistence.

The differences between the President's views on the League of Nations and mine, aside from recognizing the priority of the Great Powers, the affirmative guarantee, and the resulting denial of equality among nations during peacetime, included the provisions in the President's original draft of the Covenant regarding international arbitrations, the subordination of judicial power to political power, and the proposed system of mandates. Since I've already discussed in detail the reasons for my opposition to these provisions and the efforts I made to convince President Wilson to change or drop them, there's no need to repeat myself. It's also unnecessary, given the complete account of events in these pages, to point out that I completely failed to persuade the President to remove these provisions from the Covenant, except for the case of international arbitrations. Even then, I don't think my advice influenced his decision to change his ideas about how arbitrators would be selected and the right to appeal arbitral awards. I believe those adjustments and the replacement of an article for the future creation of a Permanent Court of International Justice were, as I’ve mentioned, concessions to the European leaders and resulted from their pressure.

President Wilson knew that I disagreed with him as to the relative importance of restoring a state of peace at the earliest date possible and of securing the adoption of a plan for the creation of a League of Nations. He was clearly convinced that the drafting and acceptance of the Covenant was superior to every other task imposed on the Conference, that it must be done before any other settlement was reached and that it ought to have precedence in the negotiations. His course of action was conclusive evidence of this conviction.

President Wilson knew I didn't see eye to eye with him on the importance of quickly restoring peace versus making sure a plan for creating a League of Nations was adopted. He firmly believed that drafting and accepting the Covenant was more important than any other task at the Conference, that it needed to happen before any other agreements were made, and that it should take priority in the negotiations. His actions clearly showed this belief.

On the other hand, I favored the speedy negotiation of a short and simple preliminary treaty, in which, so far as the League of Nations was concerned, there would be a series of declarations and an agreement for a future international conference called for the purpose of drafting a convention in harmony with the declarations in the preliminary treaty. By adopting this course a state of peace would have been restored in the early months of 1919, official intercourse and commercial relations would have been resumed, the more complex and difficult problems of settlement would have been postponed to the negotiation of the definitive Treaty of Peace, and there would have been time to study exhaustively the purposes, powers, and practical operations of a League before the organic agreement was put into final form. Postponement would also have given opportunity to the nations, which had continued neutral throughout the war, to participate in the formation of the plan for a League on an equal footing with the nations which had been belligerents. In the establishment of a world organization universality of international representation in reaching an agreement seemed to me advisable, if not essential, provided the nations represented were democracies and not autocracies.

On the other hand, I preferred a quick negotiation of a short and straightforward preliminary treaty. This treaty would include a series of statements and an agreement for a future international conference aimed at drafting a convention that aligns with the statements in the preliminary treaty. If we had taken this approach, peace would have been restored in the early months of 1919, official communication and trade would have resumed, and the more complicated issues of settlement would have been postponed for the negotiation of the final Treaty of Peace. This would have allowed time to thoroughly examine the goals, powers, and practical functions of a League before the final agreement was solidified. Delaying would also have given the countries that remained neutral during the war a chance to participate in the creation of the League plan on equal terms with the countries that had been involved in the conflict. In establishing a global organization, I believed that having diverse international representation in reaching an agreement was advisable, if not essential, as long as the nations involved were democracies and not authoritarian regimes.

It was to be presumed also that at a conference entirely independent of the peace negotiations and free from the influences affecting the terms of peace, there would be more general and more frank discussions regarding the various phases of the subject than was possible at a conference ruled by the Five Great Powers and dominated in its decisions, if not in its opinions, by the statesmen of those Powers.

It should also be assumed that at a conference completely separate from the peace negotiations and free from the influences shaping the terms of peace, there would be more open and honest discussions about the different aspects of the topic than what was possible at a conference led by the Five Great Powers and influenced in its decisions, if not its views, by the leaders of those Powers.

To perfect such a document, as the Covenant of the League of Nations was intended to be, required expert knowledge, practical experience in international relations, and an exchange of ideas untrammeled by immediate questions of policy or by the prejudices resulting from the war and from national hatreds and jealousies. It was not a work for politicians, novices, or inexperienced theorists, but for trained statesmen and jurists, who were conversant with the fundamental principles of international law, with the usages of nations in their intercourse with one another, and with the successes and failures of previous experiments in international association. The President was right in his conception as to the greatness of the task to be accomplished, but he was wrong, radically wrong, in believing that it could be properly done at the Paris Conference under the conditions which there prevailed and in the time given for consideration of the subject.

To create a perfect document, like the Covenant of the League of Nations aimed to be, required expert knowledge, practical experience in international relations, and the free exchange of ideas without being restricted by immediate policy issues or the prejudices stemming from the war and national animosities. This wasn’t a job for politicians, newcomers, or inexperienced theorists, but for skilled statesmen and legal experts who understood the core principles of international law, the practices of nations in their dealings with each other, and the successes and failures of past efforts in international cooperation. The President was correct in recognizing the significance of the task ahead, but he was fundamentally mistaken in thinking it could be successfully achieved at the Paris Conference under the conditions that existed there and in the limited time available for discussing the matter.

To believe for a moment that a world constitution—for so its advocates looked upon the Covenant—could be drafted perfectly or even wisely in eleven days, however much thought individuals may have previously given to the subject, seems on the face of it to show an utter lack of appreciation of the problems to be solved or else an abnormal confidence in the talents and wisdom of those charged with the duty. If one compares the learned and comprehensive debates that took place in the convention which drafted the Constitution of the United States, and the months that were spent in the critical examination word by word of the proposed articles, with the ten meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations prior to its report of February 14 and with the few hours given to debating the substance and language of the Covenant, the inferior character of the document produced by the Commission ought not to be a matter of wonder. It was a foregone conclusion that it would be found defective. Some of these defects were subsequently corrected, but the theory and basic principles, which were the chief defects in the plan, were preserved with no substantial change.

To think for a moment that a world constitution—for that's how its supporters viewed the Covenant—could be perfectly or even wisely drafted in just eleven days, no matter how much individuals had thought about it beforehand, seems to clearly show a complete disregard for the problems at hand or an unusual level of confidence in the abilities and wisdom of those tasked with the responsibility. When you compare the in-depth and thorough discussions that occurred at the convention that created the Constitution of the United States, along with the months spent carefully examining every word of the proposed articles, to the ten meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations before its report on February 14 and the few hours spent debating the content and wording of the Covenant, it's no surprise that the document produced by the Commission fell short. It was expected that it would have flaws. Some of these flaws were later fixed, but the theories and fundamental principles, which were the main issues in the plan, remained largely unchanged.

But the fact, which has been repeatedly asserted in the preceding pages and which cannot be too strongly emphasized by repetition, is that the most potent and most compelling reason for postponing the consideration of a detailed plan for an international organization was that such a consideration at the outset of the negotiations at Paris obstructed and delayed the discussion and settlement of the general terms necessary to the immediate restoration of a state of peace. Those who recall the political and social conditions in Europe during the winter of 1918-19, to which reference has already been made, will comprehend the apprehension caused by anything which interrupted the negotiation of the peace. No one dared to prophesy what might happen if the state of political uncertainty and industrial stagnation, which existed under the armistices, continued.

But the reality, which has been repeatedly emphasized in the previous sections and which cannot be stressed enough through repetition, is that the most powerful and convincing reason for delaying the discussion of a detailed plan for an international organization was that addressing it at the beginning of the negotiations in Paris hindered and prolonged the conversation and resolution of the general terms necessary for the immediate restoration of peace. Those who remember the political and social conditions in Europe during the winter of 1918-19, which has already been mentioned, will understand the anxiety caused by anything that interrupted the peace negotiations. No one dared to predict what might happen if the state of political uncertainty and industrial stagnation, which existed under the armistices, continued.

The time given to the formulation of the Covenant of the League of Nations and the determination that it should have first place in the negotiations caused such a delay in the proceedings and prevented a speedy restoration of peace. Denial of this is useless. It is too manifest to require proof or argument to support it. It is equally true, I regret to say, that President Wilson was chiefly responsible for this. If he had not insisted that a complete and detailed plan for the League should be part of the treaty negotiated at Paris, and if he had not also insisted that the Covenant be taken up and settled in terms before other matters were considered, a preliminary treaty of peace would in all probability have been signed, ratified, and in effect during April, 1919.

The time spent on creating the Covenant of the League of Nations and the decision to prioritize it in the negotiations led to significant delays and hindered a quick return to peace. Denying this fact is pointless. It's too obvious to require proof or debate. Unfortunately, it's also true that President Wilson played a major role in this. If he hadn’t insisted that a comprehensive and detailed plan for the League be included in the treaty negotiated in Paris, and if he hadn’t also insisted that the Covenant be addressed and resolved before other issues were tackled, a preliminary peace treaty likely would have been signed, ratified, and in effect by April 1919.

Whatever evils resulted from the failure of the Paris Conference to negotiate promptly a preliminary treaty—and it must be admitted they were not a few—must be credited to those who caused the delay. The personal interviews and secret conclaves before the Commission on the League of Nations met occupied a month and a half. Practically another half month was consumed in sessions of the Commission. The month following was spent by President Wilson on his visit to the United States explaining the reported Covenant and listening to criticisms. While much was done during his absence toward the settlement of numerous questions, final decision in every case awaited his return to Paris. After his arrival the Commission on the League renewed its sittings to consider amendments to its report, and it required over a month to put it in final form for adoption; but during this latter period much time was given to the actual terms of peace, which on account of the delay caused in attempting to perfect the Covenant had taken the form of a definitive rather than a preliminary treaty.

Whatever problems came from the failure of the Paris Conference to quickly negotiate a preliminary treaty—and there were definitely quite a few—should be blamed on those who caused the delays. The personal meetings and secret gatherings before the Commission on the League of Nations got together took a month and a half. Practically another half month was spent in sessions of the Commission. The following month was spent by President Wilson visiting the United States to explain the proposed Covenant and hear criticisms. While a lot was accomplished during his absence in settling various issues, a final decision in every case had to wait for his return to Paris. After he got back, the Commission on the League resumed its meetings to discuss changes to its report, and it took over a month to finalize it for approval; however, during this time, a lot of focus was given to the actual terms of peace, which, due to the delays in refining the Covenant, ended up as a definitive rather than a preliminary treaty.

It is conservative to say that between two and three months were spent in the drafting of a document which in the end was rejected by the Senate of the United States and was responsible for the non-ratification of the Treaty of Versailles. In view of the warnings that President Wilson had received as to the probable result of insisting on the plan of a League which he had prepared and his failure to heed the warnings, his persistency in pressing for acceptance of the Covenant before anything else was done makes the resulting delay in the peace less excusable.

It's safe to say that it took about two to three months to draft a document that was ultimately rejected by the U.S. Senate and led to the failure to ratify the Treaty of Versailles. Considering the warnings President Wilson received about the likely outcome of pushing for the League plan he created, and his choice to ignore those warnings, his determination to push for acceptance of the Covenant before addressing anything else makes the resulting delay in achieving peace less forgivable.

Two weeks after the President returned from the United States in March the common opinion was that the drafting of the Covenant had delayed the restoration of peace, an opinion which was endorsed in the press of many countries. The belief became so general and aroused so much popular condemnation that Mr. Wilson considered it necessary to make a public denial, in which he expressed surprise at the published views and declared that the negotiations in regard to the League of Nations had in no way delayed the peace. Concerning the denial and the subject with which it dealt, I made on March 28 the following memorandum:

Two weeks after the President got back from the United States in March, the general consensus was that the creation of the Covenant had postponed the restoration of peace, a view that was echoed in the media of many countries. This belief became widespread and sparked significant public outrage, prompting Mr. Wilson to feel it was necessary to issue a public denial. He expressed surprise at the opinions being published and stated that the discussions regarding the League of Nations had not delayed peace in any way. Regarding the denial and the issue it addressed, I wrote the following memo on March 28:

"The President has issued a public statement, which appears in this morning's papers, in which he refers to the 'surprising impression' that the discussions concerning the League of Nations have delayed the making of peace and he flatly denies that the impression is justified.

"The President has made a public statement, featured in this morning's papers, where he discusses the 'surprising impression' that the talks about the League of Nations have slowed down the peace process, and he strongly denies that this impression is justified."

"I doubt if this statement will remove the general impression which amounts almost to a conviction. Every one knows that the President's thoughts and a great deal of his time prior to his departure for the United States were given to the formulation of the plan for a League and that he insisted that the 'Covenant' should be drafted and reported before the other features of the peace were considered. The real difficulties of the present situation, which had to be settled before the treaty could be drafted, were postponed until his return here on March 13th.

I doubt this statement will change the widespread belief that almost feels like a certainty. Everyone knows that the President spent a lot of his time and thoughts before leaving for the United States working on the plan for a League, and he insisted that the ‘Covenant’ should be written and presented before discussing other aspects of the peace. The real challenges of the current situation, which needed to be resolved before the treaty could be written, were pushed back until his return on March 13th.

"In fact the real bases of peace have only just begun to receive the attention which they deserve.

"In fact, the true foundations of peace have only just started to get the attention they deserve."

"If such questions as the Rhine Provinces, Poland, reparations, and economic arrangements had been taken up by the President and Premiers in January, and if they had sat day and night, as they are now sitting in camera, until each was settled, the peace treaty would, I believe, be to-day on the Conference's table, if not actually signed.

"If the President and Prime Ministers had discussed issues like the Rhine Provinces, Poland, reparations, and economic arrangements in January, and if they had worked day and night, as they are currently doing in camera, until each issue was resolved, I believe the peace treaty would be on the Conference's table today, if not already signed."

"Of course the insistence that the plan of the League be first pushed to a draft before all else prevented the settlement of the other questions. Why attempt to refute what is manifestly true? I regret that the President made the statement because I do not think that it carries conviction. I fear that it will invite controversy and denial, and that it puts the President on the defensive."

"Clearly, the insistence that the League's plan be drafted first before anything else held up the resolution of other issues. Why argue against something that's obviously true? I wish the President hadn't said that because I don't think it’s convincing. I'm concerned it will lead to debate and pushback, putting the President in a tough spot."

The views expressed in this memorandum were those held, I believe, by the great majority of persons who participated in the Peace Conference or were in intimate touch with its proceedings. Mr. Wilson's published denial may have converted some to the belief that the drafting of the Covenant was in no way responsible for the delay of the peace, but the number of converts must have been very few, as it meant utter ignorance of or indifference to the circumstances which conclusively proved the incorrectness of the statement.

The views expressed in this memo were those shared, I believe, by the vast majority of people who took part in the Peace Conference or were closely involved with its proceedings. Mr. Wilson's public denial may have convinced some that the drafting of the Covenant had no role in delaying the peace, but the number of people who changed their minds must have been very small, as it indicated complete ignorance of or indifference to the circumstances that clearly showed the statement was incorrect.

The effect of this attempt of President Wilson to check the growing popular antipathy to the League as an obstacle to the speedy restoration of peace was to cause speculation as to whether he really appreciated the situation. If he did not, it was affirmed that he was ignorant of public opinion or else was lacking in mental acuteness. If he did appreciate the state of affairs, it was said that his statement was uttered with the sole purpose of deceiving the people. In either case he fell in public estimation. It shows the unwisdom of having issued the denial.

The effect of President Wilson's attempt to counter the increasing public dislike of the League as a barrier to quickly restoring peace was to raise questions about whether he truly understood the situation. If he didn’t, people claimed he was either out of touch with public opinion or lacked insight. If he did understand the circumstances, critics suggested his statement was meant solely to mislead the public. In both scenarios, his reputation suffered. This illustrates the foolishness of issuing the denial.

CHAPTER XV

THE PROPOSED TREATY WITH FRANCE

There is one subject, connected with the consideration of the mutual guaranty which, as finally reported by the Commission on the League of Nations, appears as Article 10 of the Covenant, that should be briefly reviewed, as it directly bears upon the value placed upon the guaranty by the French statesmen who accepted it. I refer to the treaties negotiated by France with the United States and Great Britain respectively. These treaties provided that, in the event of France being again attacked by Germany without provocation, the two Powers severally agreed to come to the aid of the French Republic in repelling the invasion. The joint nature of the undertaking was in a provision in each treaty that a similar treaty would be signed by the other Power, otherwise the agreement failed. The undertakings stated in practically identical terms in the two treaties constituted, in fact, a triple defensive alliance for the preservation of the integrity of French territory and French independence. It had the same object as the guaranty in the Covenant, though it went even further in the assurance of affirmative action, and was, therefore, open to the same objections on the grounds of constitutionality and policy as Article 10.

There’s one topic related to the mutual guarantee that, according to the Commission on the League of Nations, appears as Article 10 of the Covenant, which should be briefly discussed because it directly relates to how much value French leaders placed on the guarantee. I'm talking about the treaties France made with the United States and Great Britain. These treaties stated that if France was attacked by Germany again without provocation, both powers agreed to help the French Republic fend off the invasion. The joint nature of this commitment was included in a clause in each treaty that required the other power to sign a similar treaty; otherwise, the agreement wouldn’t hold. The commitments, expressed in nearly identical terms in both treaties, essentially formed a triple defensive alliance aimed at protecting the integrity of French territory and independence. It had the same goal as the guarantee in the Covenant, but it provided even stronger assurances of action, and therefore, faced the same concerns regarding constitutionality and policy as Article 10.

In a note, dated March 20, stating my "Impressions as to the Present Situation," I discussed the endeavors being made by the President to overcome opposition and to remove obstacles to the acceptance of his plan for a League of Nations by means of compromises and concessions. In the note appears the following:

In a note dated March 20, titled "My Impressions on the Current Situation," I talked about the efforts the President is making to deal with opposition and clear the way for his plan for a League of Nations through compromises and concessions. The note includes the following:

"An instance of the lengths to which these compromises and makeshifts are going, occurred this morning when Colonel House sent to Mr. White, General Bliss, and me for our opinion the following proposal: That the United States, Great Britain, and France enter into a formal alliance to resist any aggressive action by Germany against France or Belgium, and to employ their military, financial, and economic resources for this purpose in addition to exerting their moral influence to prevent such aggression.

"An example of how far these compromises and workarounds are going happened this morning when Colonel House asked Mr. White, General Bliss, and me for our thoughts on the following proposal: That the United States, Great Britain, and France form a formal alliance to resist any aggressive actions by Germany against France or Belgium, and to use their military, financial, and economic resources for this purpose, along with their moral influence to prevent such aggression."

"We three agreed that, if that agreement was made, the chief reason for a League of Nations, as now planned, disappeared. So far as France and Belgium were concerned the alliance was all they needed for their future safety. They might or might not accept the League. Of course they would if the alliance depended upon their acceptance. They would do most anything to get such an alliance.

"We three agreed that if that agreement was made, the main reason for a League of Nations, as it's currently planned, went away. As far as France and Belgium were concerned, the alliance was all they needed for their future security. They might or might not accept the League. Of course, they would if the alliance relied on their acceptance. They would do just about anything to secure such an alliance."

"The proposal was doubtless made to remove two provisions on which the French are most insistent: First, an international military staff to be prepared to use force against Germany if there were signs of military activity; second, the creation of an independent Rhenish Republic to act as a 'buffer' state. Of course the triple alliance would make these measures needless.

"The proposal was definitely made to eliminate two requirements that the French are very adamant about: First, an international military team ready to take action against Germany if there were indications of military movement; second, the establishment of an independent Rhenish Republic to serve as a 'buffer' state. Naturally, the triple alliance would render these actions unnecessary."

"What impressed me most was that to gain French support for the League the proposer of the alliance was willing to destroy the chief feature of the League. It seemed to me that here was utter blindness as to the consequences of such action. There appears to have been no thought given as to the way other nations, like Poland, Bohemia, and the Southern Slavs, would view the formation of an alliance to protect France and Belgium alone. Manifestly it would increase rather than decrease their danger from Germany since she would have to look eastward and southward for expansion. Of course they would not accept as sufficient the guaranty in the Covenant when France and Belgium declined to do it.

"What impressed me most was that to gain French support for the League, the person proposing the alliance was willing to undermine the main purpose of the League. It seemed to me that there was complete blindness to the consequences of such a move. No thought appeared to have been given to how other nations, like Poland, Bohemia, and the Southern Slavs, would react to the creation of an alliance meant to protect only France and Belgium. Clearly, it would increase rather than decrease their risk from Germany, as she would have to look east and south for expansion. Obviously, they would not see the guarantee in the Covenant as sufficient since France and Belgium were unwilling to accept it."

"How would such a proposal be received in the United States with its traditional policy of avoiding 'entangling alliances'? Of course, when one considers it, the proposal is preposterous and would be laughed at and rejected."

"How would such a proposal be received in the United States, with its traditional policy of avoiding 'entangling alliances'? Of course, when you think about it, the proposal is ridiculous and would be laughed at and dismissed."

This was the impression made upon me at the time that this triple alliance against Germany was first proposed. I later came to look upon it more seriously and to recognize the fact that there were some valid reasons in favor of the proposal. The subject was not further discussed by the Commissioners for several weeks, but it is clear from what followed that M. Clemenceau, who naturally favored the idea, continued to press the President to agree to the plan. What arguments were employed to persuade him I cannot say, but, knowing the shrewdness of the French Premier in taking advantage of a situation, my belief is that he threatened to withdraw or at least gave the impression that he would withdraw his support of the League of Nations or else would insist on a provision in the Covenant creating a general staff and an international military force and on a provision in the treaty establishing a Rhenish Republic or else ceding to France all territory west of the Rhine. To avoid the adoption of either of these provisions, which would have endangered the approval of his plan for world organization, the President submitted to the French demand. At least I assume that was the reason, for he promised to enter into the treaty of assistance which M. Clemenceau insisted should be signed.

This was my first impression when the idea of a triple alliance against Germany was proposed. Over time, I began to take it more seriously and recognized that there were some valid reasons for the proposal. The topic wasn’t discussed further by the Commissioners for several weeks, but it became clear that M. Clemenceau, who naturally supported the idea, kept urging the President to agree to the plan. I can’t say what arguments he used to convince him, but knowing the French Premier's knack for exploiting a situation, I believe he threatened to withdraw or at least suggested he would withdraw his support for the League of Nations. He might have also insisted on including a provision in the Covenant for a general staff and an international military force, as well as a provision in the treaty for establishing a Rhenish Republic or ceding all territory west of the Rhine to France. To avoid adopting any of these provisions, which could jeopardize his plan for global organization, the President gave in to the French demand. At least, that’s what I assume happened, since he agreed to sign the treaty of assistance that M. Clemenceau insisted on.

It is of course possible that he was influenced in his decision by the belief that the knowledge that such an agreement existed would be sufficient to deter Germany from even planning another invasion of France, but my opinion is that the desire to win French support for the Covenant was the chief reason for the promise that he gave. It should be remembered that at the time both the Italians and Japanese were threatening to make trouble unless their territorial ambitions were satisfied. With these two Powers disaffected and showing a disposition to refuse to accept membership in the proposed League of Nations the opposition of France to the Covenant would have been fatal. It would have been the end of the President's dream of a world organized to maintain peace by an international guaranty of national boundaries and sovereignties. Whether France would in the end have insisted on the additional guaranty of protection I doubt, but it is evident that Mr. Wilson believed that she would and decided to prevent a disaster to his plan by acceding to the wishes of his French colleague.

It’s possible that his decision was influenced by the belief that just knowing such an agreement existed would be enough to deter Germany from considering another invasion of France. However, I think the main reason for his promise was the desire to gain French support for the Covenant. We should remember that at that time, both the Italians and Japanese were threatening to cause trouble unless their territorial ambitions were met. With these two powers unhappy and showing a willingness to reject membership in the proposed League of Nations, France’s opposition to the Covenant would have been disastrous. It would have ended the President’s dream of a world organized to maintain peace through an international guarantee of national boundaries and sovereignty. Whether France would ultimately have insisted on additional protection guarantees is uncertain, but it’s clear that Mr. Wilson believed she would and chose to prevent a setback to his plan by agreeing to his French colleague's wishes.

Some time in April prior to the acceptance of the Treaty of Peace by the Premiers of the Allied Powers, the President and Mr. Lloyd George agreed with M. Clemenceau to negotiate the treaties of protective alliance which the French demanded. The President advised me of his decision on the day before the Treaty was delivered to the German plenipotentiaries stating in substance that his promise to enter into the alliance formed a part of the settlements as fully as if written into the Treaty. I told him that personally I considered an agreement to negotiate the treaty of assistance a mistake, as it discredited Article 10 of the Covenant, which he considered all-important, and as it would, I was convinced, be the cause of serious opposition in the United States. He replied that he considered it necessary to adopt this policy in the circumstances, and that, at any rate, having passed his word with M. Clemenceau, who was accepting the Treaty because of his promise, it was too late to reconsider the matter and useless to discuss it.

Some time in April, before the Allied Powers' Premiers accepted the Treaty of Peace, the President and Mr. Lloyd George reached an agreement with M. Clemenceau to negotiate the protective alliance treaties that the French were demanding. The President informed me of his decision the day before the Treaty was presented to the German representatives, stating that his commitment to enter into the alliance was as integral to the agreements as if it were written into the Treaty itself. I told him that I personally believed that agreeing to negotiate the assistance treaty was a mistake because it undermined Article 10 of the Covenant, which he considered crucial, and it would likely lead to significant opposition in the United States. He responded that he deemed it necessary to pursue this policy given the circumstances, and that, since he had made a promise to M. Clemenceau, who was accepting the Treaty based on that promise, it was too late to rethink the issue and pointless to discuss it further.

Subsequently the President instructed me to have a treaty drafted in accordance with a memorandum which he sent me. This was done by Dr. James Brown Scott and the draft was approved and prepared for signature. On the morning of June 28, the same day on which the Treaty of Versailles was signed, the protective treaty with France was signed at the President's residence in the Place des Etats Unis by M. Clemenceau and M. Pichon for the French Republic and by President Wilson and myself for the United States, Mr. Lloyd George and Mr. Balfour signing at the same time a similar treaty for Great Britain. Though disagreeing with the policy of the President in regard to this special treaty it would have been futile for me to have refused to accept the full powers issued to me on June 27 or to have declined to follow the directions to act as a plenipotentiary in signing the document. Such a course would not have prevented Mr. Wilson from entering into the defensive alliance with France and Great Britain and might have actually delayed the peace. Feeling strongly the supreme necessity of ending the existing state of war as soon as possible I did not consider that I would be justified in refusing to act as the formal agent of the President or in disobeying his instructions as such agent. In view of the long delay in ratification of the Treaty of the Peace, I have since doubted whether I acted wisely. But at the time I was convinced that the right course was the one which I followed.

Later, the President directed me to have a treaty created based on a memorandum he sent me. Dr. James Brown Scott took care of that, and the draft was approved and made ready for signature. On the morning of June 28, the same day the Treaty of Versailles was signed, the protective treaty with France was signed at the President's residence in the Place des Etats Unis by M. Clemenceau and M. Pichon for the French Republic, and by President Wilson and me for the United States, while Mr. Lloyd George and Mr. Balfour signed a similar treaty for Great Britain at the same time. Although I disagreed with the President's policy regarding this specific treaty, it would have been pointless for me to refuse to accept the full powers granted to me on June 27 or to decline to follow the instructions to act as a plenipotentiary in signing the document. Refusing wouldn't have stopped Mr. Wilson from entering into the defensive alliance with France and Great Britain and could have actually delayed the peace. Strongly believing in the critical need to end the ongoing state of war as quickly as possible, I didn't think it was right to refuse to act as the President's official representative or to disobey his orders as such. In light of the long delay in ratifying the Peace Treaty, I've since questioned whether I acted wisely. But at the time, I was convinced that the path I chose was the right one.

In spite of the fact that my judgment was contrary to the President's as to the wisdom of negotiating this treaty because I considered the policy of doing so bad from the standpoint of national interests and of doubtful expediency in view of the almost certain rejection of it by the United States Senate and of its probable effect on any plan for general disarmament, I was not entirely satisfied because I could not disregard the fact that an argument could be made in its favor which was not without force.

Even though I disagreed with the President about the wisdom of negotiating this treaty, believing it to be a bad move for our national interests and likely to be rejected by the Senate, I couldn’t fully dismiss it. I recognized that there was a strong argument that could be made in its favor.

The United States entered the war to check the progress of the autocratic imperialism of Germany. That purpose became generally recognized before the victory was won. In making peace it was deemed, therefore, a matter of first importance to make impossible a revival of the aggressive spirit and ambitious designs of Germany. The prevailing bitterness against France because of the territorial cessions and the reparations demanded by the victor would naturally cause the German people to seek future opportunity to be revenged. With a population almost, if not quite, double that of the French Republic, Germany would be a constant menace to the nation which had suffered so terribly in the past by reason of the imperialistic spirit prevalent in the German Empire. The fear of that menace strongly influenced the French policies during the negotiations at Paris. In fact it was hard to avoid the feeling that this fear dominated the conduct of the French delegates and the attitude of their Government. They demanded much, and recognizing the probable effect of their demands on the German people sought to obtain special protection in case their vanquished enemy attempted in the future to dispossess them by force of the land which he had been compelled to surrender or attempted to make them restore the indemnity paid.

The United States got involved in the war to stop the rapid expansion of Germany's autocratic imperialism. This goal became widely accepted even before the war ended. In making peace, it was seen as crucial to prevent any resurgence of Germany's aggressive attitudes and ambitions. The existing resentment towards France over the territorial losses and the reparations demanded by the victors would naturally lead the German people to seek revenge in the future. With a population nearly double that of France, Germany could always pose a threat to a nation that had suffered so much from the imperialist mindset of the German Empire. This fear greatly influenced France's policies during the negotiations in Paris. In fact, it was hard to shake off the impression that this fear guided the actions of the French delegates and their government. They made many demands, and understanding the likely impact of those demands on the German people, they sought special protections in case their defeated adversary tried to reclaim the territory it had been forced to give up or sought to overturn the reparations paid.

Whether France could have avoided the danger of German attack in the future by lessening her demands, however just they might be, is neither here nor there. It makes little practical difference how that question is answered. The important fact is that the settlements in favor of France under the Treaty were of a nature which made the continuance of peace between the two nations doubtful if Germany possessed the ability to regain her military strength and if nothing was done to prevent her from using it. In these circumstances a special protective treaty seemed a practical way to check the conversion of the revengeful spirit of the Germans into another war of invasion.

Whether France could have avoided the risk of a German attack in the future by lowering her demands, no matter how justified they might be, is beside the point. It doesn't really matter how that question is answered. The key issue is that the agreements in favor of France under the Treaty created a situation where peace between the two nations was uncertain if Germany could rebuild her military power and if no measures were taken to stop her from using it. In this context, a special protective treaty appeared to be a sensible way to prevent the vengeful attitude of the Germans from turning into another invasion.

However valid this argument in favor of the two treaties of assistance, and though my personal sympathy for France inclined me to satisfy her wishes, my judgment, as an American Commissioner, was that American interests and the traditional policies of the United States were against this alliance. Possibly the President recognized the force of the argument in favor of the treaty and valued it so highly that he considered it decisive. Knowing, however, his general attitude toward French demands and his confidence in the effectiveness of the guaranty in the Covenant, I believe that the controlling reason for promising the alliance and negotiating the treaty was his conviction that it was necessary to make this concession to the French in order to secure their support for the Covenant and to check the disposition in certain quarters to make the League of Nations essentially a military coalition under a general international staff organized and controlled by the French.

While this argument for the two assistance treaties is valid, and my personal sympathy for France made me want to meet her demands, my judgment as an American Commissioner was that American interests and the traditional policies of the United States were against this alliance. It's possible that the President recognized the strength of the argument for the treaty and valued it so much that he considered it decisive. However, knowing his general attitude toward French demands and his confidence in the effectiveness of the guarantee in the Covenant, I believe the main reason for agreeing to the alliance and negotiating the treaty was his belief that it was necessary to make this concession to the French to ensure their support for the Covenant and to counter the tendency in some circles to turn the League of Nations into primarily a military coalition led by an international staff organized and controlled by the French.

There were those who favored the mutual guaranty in the Covenant, but who strongly opposed the separate treaty with France. Their objection was that, in view of the general guaranty, the treaty of assistance was superfluous, or, if it were considered necessary, then it discredited the Covenant's guaranty. The argument was logical and difficult to controvert. It was the one taken by delegates of the smaller nations who relied on the general guaranty to protect their countries from future aggressions on the part of their powerful neighbors. If the guaranty of the Covenant was sufficient protection for them, they declared that it ought to be sufficient for France. If France doubted its sufficiency, how could they be content with it?

Some people supported the mutual guarantee in the Covenant but strongly opposed the separate treaty with France. They argued that, considering the general guarantee, the assistance treaty was unnecessary, or if it was deemed essential, it undermined the Covenant's guarantee. This argument was logical and hard to refute. It was the same stance taken by delegates from smaller nations who depended on the general guarantee to defend their countries against future aggressions from powerful neighbors. They declared that if the Covenant’s guarantee was enough protection for them, it should be enough for France as well. If France had doubts about its adequacy, how could they be satisfied with it?

Since my own judgment was against any form of guaranty imposing upon the United States either a legal or a moral obligation to employ coercive measures under certain conditions arising in international affairs, I could not conscientiously support the idea of the French treaty. This further departure from America's historic policy caused me to accept President Wilson's "guidance and direction … with increasing reluctance," as he aptly expressed it in his letter of February 11, 1920. We did not agree, we could not agree, since our points of view were so much at variance.

Since my own judgment went against any type of guarantee that would put a legal or moral obligation on the United States to use force under certain circumstances in international relations, I couldn’t genuinely support the idea of the French treaty. This further shift from America's traditional policy made me accept President Wilson's "guidance and direction … with increasing reluctance," as he accurately stated in his letter from February 11, 1920. We didn’t agree, we couldn’t agree, because our perspectives were so different.

Yet, in spite of the divergence of our views as to the negotiations which constantly increased and became more and more pronounced during the six months at Paris, our personal relations continued unchanged; at least there was no outward evidence of the actual breach which existed. As there never had been the personal intimacy between the President and myself, such as existed in the case of Colonel House and a few others of his advisers, and as our intercourse had always been more or less formal in character, it was easier to continue the official relations that had previously prevailed. I presume that Mr. Wilson felt, as I did, that it would create an embarrassing situation in the negotiations if there was an open rupture between us or if my commission was withdrawn or surrendered and I returned to the United States before the Treaty of Peace was signed. The effect, too, upon the situation in the Senate would be to strengthen the opposition to the President's purposes and furnish his personal, as well as his political, enemies with new grounds for attacking him.

Yet, despite our differing views on the negotiations that became increasingly evident over the six months in Paris, our personal relationship remained unchanged; at least, there was no visible sign of the actual rift that existed. Since there had never been a personal closeness between the President and me, like that of Colonel House and a few other advisers, and since our interactions had always been somewhat formal, it was easier to maintain the official relations that had existed before. I believe Mr. Wilson felt, as I did, that an open break between us, or the withdrawal of my commission, would complicate the negotiations if I returned to the United States before the Treaty of Peace was signed. Additionally, this would strengthen opposition in the Senate against the President's goals and give both his personal and political enemies new reasons to criticize him.

I think, however, that our reasons for avoiding a public break in our official relations were different. The President undoubtedly believed that such an event would jeopardize the acceptance of the Covenant by the United States Senate in view of the hostility to it which had already developed and which was supplemented by the bitter animosity to him personally which was undisguised. On my part, the chief reason for leaving the situation undisturbed was that I was fully convinced that my withdrawal from the American Commission would seriously delay the restoration of peace, possibly in the signature of the Treaty at Paris and certainly in its ratification at Washington. Considering that the time had passed to make an attempt to change Mr. Wilson's views on any fundamental principle, and believing it a duty to place no obstacle in the way of the signature and ratification of the Treaty of Peace with Germany, I felt that there was no course for me as a representative of the United States other than to obey the President's orders however strong my personal inclination might be to refuse to follow a line of action which seemed to me wrong in principle and unwise in policy.

I think, however, that our reasons for avoiding a public break in our official relations were different. The President clearly believed that such an event would jeopardize the acceptance of the Covenant by the United States Senate, given the hostility that had already developed along with the obvious personal animosity directed at him. For me, the main reason for keeping the situation steady was my firm belief that stepping back from the American Commission would significantly delay the restoration of peace, possibly affecting the signing of the Treaty in Paris and definitely its ratification in Washington. Since the opportunity to change Mr. Wilson's views on any fundamental issue had passed, and I felt it was my duty not to obstruct the signing and ratification of the Treaty of Peace with Germany, I believed there was no choice for me as a representative of the United States but to follow the President's orders, no matter how much I personally wanted to refuse a course of action that I thought was wrong in principle and unwise in policy.

In view of the subsequent contest between the President and the opposition Senators over the Treaty of Versailles, resulting in its non-ratification and the consequent delay in the restoration of a state of peace between the United States and Germany, my failure at Paris to decline to follow the President may be open to criticism, if not to censure. But it can hardly be considered just to pass judgment on my conduct by what occurred after the signature of the Treaty unless what would occur was a foregone conclusion, and at that time it was not even suggested that the Treaty would fail of ratification. The decision had to be made under the conditions and expectations which then prevailed. Unquestionably there was on June 28, 1919, a common belief that the President would compose his differences with a sufficient number of the Republican Senators to obtain the necessary consent of two thirds of the Senate to the ratification of the Treaty, and that the delay in senatorial action would be brief. I personally believed that that would be the result, although Mr. Wilson's experience in Washington in February and the rigid attitude, which he then assumed, might have been a warning as to the future. Seeing the situation as I did, no man would have been willing to imperil immediate ratification by resigning as Commissioner on the ground that he was opposed to the President's policies. A return to peace was at stake, and peace was the supreme need of the world, the universal appeal of all peoples. I could not conscientiously assume the responsibility of placing any obstacle in the way of a return to peace at the earliest possible moment. It would have been to do the very thing which I condemned in the President when he prevented an early signing of the peace by insisting on the acceptance of the Covenant of the League of Nations as a condition precedent. Whatever the consequence of my action would have been, whether it resulted in delay or in defeat of ratification, I should have felt guilty of having prevented an immediate peace which from the first seemed to me vitally important to all nations. Personal feelings and even personal beliefs were insufficient to excuse such action.

Considering the later conflict between the President and the opposing Senators regarding the Treaty of Versailles, which led to its non-ratification and delayed the restoration of peace between the United States and Germany, my failure in Paris to refuse to support the President may be subject to criticism, if not outright blame. However, it's hardly fair to judge my actions based on what happened after the Treaty was signed unless it was already clear that ratification would fail, which at that time was not even hinted at. The decision had to be made based on the conditions and expectations that existed then. Undoubtedly, on June 28, 1919, there was a widespread belief that the President would resolve his differences with enough Republican Senators to secure the two-thirds consent of the Senate needed for ratification, and that any delay in Senate action would be short. I personally believed this would be the outcome, although Mr. Wilson's previous experiences in Washington in February and his firm stance at that time could have served as a warning for what was to come. Given my perspective, no one would have been willing to jeopardize immediate ratification by resigning as Commissioner simply because they disagreed with the President's policies. A return to peace was at stake, and peace was the urgent need of the world, a universal desire among all people. I could not in good conscience take on the responsibility of creating any obstacles to achieving peace as soon as possible. That would have been the exact behavior I criticized in the President when he delayed the early signing of the peace by insisting on the acceptance of the Covenant of the League of Nations as a prerequisite. Regardless of what the results of my actions might have been, whether they caused further delays or led to ratification's failure, I would have felt guilty for preventing an immediate peace that I believed was crucial for all nations from the very beginning. Personal feelings and even personal beliefs were not enough to justify such actions.

CHAPTER XVI

LACK OF AN AMERICAN PROGRAMME

Having reviewed the radical differences between the President and myself in regard to the League of Nations and the inclusion of the Covenant in the Treaty of Peace with Germany, it is necessary to revert to the early days of the negotiations at Paris in order to explain the divergence of our views as to the necessity of a definite programme for the American Commission to direct it in its work and to guide its members in their intercourse with the delegates of other countries.

Having looked at the significant differences between the President and me regarding the League of Nations and the inclusion of the Covenant in the Treaty of Peace with Germany, it's important to go back to the early days of the negotiations in Paris to explain why we have different views on the need for a clear plan for the American Commission to steer its work and help its members interact with delegates from other countries.

If the President had a programme, other than the general principles and the few territorial settlements included in his Fourteen Points, and the generalities contained in his "subsequent addresses," he did not show a copy of the programme to the Commissioners or advise them of its contents. The natural conclusion was that he had never worked out in detail the application of his announced principles or put into concrete form the specific settlements which he had declared ought to be in the terms of peace. The definition of the principles, the interpretation of the policies, and the detailing of the provisions regarding territorial settlements were not apparently attempted by Mr. Wilson. They were in large measure left uncertain by the phrases in which they were delivered. Without authoritative explanation, interpretation, or application to actual facts they formed incomplete and inadequate instructions to Commissioners who were authorized "to negotiate peace."

If the President had a plan beyond the general ideas and the few territorial agreements mentioned in his Fourteen Points, as well as the broad statements in his "subsequent addresses," he didn't share a copy of that plan with the Commissioners or inform them about its details. The natural conclusion was that he had never fully developed the application of his stated principles or clearly defined the specific agreements that he said should be included in the peace terms. Mr. Wilson apparently did not attempt to define the principles, interpret the policies, or detail the provisions related to territorial settlements. Much of it remained uncertain because of the vague language he used. Without clear explanations, interpretations, or real-world applications, these principles provided incomplete and inadequate instructions to the Commissioners who were authorized "to negotiate peace."

An examination of the familiar Fourteen Points uttered by the President in his address of January 8, 1918, will indicate the character of the declarations, which may be, by reason of their thought and expression, termed "Wilsonian" (Appendix IV, p. 314). The first five Points are announcements of principle which should govern the peace negotiations. The succeeding eight Points refer to territorial adjustments, but make no attempt to define actual boundaries, so essential in conducting negotiations regarding territory. The Fourteenth Point relates to the formation of "a general association of the nations for the purpose of affording mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity to great and small nations alike."

An analysis of the well-known Fourteen Points stated by the President in his speech on January 8, 1918, shows the nature of these declarations, which can be called "Wilsonian" due to their ideas and wording (Appendix IV, p. 314). The first five Points are statements of principles that should guide the peace talks. The next eight Points discuss territorial changes but don’t specify actual borders, which are crucial for negotiating territory. The Fourteenth Point discusses the creation of "a general association of nations to provide mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity for both big and small nations."

It is hardly worth while to say that the Fourteen Points and the four principles declared in the address of February 11, 1918 (Appendix V), do not constitute a sufficient programme for negotiators. Manifestly they are too indefinite in specific application. They were never intended for that purpose when they were proclaimed. They might have formed a general basis for the preparation of instructions for peace commissioners, but they omitted too many of the essentials to be considered actual instructions, while the lack of definite terms to-be included in a treaty further deprived them of that character. Such important and practical subjects as reparations, financial arrangements, the use and control of waterways, and other questions of a like nature, are not even mentioned. As a general statement of the bases of peace the Fourteen Points and subsequent declarations probably served a useful purpose, though some critics would deny it, but as a working programme for the negotiation of a treaty they were inadequate, if not wholly useless.

It's not even worth saying that the Fourteen Points and the four principles outlined in the address from February 11, 1918 (Appendix V) don't provide a sufficient program for negotiators. Clearly, they are too vague in their specific application. They were never meant for that purpose when they were announced. They could have served as a general foundation for preparing instructions for peace commissioners, but they left out too many essentials to be considered actual instructions, while the absence of specific terms to be included in a treaty further took away that quality. Critical and practical topics such as reparations, financial arrangements, the use and control of waterways, and other similar issues aren't even mentioned. As a general statement of the principles of peace, the Fourteen Points and later declarations probably served some purpose, though some critics might dispute this, but as a practical program for negotiating a treaty, they were inadequate, if not entirely useless.

Believing in the autumn of 1918 that the end of the war was approaching and assuming that the American plenipotentiaries to the Peace Conference would have to be furnished with detailed written instructions as to the terms of the treaty to be signed, I prepared on September 21, 1918, a memorandum of my views as to the territorial settlements which would form, not instructions, but a guide in the drafting of instructions for the American Commissioners. At the time I had no intimation that the President purposed to be present in person at the peace table and had not even thought of such a possibility. The memorandum, which follows, was written with the sole purpose of being ready to draft definite instructions which could be submitted to the President when the time came to prepare for the negotiation of the peace. The memorandum follows:

Believing in the fall of 1918 that the end of the war was near and assuming that the American representatives at the Peace Conference would need detailed written instructions regarding the terms of the treaty to be signed, I prepared on September 21, 1918, a memo outlining my views on the territorial settlements. This would serve not as instructions, but as a guide for drafting the instructions for the American Commissioners. At that time, I had no idea that the President planned to attend the peace negotiations in person and hadn't even considered such a possibility. The memo that follows was written solely to be ready to create specific instructions to present to the President when it was time to prepare for the peace negotiations. The memo follows:

"The present Russian situation, which is unspeakably horrible and which seems beyond present hope of betterment, presents new problems to be solved at the peace table.

"The current situation in Russia is incredibly dire and seems hopeless for improvement, presenting new challenges to be addressed at the peace talks."

"The Pan-Germans now have in shattered and impotent Russia the opportunity to develop an alternative or supplemental scheme to their 'Mittel-Europa' project. German domination over Southern Russia would offer as advantageous, if not a more advantageous, route to the Persian Gulf than through the turbulent Balkans and unreliable Turkey. If both routes, north and south of the Black Sea, could be controlled, the Pan-Germans would have gained more than they dreamed of obtaining. I believe, however, that Bulgaria fears the Germans and will be disposed to resist German domination possibly to the extent of making a separate peace with the Allies. Nevertheless, if the Germans could obtain the route north of the Black Sea, they would with reason consider the war a successful venture because it would give them the opportunity to rebuild the imperial power and to carry out the Prussian ambition of world-mastery.

The Pan-Germans now see a chance in the weakened and powerless Russia to come up with an alternative or additional plan to their 'Mittel-Europa' project. German control over Southern Russia would provide a route to the Persian Gulf that could be as beneficial, if not more so, than going through the unstable Balkans and unreliable Turkey. If they could control both routes, north and south of the Black Sea, the Pan-Germans would achieve more than they ever hoped for. However, I believe Bulgaria is wary of the Germans and might resist their domination, potentially even considering a separate peace with the Allies. Nonetheless, if the Germans could secure the route north of the Black Sea, they would justifiably view the war as a success because it would allow them to restore their imperial power and pursue the Prussian goal of global domination.

"The treaty of peace must not leave Germany in possession directly or indirectly of either of these routes to the Orient. There must be territorial barriers erected to prevent that Empire from ever being able by political or economic penetration to become dominant in those regions.

"The peace treaty must not allow Germany to have control, directly or indirectly, over either of these routes to the East. There must be territorial barriers put in place to stop that Empire from ever being able to gain dominance in those areas through political or economic influence."

"With this in view I would state the essentials for a stable peace as follows, though I do so in the most tentative way because conditions may change materially. These 'essentials' relate to territory and waters, and do not deal with military protection.

"With this in mind, I would outline the key factors for a stable peace as follows, though I do so in a very tentative manner because conditions may change significantly. These 'key factors' pertain to territory and water, and do not address military protection."

"First. The complete abrogation or denouncement of the Brest-Litovsk Treaty and all treaties relating in any way to Russian territory or commerce; and also the same action as to the Treaty of Bucharest. This applies to all treaties made by the German Empire or Germany's allies.

"First. The total cancellation or rejection of the Brest-Litovsk Treaty and all treaties related to Russian territory or trade; the same goes for the Treaty of Bucharest. This applies to all treaties created by the German Empire or Germany's allies."

"Second. The Baltic Provinces of Lithuania, Latvia, and Esthonia should be autonomous states of a Russian Confederation.

"Second. The Baltic Provinces of Lithuania, Latvia, and Estonia should be autonomous states within a Russian Confederation."

"Third. Finland raises a different question and it should be carefully considered whether it should not be an independent state.

"Third. Finland brings up a different question, and we should carefully consider whether it should be an independent state."

"Fourth. An independent Poland, composed of Polish provinces of Russia, Prussia, and Austria, and in possession of the port of Danzig.

Fourth. An independent Poland, made up of Polish territories from Russia, Prussia, and Austria, with control of the port of Danzig.

"Fifth. An independent state, either single or federal composed of Bohemia, Slovakia, and Moravia (and possibly a portion of Silesia) and possessing an international right of way by land or water to a free port.

"Fifth. An independent state, either a single entity or a federation made up of Bohemia, Slovakia, and Moravia (and maybe part of Silesia) that has the right to an international route by land or water to a free port."

"Sixth. The Ukraine to be a state of the Russian Confederation, to which should be annexed that portion of the Austro-Hungarian Empire in which the Ruthenians predominate.

"Sixth. Ukraine will be a state within the Russian Confederation, and the part of the Austro-Hungarian Empire where the Ruthenians are the majority should be added to it."

"Seventh. Roumania, in addition to her former territory, should ultimately be given sovereignty over Bessarabia, Transylvania, and the upper portion of the Dobrudja, leaving the central mouth of the Danube as the boundary of Bulgaria, or else the northern half. (As to the boundary there is doubt.)

"Seventh. Romania, along with its previous territory, should eventually have control over Bessarabia, Transylvania, and the northern part of Dobrudja, leaving the central part of the Danube as the border with Bulgaria, or possibly the northern half. (There is some uncertainty regarding the boundary.)"

"Eighth. The territories in which the Jugo-Slavs predominate, namely Croatia, Slavonia, Dalmatia, Bosnia, and Herzegovina, should be united with Serbia and Montenegro forming a single or a federal state. The sovereignty over Trieste or some other port should be later settled in drawing a boundary line between the new state and Italy. My present view is that there should be a good Jugo-Slav port.

"Eighth. The areas where the Jugo-Slavs are the majority, including Croatia, Slavonia, Dalmatia, Bosnia, and Herzegovina, should be combined with Serbia and Montenegro to create either a single or a federal state. The control over Trieste or another port should be addressed later when determining the border between the new state and Italy. Right now, I believe there should be an adequate Jugo-Slav port."

"Ninth. Hungary should be separated from Austria and possess rights of free navigation of the Danube.

"Ninth. Hungary should be independent from Austria and have the right to navigate the Danube freely."

"Tenth. Restoration to Italy of all the Italian provinces of Austria. Italy's territory to extend along the northern Adriatic shore to the Jugo-Slav boundary. Certain ports on the eastern side of the Adriatic should be considered as possible naval bases of Italy. (This last is doubtful.)

"Tenth. Return to Italy of all the Italian provinces of Austria. Italy's territory will stretch along the northern Adriatic coast to the Jugo-Slav border. Certain ports on the eastern side of the Adriatic should be viewed as potential naval bases for Italy. (This last point is uncertain.)"

"Eleventh. Reduction of Austria to the ancient boundaries and title of the Archduchy of Austria. Incorporation of Archduchy in the Imperial German Confederation. Austrian outlet to the sea would be like that of Baden and Saxony through German ports on the North Sea and the Baltic.

Eleventh. Bring Austria back to its historical borders and title of the Archduchy of Austria. Include the Archduchy in the Imperial German Confederation. Austria's access to the sea would be similar to that of Baden and Saxony, using German ports on the North Sea and the Baltic.

"Twelfth. The boundaries of Bulgaria, Serbia, and Greece to follow in general those established after the First Balkan War, though Bulgaria should surrender to Greece more of the Aegean coast and obtain the southern half only of the Dobrudja (or else as far as the Danube) and the Turkish territory up to the district surrounding Constantinople, to be subsequently decided upon.

"Twelfth. The borders of Bulgaria, Serbia, and Greece will generally follow those set after the First Balkan War, although Bulgaria will give up more of its Aegean coast to Greece and will only receive the southern half of Dobrudja (or extending up to the Danube) and the Turkish territory up to the area around Constantinople, which will be determined later."

"Thirteenth. Albania to be under Italian or Serbian sovereignty or incorporated in the Jugo-Slav Confederation.

"Thirteenth. Albania will be under Italian or Serbian control or included in the Jugo-Slav Confederation."

"Fourteenth. Greece to obtain more of the Aegean littoral at the expense of Bulgaria, the Greek-inhabited islands adjacent to Asia Minor and possibly certain ports and adjoining territory in Asia Minor.

Fourteenth. Greece aims to acquire more of the Aegean coastline at the expense of Bulgaria, the Greek-populated islands near Asia Minor, and possibly some ports and nearby land in Asia Minor.

"Fifteenth. The Ottoman Empire to be reduced to Anatolia and have no possessions in Europe. (This requires consideration.)

Fifteenth. The Ottoman Empire will be limited to Anatolia and will not have any territories in Europe. (This needs to be taken into account.)

"Sixteenth. Constantinople to be erected into an international protectorate surrounded by a land zone to allow for expansion of population. The form of government to be determined upon by an international commission or by one Government acting as the mandatory of the Powers. The commission or mandatory to have the regulation and control of the navigation of the Dardanelles and Bosphorus as international waterways.

"Sixteenth. Constantinople will be established as an international protectorate, encircled by a land zone to enable population growth. The type of government will be decided by an international commission or by one government acting as the representative of the Powers. The commission or representative will have authority over the regulation and control of navigation in the Dardanelles and Bosphorus as international waterways."

"Seventeenth. Armenia and Syria to be erected into protectorates of such Government or Governments as seems expedient from a domestic as well as an international point of view; the guaranty being that both countries will be given self-government as soon as possible and that an 'Open-Door' policy as to commerce and industrial development will be rigidly observed.

Seventeenth. Armenia and Syria will be established as protectorates under whatever Government or Governments seem appropriate from both a domestic and international perspective; the guarantee being that both countries will receive self-government as soon as possible and that an 'Open-Door' policy regarding commerce and industrial development will be strictly upheld.

"Eighteenth. Palestine to be an autonomous state under a general international protectorate or under the protectorate of a Power designated to act as the mandatory of the Powers.

Eighteenth. Palestine will be an independent state under a general international protectorate or under the protection of a country chosen to act as the representative of the Powers.

"Nineteenth. Arabia to receive careful consideration as to the full or partial sovereignty of the state or states established.

"Nineteenth. Arabia should be given careful thought regarding the complete or partial sovereignty of the state or states that are established."

"Twentieth. Great Britain to have the sovereignty of Egypt, or a full protectorate over it.

"Twentieth. Great Britain to have the authority over Egypt, or a complete protectorate over it."

"Twenty-first. Persia to be freed from all treaties establishing spheres of influence. Rigid application of the 'Open-Door' policy in regard to commercial and industrial development.

"Twenty-first. Persia will be freed from all treaties that create spheres of influence. A strict enforcement of the 'Open-Door' policy will be applied to commercial and industrial development."

"Twenty-second. All Alsace-Lorraine to be restored to France without conditions.

"Twenty-second. All of Alsace-Lorraine will be returned to France unconditionally."

"Twenty-third. Belgium to be restored to full sovereignty.

"Twenty-third. Belgium will be restored to full sovereignty."

"Twenty-fourth. A consideration of the union of Luxemburg to Belgium. (This is open to question.)

Twenty-fourth. A discussion about the union of Luxembourg with Belgium. (This is debatable.)

"Twenty-fifth. The Kiel Canal to be internationalized and an international zone twenty miles from the Canal on either side to be erected which should be, with the Canal, under the control and regulation of Denmark as the mandatory of the Powers. (This last is doubtful.)

"Twenty-fifth. The Kiel Canal will be internationalized, and an international zone of twenty miles will be established on either side of the Canal. This area, along with the Canal, will be under the control and regulation of Denmark as the representative of the Powers. (This last part is uncertain.)"

   "Twenty-sixth. All land north of the Kiel Canal Zone to be ceded to
   Denmark.

"Twenty-sixth. All land north of the Kiel Canal Zone will be given to
Denmark.

   "Twenty-seventh. The fortifications of the Kiel Canal and of
   Heligoland to be dismantled. Heligoland to be ceded to Denmark.

"Twenty-seventh. The fortifications of the Kiel Canal and of
Heligoland are to be dismantled. Heligoland will be ceded to Denmark.

   "Twenty-eighth. The sovereignty of the archipelago of Spitzbergen
   to be granted to Norway.

"Twenty-eighth. The sovereignty of the archipelago of Spitzbergen
will be granted to Norway.

"Twenty-ninth. The disposition of the colonial possessions formerly belonging to Germany to be determined by an international commission having in mind the interests of the inhabitants and the possibility of employing these colonies as a means of indemnification for wrongs done. The 'Open-Door' policy should be guaranteed.

"Twenty-ninth. The allocation of the former German colonial territories will be decided by an international commission that considers the interests of the residents and the potential use of these colonies as a way to make up for past wrongs. The 'Open-Door' policy should be ensured."

"While the foregoing definitive statement as to territory contains my views at the present time (September 21, 1918), I feel that no proposition should be considered unalterable, as further study and conditions which have not been disclosed may materially change some of them.

"While the above definitive statement about territory reflects my views at this moment (September 21, 1918), I believe that no proposal should be seen as unchangeable, as further research and undisclosed conditions may significantly alter some of them."

"Three things must constantly be kept in mind, the natural stability of race, language, and nationality, the necessity of every nation having an outlet to the sea so that it may maintain its own merchant marine, and the imperative need of rendering Germany impotent as a military power."

"Three things must always be considered: the inherent stability of race, language, and nationality; the importance of every nation having access to the sea so it can support its own merchant fleet; and the urgent need to make Germany unable to act as a military power."

Later I realized that another factor should be given as important a place in the terms of peace as any of the three, namely, the economic interdependence of adjoining areas and the mutual industrial benefit to their inhabitants by close political affiliation. This factor in the territorial settlements made more and more impression upon me as it was disclosed by a detailed study of the numerous problems which the Peace Conference had to solve.

Later, I realized that another important factor should be considered as significant in the terms of peace as any of the three, specifically, the economic interdependence of neighboring areas and the mutual industrial benefits to their residents through close political ties. This factor in the territorial settlements increasingly struck me as I studied the many issues the Peace Conference had to address.

I made other memoranda on various subjects relating to the general peace for the purpose of crystallizing my ideas, so that I could lay them in concrete form before the President when the time came to draft instructions for the American plenipotentiaries charged with the negotiation of the Treaty of Peace. When the President reached the decision to attend the Conference and to direct in person the negotiations, it became evident that, in place of the instructions customarily issued to negotiators, a more practical and proper form of defining the objects to be sought by the United States would be an outline of a treaty setting forth in detail the features of the peace, or else a memorandum containing definite declarations of policy in regard to the numerous problems presented. Unless there was some framework of this sort on which to build, it would manifestly be very embarrassing for the American Commissioners in their intercourse with their foreign colleagues, as they would be unable to discuss authoritatively or even informally the questions at issue or express opinions upon them without the danger of unwittingly opposing the President's wishes or of contradicting the views which might be expressed by some other of their associates on the American Commission. A definite plan seemed essential if the Americans were to take any part in the personal exchanges of views which are so usual during the progress of negotiations.

I took notes on various topics related to the general peace to clarify my thoughts, so I could present them clearly to the President when it was time to draft instructions for the American representatives in charge of negotiating the Treaty of Peace. When the President decided to attend the Conference and personally lead the negotiations, it became clear that, instead of the usual instructions given to negotiators, a more practical approach would be to create an outline of a treaty that detailed the peace terms, or a memo that included specific policy statements regarding the many issues at hand. Without a framework like this, it would undoubtedly be awkward for the American Commissioners in their discussions with foreign colleagues, as they wouldn’t be able to talk about the issues officially or even informally, or share opinions without risking going against the President’s wishes or contradicting the views of other members of the American Commission. A solid plan seemed crucial if the Americans were to engage in the frequent personal exchanges of views that typically happen during negotiations.

Prior to the departure of the American delegation from the United States and for two weeks after their arrival in Paris, it was expected that the President would submit to the Commissioners for their guidance a projet of a treaty or a very complete programme as to policies. Nothing, however, was done, and in the conferences which took place between the President and his American associates he confined his remarks almost exclusively to the League of Nations and to his plan for its organization. It was evident—at least that was the natural inference—that President Wilson was without a programme of any sort or even of a list of subjects suitable as an outline for the preparation of a programme. How he purposed to conduct the negotiations no one seemed to know. It was all very uncertain and unsatisfactory.

Before the American delegation left the United States and for two weeks after they arrived in Paris, it was expected that the President would present a draft of a treaty or a detailed program outlining policies to guide the Commissioners. However, nothing was provided, and during the meetings between the President and his American colleagues, he focused almost entirely on the League of Nations and his plan for its organization. It was clear—at least that was the natural conclusion—that President Wilson did not have any program or even a list of topics suitable for preparing a program. No one seemed to know how he planned to conduct the negotiations. It was all very unclear and disappointing.

In the circumstances, which seemed to be due to the President's failure to appreciate the necessity for a definite programme, I felt that something ought to be done, as the probable result would be that the terms of the Treaty, other than the provisions regarding a League of Nations, would be drafted by foreign delegates and not by the President.

In the situation, which appeared to stem from the President not realizing the need for a clear plan, I believed that action was needed, as the likely outcome would be that the terms of the Treaty, aside from the parts about a League of Nations, would be written by foreign delegates instead of the President.

Impressed by the unsatisfactory state of affairs and desirous of remedying it if possible, I asked Dr. James Brown Scott and Mr. David Hunter Miller, the legal advisers of the American Commission, to prepare a skeleton treaty covering the subjects to be dealt with in the negotiations which could be used in working out a complete programme. After several conferences with these advisers concerning the subjects to be included and their arrangement in the Treaty, the work was sufficiently advanced to lay before the Commissioners. Copies were, therefore, furnished to them with the request that they give the document consideration in order that they might make criticisms and suggest changes. I had not sent a copy to the President, intending to await the views of my colleagues before doing so, but during the conference of January 10, to which I have been compelled reluctantly to refer in discussing the Covenant of the League of Nations, I mentioned the fact that our legal advisers had been for some time at work on a "skeleton treaty" and had made a tentative draft. The President at once showed his displeasure and resented the action taken, evidently considering the request that a draft be prepared to be a usurpation of his authority to direct the activities of the Commission. It was this incident which called forth his remark, to which reference was made in Chapter VIII, that he did not propose to have lawyers drafting the Treaty.

Feeling frustrated by the unsatisfactory situation and wanting to fix it if possible, I asked Dr. James Brown Scott and Mr. David Hunter Miller, the legal advisers for the American Commission, to draft a basic treaty that covered the topics to be discussed in the negotiations, which could then be used to develop a complete plan. After several meetings with these advisers about what topics should be included and how to organize them in the Treaty, the work was advanced enough to present to the Commissioners. Copies were provided to them with the request that they review the document so they could offer feedback and suggest changes. I hadn't sent a copy to the President yet, as I planned to wait for my colleagues' opinions before doing so, but during the January 10 conference, which I have reluctantly referenced while discussing the Covenant of the League of Nations, I mentioned that our legal advisers had been working on a "skeleton treaty" and had created a preliminary draft. The President immediately expressed his displeasure and took offense at what he saw as an overreach, clearly viewing the request for a draft to be an infringement on his authority to guide the Commission's activities. This incident prompted his comment, referenced in Chapter VIII, that he did not intend to have lawyers drafting the Treaty.

In view of Mr. Wilson's attitude it was useless for Dr. Scott and Mr. Miller to proceed with their outline of a treaty or for the Commissioners to give consideration to the tentative draft already made. It was a disagreeable situation. If the President had had anything, however crude and imperfect it might have been, to submit in place of the Scott-Miller draft, it would have been a different matter and removed to an extent the grounds for complaint at his attitude. But he offered nothing at all as a substitute. It is fair to assume that he had no programme prepared and was unwilling to have any one else make a tentative one for his consideration. It left the American Commission without a chart marking out the course which they were to pursue in the negotiations and apparently without a pilot who knew the channel.

Given Mr. Wilson's attitude, it was pointless for Dr. Scott and Mr. Miller to continue with their treaty outline or for the Commissioners to consider the tentative draft that was already created. It was an uncomfortable situation. If the President had something, no matter how rough or incomplete it might have been, to propose instead of the Scott-Miller draft, it would have changed things and somewhat eased the reasons for criticism of his stance. But he provided no substitute at all. It’s reasonable to assume that he had no plan ready and was reluctant to let anyone else create a preliminary one for him to consider. This left the American Commission without any guidance on how to navigate the negotiations and seemingly without a leader who understood the course.

Six days after the enforced abandonment of the plan to prepare a skeleton treaty as a foundation for a definite and detailed programme, I made the following note which expresses my views on the situation at that time:

Six days after we had to abandon the plan to create a skeleton treaty as a base for a definite and detailed program, I wrote the following note to share my thoughts on the situation at that time:

"January 16, 1919

January 16, 1919

"No plan of work has been prepared. Unless something is done we will be here for many weeks, possibly for months. After the President's remarks the other day about a draft-treaty no one except the President would think of preparing a plan. He must do it himself, and he is not doing it. He has not even given us a list of subjects to be considered and of course has made no division of our labors.

"No work plan has been created. If we don’t take action, we could be here for weeks, maybe even months. After the President's comments the other day about a draft treaty, no one but the President would think about putting together a plan. He needs to handle it himself, and he isn't doing that. He hasn’t even provided us with a list of topics to consider, and obviously hasn’t organized our tasks."

"If the President does not take up this matter of organization and systematically apportion the subjects between us, we may possibly have no peace before June. This would be preposterous because with proper order and division of questions we ought to have a treaty signed by April first.

"If the President doesn’t address this issue of organization and clearly assign the topics among us, we might not have any peace before June. That would be ridiculous because, with proper structure and division of questions, we should have a treaty signed by April first."

"I feel as if we, the Commissioners, were like a lot of skilled workmen who are ordered to build a house. We have the materials and tools, but there are no plans and specifications and no master-workman in charge of the construction. We putter around in an aimless sort of way and get nowhere.

"I feel like we, the Commissioners, are a group of skilled workers told to build a house. We have the materials and tools, but there are no plans or specifications and no foreman overseeing the construction. We mess around without direction and accomplish nothing."

"With all his natural capacity the President seems to lack the faculty of employing team-work and of adopting a system to utilize the brains of other men. It is a decided defect in an executive. He would not make a good head of a governmental department. The result is, so far as our Commission is concerned, a state of confusion and uncertainty with a definite loss and delay through effort being undirected."

"Despite his natural abilities, the President seems to struggle with teamwork and using the skills of others effectively. This is a significant flaw in a leader. He wouldn't make a good head of a government department. As a result, our Commission is facing confusion and uncertainty, leading to clear losses and delays due to lack of direction."

On several occasions I spoke to the President about a programme for the work of the Commission and its corps of experts, but he seemed indisposed to consider the subject and gave the impression that he intended to call on the experts for his own information which would be all that was necessary. I knew that Colonel House, through Dr. Mezes, the head of the organization, was directing the preparation of certain data, but whether he was doing so under the President's directions I did not know, though I presumed such was the case. Whatever data were furnished did not, however, pass through the hands of the other Commissioners who met every morning in my office to exchange information and discuss matters pertaining to the negotiations and to direct the routine work of the Commission.

On several occasions, I talked to the President about a program for the Commission's work and its team of experts, but he seemed reluctant to consider the topic and gave the impression that he planned to consult the experts solely for his own information, which he thought would be sufficient. I was aware that Colonel House, through Dr. Mezes, the head of the organization, was managing the preparation of certain data, but I didn't know if he was doing this under the President's instructions, although I assumed that was the case. However, the data provided did not go through the other Commissioners, who gathered every morning in my office to share information and discuss issues related to the negotiations and to oversee the Commission's routine work.

It is difficult, even with the entire record of the proceedings at Paris before one, to find a satisfactory explanation for the President's objection to having a definite programme other than the general declarations contained in the Fourteen Points and his "subsequent addresses." It may be that he was unwilling to bind himself to a fixed programme, since it would restrict him, to an extent, in his freedom of action and prevent him from assuming any position which seemed to him expedient at the time when a question arose during the negotiations. It may be that he did not wish to commit himself in any way to the contents of a treaty until the Covenant of the League of Nations had been accepted. It may be that he preferred not to let the American Commissioners know his views, as they would then be in a position to take an active part in the informal discussions which he apparently wished to handle alone. None of these explanations is at all satisfactory, and yet any one of them may be the true one.

It's tough, even with the full record of the proceedings in Paris in front of us, to find a solid reason for the President's reluctance to establish a clear program beyond the general statements in the Fourteen Points and his "subsequent addresses." He might have been hesitant to commit to a fixed plan because it would limit his freedom to act and prevent him from taking any positions that seemed necessary during the negotiations. He could have also wanted to avoid tying himself to specific treaty details until the Covenant of the League of Nations was approved. Additionally, he may have chosen not to share his opinions with the American Commissioners, as that would enable them to engage more in the informal discussions that he likely preferred to manage on his own. None of these explanations are entirely satisfying, yet any one of them could be the real reason.

Whatever was the chief reason for the President's failure to furnish a working plan to the American Commissioners, he knowingly adopted the policy and clung to it with the tenacity of purpose which has been one of the qualities of mind that account for his great successes and for his great failures. I use the adverb "knowingly" because it had been made clear to him that, in the judgment of others, the Commissioners ought to have the guidance furnished by a draft-treaty or by a definite statement of policies no matter how tentative or subject to change the draft or statement might be.

Whatever the main reason for the President's failure to provide a workable plan to the American Commissioners, he consciously chose to stick to that policy with a determination that has been a hallmark of his mindset, contributing to both his significant successes and his major failures. I use the word "consciously" because it was clear to him that others believed the Commissioners should have guidance from a draft treaty or a clear statement of policies, regardless of how provisional or subject to change the draft or statement might be.

On the day that the President left Paris to return to the United States (February 14, 1919) I asked him if he had any instructions for the Commissioners during his absence concerning the settlements which should be included in the preliminary treaty of peace, as it was understood that the Council of Ten would continue its sessions for the consideration of the subjects requiring investigation and decision. The President replied that he had no instructions, that the decisions could wait until he returned, though the hearings could proceed and reports could be made during his absence. Astonished as I was at this wish to delay these matters, I suggested to him the subjects which I thought ought to go into the Treaty. He answered that he did not care to discuss them at that time, which, as he was about to depart from Paris, meant that everything must rest until he had returned from his visit to Washington.

On the day the President left Paris to go back to the United States (February 14, 1919), I asked him if he had any instructions for the Commissioners during his absence regarding the settlements to be included in the preliminary peace treaty, since it was understood that the Council of Ten would keep meeting to discuss the subjects that needed investigation and decisions. The President replied that he had no instructions, that the decisions could wait until he got back, although the hearings could continue and reports could be made while he was away. I was shocked by this desire to postpone these matters, so I suggested some topics that I thought should be included in the Treaty. He said he didn’t want to discuss them at that moment, which, since he was about to leave Paris, meant that everything would have to wait until he returned from his trip to Washington.

Since I was the head of the American Commission when the President was absent and became the spokesman for the United States on the Council of Ten, this refusal to disclose his views even in a general way placed me in a very awkward position. Without instructions and without knowledge of the President's wishes or purposes the conduct of the negotiations was difficult and progress toward actual settlements practically impossible. As a matter of fact the Council did accomplish a great amount of work, while the President was away, in the collection of data and preparing questions for final settlement. But so far as deciding questions was concerned, which ought to have been the principal duty of the Council of Ten, it simply "marked time," as I had no power to decide or even to express an authoritative opinion on any subject. It showed very clearly that the President intended to do everything himself and to allow no one to act for him unless it was upon some highly technical matter. All actual decisions in regard to the terms of peace which involved policy were thus forced to await his time and pleasure.

Since I was leading the American Commission while the President was away and had to represent the United States on the Council of Ten, his refusal to share his views, even in a vague way, put me in a really tough spot. Without any guidance or understanding of the President's wishes or goals, managing the negotiations was tricky, and making progress toward actual agreements was basically impossible. In reality, the Council did manage to get a lot done while the President was gone, such as collecting data and preparing questions for the final settlement. But when it came to making decisions, which should have been the main responsibility of the Council of Ten, it essentially just "stood still," since I had no authority to decide or even share an official opinion on any issue. It was clear that the President wanted to handle everything himself and would only let someone act on his behalf for very technical matters. Therefore, all real decisions about the peace terms that involved policy had to wait for him to choose the right time to address them.

Even after Mr. Wilson returned to Paris and resumed his place as head of the American delegation he was apparently without a programme. On March 20, six days after his return, I made a note that "the President, so far as I can judge, has yet no definite programme," and that I was unable to "find that he has talked over a plan of a treaty even with Colonel House." It is needless to quote the thoughts, which I recorded at the time, in regard to the method in which the President was handling a great international negotiation, a method as unusual as it was unwise. I referred to Colonel House's lack of information concerning the President's purposes because he was then and had been from the beginning on more intimate terms with the President than any other American. If he did not know the President's mind, it was safe to assume that no one knew it.

Even after Mr. Wilson returned to Paris and took his place as the head of the American delegation, he seemed to have no clear plan. On March 20, six days after his return, I noted that "the President, as far as I can tell, has no definite program yet," and I couldn't find any indication that he had even discussed a treaty plan with Colonel House. There's no need to repeat my thoughts, recorded at the time, about how the President was managing a significant international negotiation—his approach was both unusual and unwise. I mentioned Colonel House's lack of insight into the President's intentions, as he had been closer to the President than anyone else in the U.S. If he was unaware of the President's thoughts, it was safe to assume that no one else was either.

I had, as has been stated, expressed to Mr. Wilson my views as to what the procedure should be and had obtained no action. With the responsibility resting on him for the conduct and success of the negotiations and with his constitutional authority to exercise his own judgment in regard to every matter pertaining to the treaty, there was nothing further to be done in relieving the situation of the American Commissioners from embarrassment or in inducing the President to adopt a better course than the haphazard one that he was pursuing.

I had, as mentioned, shared my thoughts with Mr. Wilson about what the process should be and hadn’t received any action. With the responsibility for managing and succeeding in the negotiations on him, and with his legitimate authority to use his own judgment on all treaty-related matters, there was nothing more I could do to help the American Commissioners avoid embarrassment or persuade the President to choose a more effective approach than the random one he was currently following.

It is apparent that we differed radically as to the necessity for a clearly defined programme and equally so as to the advantages to be gained by having a draft-treaty made or a full statement prepared embodying the provisions to be sought by the United States in the negotiations. I did not attempt to hide my disapproval of the vagueness and uncertainty of the President's method, and there is no doubt in my own mind that Mr. Wilson was fully cognizant of my opinion. How far this lack of system in the work of the Commission and the failure to provide a plan for a treaty affected the results written into the Treaty of Versailles is speculative, but my belief is that they impaired in many particulars the character of the settlements by frequent abandonment of principle for the sake of expediency.

It's clear that we had very different views on the need for a well-defined plan and the benefits of creating a draft treaty or a comprehensive statement outlining what the United States wanted in the negotiations. I didn't try to hide my disapproval of the President's vague and uncertain approach, and I'm certain that Mr. Wilson was fully aware of how I felt. It's uncertain how much this lack of organization in the Commission's work and the failure to outline a treaty impacted the outcomes written into the Treaty of Versailles, but I believe they weakened the settlements by often sacrificing principle for convenience.

The want of a programme or even of an unwritten plan as to the negotiations was further evidenced by the fact that the President, certainly as late as March 19, had not made up his mind whether the treaty which was being negotiated should be preliminary or final. He had up to that time the peculiar idea that a preliminary treaty was in the nature of a modus vivendi which could be entered into independently by the Executive and which would restore peace without going through the formalities of senatorial consent to ratification.

The lack of a clear plan or even an informal strategy for the negotiations was further shown by the fact that the President, as late as March 19, hadn't decided whether the treaty being negotiated should be preliminary or final. Until that time, he held the unusual belief that a preliminary treaty was like a modus vivendi that the Executive could agree to on its own, which could bring peace without needing the formal approval of the Senate for ratification.

The purpose of Mr. Wilson, so far as one could judge, was to include in a preliminary treaty of the sort that he intended to negotiate, the entire Covenant of the League of Nations and other principal settlements, binding the signatories to repeat these provisions in the final and definitive treaty when that was later negotiated. By this method peace would be at once restored, the United States and other nations associated with it in the war would be obligated to renew diplomatic and consular relations with Germany, and commercial intercourse would follow as a matter of course. All this was to be done without going through the American constitutional process of obtaining the advice and consent of the Senate to the Covenant and to the principal settlements. The intent seemed to be to respond to the popular demand for an immediate peace and at the same time to checkmate the opponents of the Covenant in the Senate by having the League of Nations organized and functioning before the definitive treaty was laid before that body.

Mr. Wilson's goal, as far as one could tell, was to include the entire Covenant of the League of Nations and other main agreements in a preliminary treaty that he planned to negotiate. This would require the signatories to incorporate these provisions into the final, definitive treaty when it was negotiated later. By doing this, peace would be restored immediately, and the United States along with other nations involved in the war would have to resume diplomatic and consular relations with Germany, naturally leading to commercial exchanges. All of this was to occur without going through the American constitutional process of getting the Senate's advice and consent on the Covenant and the main agreements. The aim appeared to be to meet the public's demand for immediate peace while also outmaneuvering the Covenant's opponents in the Senate by ensuring the League of Nations was established and operational before the definitive treaty was presented to that body.

When the President advanced this extraordinary theory of the nature of a preliminary treaty during a conversation, of which I made a full memorandum, I told him that it was entirely wrong, that by whatever name the document was called, whether it was "armistice," "agreement," "protocol," or "modus," it would be a treaty and would have to be sent by him to the Senate for its approval. I said, "If we change the status from war to peace, it has to be by a ratified treaty. There is no other way save by a joint resolution of Congress." At this statement the President was evidently much perturbed. He did not accept it as conclusive, for he asked me to obtain the opinion of others on the subject. He was evidently loath to abandon the plan that he had presumably worked out as a means of preventing the Senate from rejecting or modifying the Covenant before it came into actual operation. It seems almost needless to say that all the legal experts, among them Thomas W. Gregory, the retiring Attorney-General of the United States, who chanced to be in Paris at the time, agreed with my opinion, and upon being so informed the President abandoned his purpose.

When the President shared his unusual theory about what a preliminary treaty is during our conversation, which I documented thoroughly, I told him it was completely incorrect. I explained that no matter what name the document went by—whether it was "armistice," "agreement," "protocol," or "modus"—it would still be a treaty, and he would need to send it to the Senate for approval. I said, "If we change the status from war to peace, it has to be through a ratified treaty. There’s no other way except by a joint resolution of Congress." This clearly upset the President. He didn’t take it as final since he asked me to get the opinion of others on the matter. He seemed reluctant to give up the plan he had presumably created to stop the Senate from rejecting or altering the Covenant before it was officially in place. It’s almost unnecessary to mention that all the legal experts, including Thomas W. Gregory, the outgoing Attorney General of the United States, who happened to be in Paris at the time, agreed with my viewpoint. After hearing this, the President dropped his plan.

It is probable that the conviction, which was forced upon Mr. Wilson, that he could not independently of the Senate put into operation a preliminary treaty, determined him to abandon that type of treaty and to proceed with the negotiation of a definitive one. At least I had by March 30 reached the conclusion that there would be no preliminary treaty as is disclosed by the following memorandum written on that day:

It’s likely that Mr. Wilson’s belief that he couldn’t implement a preliminary treaty without the Senate pushed him to give up on that type of treaty and move forward with negotiating a final one. By March 30, I had already come to the conclusion that there would be no preliminary treaty, as shown in the following memorandum written that day:

"I am sure now that there will be no preliminary treaty of peace, but that the treaty will be complete and definitive. This is a serious mistake. Time should be given for passions to cool. The operations of a preliminary treaty should be tested and studied. It would hasten a restoration of peace. Certainly this is the wise course as to territorial settlements and the financial and economic burdens to be imposed upon Germany. The same comment applies to the organization of a League of Nations. Unfortunately the President insists on a full-blown Covenant and not a declaration of principles. This has much to do with preventing a preliminary treaty, since he wishes to make the League an agent for enforcement of definite terms.

"I'm now convinced that there won't be any preliminary peace treaty, and that the treaty will be final and complete. This is a serious error. We need to allow time for tempers to settle. The processes of a preliminary treaty should be evaluated and analyzed. It would speed up the return to peace. Clearly, this is the smarter approach regarding territorial agreements and the financial and economic responsibilities that will be placed on Germany. The same applies to forming a League of Nations. Unfortunately, the President insists on a comprehensive Covenant instead of just a statement of principles. This significantly impacts the lack of a preliminary treaty, as he wants the League to act as an enforcement body for specific terms."

"When the President departed for the United States in February, I assumed and I am certain that he had in mind that there would be a preliminary treaty. With that in view I drafted at the time a memorandum setting forth what the preliminary treaty of peace should contain. Here are the subjects I then set down:

"When the President left for the United States in February, I assumed—and I'm sure he thought—the same: there would be a preliminary treaty. With that in mind, I drafted a memorandum outlining what the preliminary peace treaty should include. Here are the topics I noted down:"

"1. Restoration of Peace and official relations.

"1. Restoration of Peace and official relations."

"2. Restoration of commercial and financial relations subject to conditions.

"2. Restoration of business and financial relations subject to conditions."

   "3. Renunciation by Germany of all territory and territorial rights
   outside of Europe.

"3. Germany gives up all territory and territorial rights
outside of Europe.

   "4. Minimum territory of Germany in Europe, the boundaries to be
   fixed in the Definitive Treaty.

"4. The minimum territory of Germany in Europe, with the boundaries to be
determined in the Definitive Treaty.

   "5. Maximum military and naval establishments and production of arms
   and munitions.

"5. Maximum military and naval forces and production of weapons
and munitions.

   "6. Maximum amount of money and property to be surrendered by Germany
   with time limits for payment and delivery.

"6. Maximum amount of money and property Germany has to give up
   with deadlines for payment and delivery.

   "7. German property and territory to be held as security by the
   Allies until the Definitive Treaty is ratified.

"7. German property and territory will be held as security by the
Allies until the Definitive Treaty is ratified.

"8. Declaration as to the organization of a League of Nations.

"8. Statement regarding the formation of a League of Nations."

"The President's obsession as to a League of Nations blinds him to everything else. An immediate peace is nothing to him compared to the adoption of the Covenant. The whole world wants peace. The President wants his League. I think that the world will have to wait."

"The President's fixation on a League of Nations keeps him from seeing anything else. To him, immediate peace means nothing compared to getting the Covenant approved. The entire world wants peace. The President wants his League. I believe the world will just have to wait."

The eight subjects, above stated, were the ones which I called to the
President's attention at the time he was leaving Paris for the United
States and which he said he did not care to discuss.

The eight subjects mentioned above were the ones I brought to the
President's attention when he was leaving Paris for the United
States, and he said he didn't want to talk about them.

The views that are expressed in the memorandum of March 30 are those that I have continued to hold. The President was anxious to have the Treaty, even though preliminary in character, contain detailed rather than general provisions, especially as to the League of Nations. With that view I entirely disagreed, as detailed terms of settlement and the articles of the Covenant as proposed would cause discussion and unquestionably delay the peace. To restore the peaceful intercourse between the belligerents, to open the long-closed channels of commerce, and to give to the war-stricken peoples of Europe opportunity to resume their normal industrial life seemed to me the first and greatest task to be accomplished. It was in my judgment superior to every other object of the Paris negotiations. Compared with it the creation of a League of Nations was insignificant and could well be postponed. President Wilson thought otherwise. We were very far apart in this matter as he well knew, and he rightly assumed that I followed his instructions with reluctance, and, he might have added, with grave concern.

The views expressed in the memorandum from March 30 are the same ones I've consistently held. The President was eager for the Treaty, even in its preliminary form, to include detailed provisions rather than broad ones, especially regarding the League of Nations. I completely disagreed with that perspective, as detailed terms for settlement and the proposed articles of the Covenant would lead to discussion and undoubtedly delay the peace. Restoring peaceful relations between the warring parties, reopening the long-closed trade routes, and giving the war-torn peoples of Europe a chance to return to their normal industrial lives seemed to me the top priority. I believed it was more important than any other goal of the Paris negotiations. In comparison, the establishment of a League of Nations seemed trivial and could easily be postponed. President Wilson felt differently. He knew we were very far apart on this issue, and he rightly assumed that I was following his instructions with reluctance and, he might have added, serious concern.

As a matter of interest in this connection and as a possible source from which the President may have acquired knowledge of my views as to the conduct of the negotiations, I would call attention again to the conference which I had with Colonel House on December 17, 1918, and to which I have referred in connection with the subject of international arbitration. During that conference I said to the Colonel "that I thought that there ought to be a preliminary treaty of peace negotiated without delay, and that all the details as to a League of Nations, boundaries, and indemnities should wait for the time being. The Colonel replied that he was not so sure about delaying the creation of a League, as he was afraid that it never could be put through unless it was done at once. I told him that possibly he was right, but that I was opposed to anything which delayed the peace." This quotation is from my memorandum made at the time of our conversation. I think that the same reason for insisting on negotiating the Covenant largely influenced the course of the President. My impression at the time was that the Colonel favored a preliminary treaty provided that there was included in it the full plan for a League of Nations, which to me seemed to be impracticable.

As a point of interest in this context and as a possible source from which the President might have learned about my views on the negotiations, I want to highlight again the meeting I had with Colonel House on December 17, 1918, which I mentioned in relation to the topic of international arbitration. During that meeting, I told the Colonel that I believed we should negotiate a preliminary peace treaty without delay and that all the details regarding a League of Nations, borders, and reparations should be put on hold for the time being. The Colonel responded that he wasn't so sure about postponing the creation of a League, as he worried it might never happen unless we acted quickly. I told him that he might be right, but that I was against anything that delayed peace. This quote is from my notes taken during our conversation. I believe that the same reasoning for pushing to negotiate the Covenant significantly shaped the President's actions. My impression at the time was that the Colonel supported a preliminary treaty as long as it included the complete plan for a League of Nations, which seemed impractical to me.

There can be little doubt that, if there had been a settled programme prepared or a tentative treaty drafted, there would have been a preliminary treaty which might and probably would have postponed the negotiations as to a League. Possibly the President realized that this danger of excluding the Covenant existed and for that reason was unwilling to make a definite programme or to let a draft-treaty be drawn. At least it may have added another reason for his proceeding without advising the Commissioners of his purposes.

There’s little doubt that if there had been a fixed plan in place or a draft treaty prepared, there would have been a preliminary treaty that could have delayed the discussions about a League. It's possible the President understood that this risk of leaving out the Covenant was there, and that’s why he hesitated to create a clear plan or allow a draft treaty to be written. At the very least, this may have been another reason for him to move forward without informing the Commissioners of his intentions.

As I review the entire negotiations and the incidents which took place at Paris, President Wilson's inherent dislike to depart in the least from an announced course, a characteristic already referred to, seems to me to have been the most potent influence in determining his method of work during the Peace Conference. He seemed to think that, having marked out a definite plan of action, any deviation from it would show intellectual weakness or vacillation of purpose. Even when there could be no doubt that in view of changed conditions it was wise to change a policy, which he had openly adopted or approved, he clung to it with peculiar tenacity refusing or merely failing to modify it. Mr. Wilson's mind once made up seemed to become inflexible. It appeared to grow impervious to arguments and even to facts. It lacked the elasticity and receptivity which have always been characteristic of sound judgment and right thinking. He might break, but he would not bend. This rigidity of mind accounts in large measure for the deplorable, and, as it seemed to me, needless, conflict between the President and the Senate over the Treaty of Versailles. It accounts for other incidents in his career which have materially weakened his influence and cast doubts on his wisdom. It also accounts, in my opinion, for the President's failure to prepare or to adopt a programme at Paris or to commit himself to a draft of a treaty as a basis for the negotiations, which failure, I am convinced, not only prevented the signature of a short preliminary treaty of peace, but lost Mr. Wilson the leadership in the proceedings, as the statesmen of the other Great Powers outlined the Treaty negotiated and suggested the majority of the articles which were written into it. It would have made a vast difference if the President had known definitely what he sought, but he apparently did not. He dealt in generalities leaving, but not committing, to others their definition and application. He was always in the position of being able to repudiate the interpretation which others might place upon his declarations of principle.

As I review the negotiations and events that happened in Paris, President Wilson's strong reluctance to stray from a set course—a trait I've mentioned before—seems to have been the biggest factor influencing his approach during the Peace Conference. He believed that once he outlined a clear plan of action, any departure from it would reveal intellectual weakness or uncertainty. Even when it was clear that, given the changed circumstances, it was wise to revise a policy he had publicly supported, he stubbornly held onto it. Once Mr. Wilson made up his mind, it seemed to become rigid. It appeared to shut out arguments and even facts. It lacked the flexibility and openness that are essential for good judgment and sound reasoning. He might break, but he wouldn't bend. This rigid mindset largely explains the unfortunate, and what I believe to be unnecessary, conflict between the President and the Senate over the Treaty of Versailles. It also explains other events in his career that have significantly undermined his influence and raised doubts about his judgment. In my view, it also accounts for the President's failure to prepare or adopt a clear plan in Paris or to commit to a draft treaty as a basis for negotiations. I believe this failure not only prevented the signing of a short preliminary peace treaty but also caused Mr. Wilson to lose his leadership role in the discussions, as the leaders of the other Great Powers shaped the negotiated treaty and proposed most of the articles included in it. It would have made a significant difference if the President had clearly known what he wanted, but he apparently did not. He spoke in general terms, leaving others to define and apply those terms without committing to any specific interpretation. He always maintained the ability to reject the interpretations that others might place on his declarations of principle.

CHAPTER XVII

SECRET DIPLOMACY

Another matter, concerning which the President and I disagreed, was the secrecy with which the negotiations were carried on between him and the principal European statesmen, incidental to which was the willingness, if not the desire, to prevent the proceedings and decisions from becoming known even to the delegates of the smaller nations which were represented at the Peace Conference.

Another issue that the President and I disagreed on was the secrecy surrounding the negotiations between him and the main European leaders. This included a willingness, if not a desire, to keep the proceedings and decisions hidden even from the delegates of the smaller countries represented at the Peace Conference.

Confidential personal interviews were to a certain extent unavoidable and necessary, but to conduct the entire negotiation through a small group sitting behind closed doors and to shroud their proceedings with mystery and uncertainty made a very unfortunate impression on those who were not members of the secret councils.

Confidential personal interviews were somewhat unavoidable and necessary, but handling the entire negotiation with a small group sitting behind closed doors and keeping their discussions shrouded in mystery and uncertainty left a very negative impression on those who weren’t part of the secret councils.

At the first there was no Council of the Heads of States (the so-called Council of Four); in fact it was not recognized as an organized body until the latter part of March, 1919. Prior to that time the directing body of the Conference was the self-constituted Council of Ten composed of the President and the British, French, and Italian Premiers with their Secretaries or Ministers of Foreign Affairs, and two Japanese delegates of ambassadorial rank. This Council had a membership identical with that of the Supreme War Council, which controlled the armistices, their enforcement, and other military matters. It assumed authority over the negotiations and proceedings of the Conference, though it was never authorized so to do by the body of delegates. The Council of Four, when later formed, was equally without a mandate from the Conference. They assumed the authority and exercised it as a matter of right.

At first, there was no Council of the Heads of States (the so-called Council of Four); it actually wasn't recognized as an organized group until the end of March 1919. Before that, the main governing body of the Conference was the self-appointed Council of Ten, which included the President and the British, French, and Italian Prime Ministers along with their Secretaries or Foreign Ministers, and two Japanese delegates of ambassadorial level. This Council had the same membership as the Supreme War Council, which oversaw the armistices, their enforcement, and other military issues. It took control over the negotiations and activities of the Conference, even though it never had permission to do so from the group of delegates. When the Council of Four was eventually formed, it also had no official authorization from the Conference. They took on this authority and acted as if they had the right to do so.

From the time of his arrival in Paris President Wilson held almost daily conversations with the leading foreign statesmen. It would be of little value to speculate on what took place at these interviews, since the President seldom told the American Commission of the meetings or disclosed to them, unless possibly to Colonel House, the subjects which were discussed. My conviction is, from the little information which the President volunteered, that these consultations were—certainly at first—devoted to inducing the European leaders to give their support to his plan for a League of Nations, and that, as other matters relating to the terms of peace were in a measure involved because of their possible relation to the functions of the League, they too became more and more subjects of discussion.

From the time he arrived in Paris, President Wilson held almost daily conversations with leading foreign statesmen. It’s not very useful to guess what happened during these meetings, since the President rarely told the American Commission about them or revealed the topics discussed, unless it was to Colonel House. From the little information that the President shared, I believe that these talks—especially at the beginning—focused on persuading the European leaders to support his plan for a League of Nations. As other issues related to the peace terms were somewhat connected to the League’s functions, those also became increasingly important topics of discussion.

The introduction of this personal and clandestine method of negotiation was probably due to the President's belief that he could in this way exercise more effectively his personal influence in favor of the acceptance of a League. It is not unlikely that this belief was in a measure justified. In Colonel House he found one to aid him in this course of procedure, as the Colonel's intimate association with the principal statesmen of the Allied Powers during previous visits to Europe as the President's personal envoy was an asset which he could utilize as an intermediary between the President and those with whom he wished to confer. Mr. Wilson relied upon Colonel House for his knowledge of the views and temperaments of the men with whom he had to deal. It was not strange that he should adopt a method which the Colonel had found successful in the past and that he should seek the latter's aid and advice in connection with the secret conferences which usually took place at the residence of the President.

The introduction of this personal and confidential negotiation method likely stemmed from the President's belief that he could more effectively use his personal influence to promote the acceptance of a League. It’s quite possible that this belief was somewhat justified. In Colonel House, he found someone to help him with this approach, as the Colonel's close relationships with key statesmen of the Allied Powers from previous visits to Europe as the President's personal envoy were valuable for acting as a middleman between the President and those he wanted to talk to. Mr. Wilson depended on Colonel House for his understanding of the views and personalities of the men he needed to engage with. It made sense that he would choose a method that the Colonel had found successful in the past and seek the Colonel's assistance and advice for the secret meetings that typically occurred at the President’s residence.

Mr. Wilson pursued this method of handling the subjects of negotiation the more readily because he was by nature and by inclination secretive. He had always shown a preference for a private interview with an individual. In his conduct of the executive affairs of the Government at Washington he avoided as far as possible general conferences. He talked a good deal about "taking common counsel," but showed no disposition to put it into practice. He followed the same course in the matter of foreign affairs. At Paris this characteristic, which had often been the subject of remark in Washington, was more pronounced, or at least more noticeable. He was not disposed to discuss matters with the American Commission as a whole or even to announce to them his decisions unless something arose which compelled him to do so. He easily fell into the practice of seeing men separately and of keeping secret the knowledge acquired as well as the effect of this knowledge on his views and purposes. To him this was the normal and most satisfactory method of doing business.

Mr. Wilson preferred to handle negotiation topics this way because he was naturally secretive. He always liked having private meetings with individuals. When managing the government affairs in Washington, he tried to avoid large group meetings as much as possible. He often talked about "taking common counsel," but he didn't actually make an effort to do it. He maintained the same approach with foreign affairs. In Paris, this trait, which had frequently been noted in Washington, became even more noticeable. He wasn't inclined to discuss matters with the entire American Commission or even inform them of his decisions unless it was absolutely necessary. He easily slipped into the habit of meeting people individually and keeping what he learned, along with how it affected his views and plans, a secret. For him, this was the standard and most effective way of conducting business.

From the time that the President arrived in Paris up to the time that the Commission on the League of Nations made its report—that is, from December 14, 1918, to February 14, 1919—the negotiations regarding the League were conducted with great secrecy. Colonel House, the President's collaborator in drafting the Covenant, if he was not, as many believed, the real author, was the only American with whom Mr. Wilson freely conferred and to whom he confided the progress that he was making in his interviews with the foreign statesmen, at many of which interviews the Colonel was present. It is true that the President held an occasional conference with all the American Commissioners, but these conferences were casual and perfunctory in nature and were very evidently not for the purpose of obtaining the opinions and counsel of the Commissioners. There was none of the frankness that should have existed between the Chief Executive and his chosen agents and advisers. The impression made was that he summoned the conferences to satisfy the amour propre of the Commissioners rather than out of any personal wish to do so.

From the time the President arrived in Paris until the Commission on the League of Nations submitted its report—that is, from December 14, 1918, to February 14, 1919—negotiations about the League were kept very secret. Colonel House, the President's partner in drafting the Covenant, if he wasn't, as many believed, the real author, was the only American with whom Mr. Wilson openly discussed and shared the progress he was making in his talks with foreign leaders, many of which the Colonel attended. It's true that the President occasionally met with all the American Commissioners, but these meetings were casual and superficial, clearly not meant to gather the opinions and advice of the Commissioners. There was none of the openness that should exist between the Chief Executive and his selected agents and advisors. The impression given was that he called the meetings to satisfy the Commissioners' egos rather than out of any genuine desire to engage with them.

The consequence was that the American Commissioners, other than Colonel House, were kept in almost complete ignorance of the preliminary negotiations and were left to gather such information as they were able from the delegates of other Powers, who, naturally assuming that the Americans possessed the full confidence of the President, spoke with much freedom. As Mr. Wilson never held a conference with the American Commission from the first meeting of the Commission on the League of Nations until its report was printed, his American colleagues did not know, except indirectly, of the questions at issue or of the progress that was being made. The fact is that, as the Commission on the League met in Colonel House's office at the Hôtel Crillon, his office force knew far more about the proceedings than did the three American Commissioners who were not present. As the House organization made no effort to hide the fact that they had inside information, the representatives of the press as a consequence frequented the office of the Colonel in search of the latest news concerning the Commission on the League of Nations.

The result was that the American Commissioners, except for Colonel House, were mostly kept in the dark about the initial negotiations and had to rely on information from delegates of other countries. These delegates, assuming that the Americans had the President's full trust, spoke freely. Since Mr. Wilson never met with the American Commission from its first gathering on the League of Nations until its report was published, his American colleagues only learned about the issues and the progress being made indirectly. In fact, as the Commission on the League met in Colonel House's office at the Hôtel Crillon, his staff knew much more about what was going on than the three American Commissioners who weren’t there. Because House's team did not try to hide the fact that they had insider knowledge, reporters often visited Colonel House's office looking for the latest updates about the Commission on the League of Nations.

But, in addition to the embarrassment caused the American Commissioners and the unenviable position in which they were placed by the secrecy with which the President surrounded his intercourse with the foreign statesmen and the proceedings of the Commission on the League of Nations, his secret negotiations caused the majority of the delegates to the Conference and the public at large to lose in a large measure their confidence in the actuality of his devotion to "open diplomacy," which he had so unconditionally proclaimed in the first of his Fourteen Points. If the policy of secrecy had ceased with the discussions preliminary to the organization of the Conference, or even with those preceding the meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations, criticism and complaint would doubtless have ceased, but as the negotiations progressed the secrecy of the conferences of the leaders increased rather than decreased, culminating at last in the organization of the Council of Four, the most powerful and most seclusive of the councils which directed the proceedings at Paris. Behind closed doors these four individuals, who controlled the policies of the United States, Great Britain, France, and Italy, passed final judgment on the mass of articles which entered into the Treaties of Peace, but kept their decisions secret except from the committee which was drafting the articles.

But, besides the embarrassment it caused the American Commissioners and the tough situation they were in because of the secrecy surrounding the President's interactions with foreign leaders and the Commission on the League of Nations, his secretive talks led most delegates at the Conference and the public to significantly lose trust in his supposed commitment to "open diplomacy," which he had firmly stated in the first of his Fourteen Points. If the secretive approach had ended with the early discussions to organize the Conference, or even with those before the meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations, criticism and complaints would likely have stopped. However, as the negotiations went on, the secrecy of the leaders' meetings only grew, ultimately resulting in the formation of the Council of Four, the most powerful and secretive council managing the proceedings in Paris. Behind closed doors, these four people, who held the power to shape the policies of the United States, Great Britain, France, and Italy, made final decisions on the many articles that constituted the Treaties of Peace, but kept their choices confidential except from the committee drafting the articles.

The organization of the Council of Four and the mystery which enveloped its deliberations emphasized as nothing else could have done the secretiveness with which adjustments were being made and compromises were being effected. It directed attention also to the fact that the Four Great Powers had taken supreme control of settling the terms of peace, that they were primates among the assembled nations and that they intended to have their authority acknowledged. This extraordinary secrecy and arrogation of power by the Council of Four excited astonishment and complaint throughout the body of delegates to the Conference, and caused widespread criticism in the press and among the people of many countries.

The organization of the Council of Four and the mystery surrounding its discussions highlighted the secretive nature of the adjustments and compromises being made. It also drew attention to the fact that the Four Great Powers had taken full control over setting the terms of peace, asserting their dominance among the assembled nations and insisting on their authority being recognized. This extreme secrecy and power grab by the Council of Four sparked surprise and complaints among the delegates at the Conference and led to widespread criticism in the media and among the public in many countries.

A week after the Council of Ten was divided into the Council of the Heads of States, the official title of the Council of Four, and the Council of Foreign Ministers, the official title of the Council of Five (popularly nick-named "The Big Four" and "The Little Five"), I made the following note on the subject of secret negotiations:

A week after the Council of Ten was split into the Council of Heads of States, known as the Council of Four, and the Council of Foreign Ministers, referred to as the Council of Five (commonly called "The Big Four" and "The Little Five"), I made the following note about secret negotiations:

"After the experience of the last three months [January-March, 1919] I am convinced that the method of personal interviews and private conclaves is a failure. It has given every opportunity for intrigue, plotting, bargaining, and combining. The President, as I now see it, should have insisted on everything being brought before the Plenary Conference. He would then have had the confidence and support of all the smaller nations because they would have looked up to him as their champion and guide. They would have followed him.

"After the experience of the last three months [January-March, 1919] I’m convinced that relying on personal interviews and private meetings isn't working. It has created plenty of room for intrigue, plotting, bargaining, and alliances. The President, in my opinion, should have insisted that everything be presented at the Plenary Conference. He would then have earned the trust and backing of all the smaller nations, who would have seen him as their champion and guide. They would have rallied around him."

"The result of the present method has been to destroy their faith and arouse their resentment. They look upon the President as in favor of a world ruled by Five Great Powers, an international despotism of the strong, in which the little nations are merely rubber-stamps.

"The outcome of this approach has been to undermine their trust and provoke their anger. They see the President as supporting a world dominated by Five Great Powers, an international tyranny of the strong, where smaller nations are just rubber stamps."

"The President has undoubtedly found himself in a most difficult position. He has put himself on a level with politicians experienced in intrigue, whom he will find a pretty difficult lot. He will sink in the estimation of the delegates who are not within the inner circle, and what will be still more disastrous will be the loss of confidence among the peoples of the nations represented here. A grievous blunder has been made."

"The President has definitely found himself in a tough situation. He's placed himself on the same level as seasoned politicians who are skilled in intrigue, and he's going to find them quite challenging to deal with. His standing will drop in the eyes of the delegates who aren't in the inner circle, and what will be even worse is the loss of trust among the people of the nations represented here. A serious mistake has been made."

The views, which I expressed in this note in regard to the unwisdom of the President's course, were not new at the time that I wrote them. Over two months before I had watched the practice of secret negotiation with apprehension as to what the effect would be upon the President's influence and standing with the delegates to the Conference. I then believed that he was taking a dangerous course which he would in the end regret. So strong was this conviction that during a meeting, which the President held with the American Commissioners on the evening of January 29, I told him bluntly—perhaps too bluntly from the point of view of policy—that I considered the secret interviews which he was holding with the European statesmen, where no witnesses were present, were unwise, that he was far more successful in accomplishment and less liable to be misunderstood if he confined his negotiating to the Council of Ten, and that, furthermore, acting through the Council he would be much less subject to public criticism. I supported these views with the statement that the general secrecy, which was being practiced, was making a very bad impression everywhere, and for that reason, if for no other, I was opposed to it. The silence with which the President received my remarks appeared to me significant of his attitude toward this advice, and his subsequent continuance of secret methods without change, unless it was to increase the secrecy, proved that our judgments were not in accord on the subject. The only result of my representations, it would seem, was to cause Mr. Wilson to realize that I was not in sympathy with his way of conducting the negotiations. In the circumstances I think now that it was a blunder on my part to have stated my views so frankly.

The opinions I shared in this note about the President's actions were not new when I wrote them. Over two months earlier, I had been watching the practice of secret negotiations with concern, worried about how it would affect the President's influence and standing with the delegates at the Conference. At that time, I believed he was on a risky path that he would ultimately regret. My conviction was so strong that during a meeting the President had with the American Commissioners on the evening of January 29, I told him directly—perhaps too directly for the sake of diplomacy—that I thought the secret meetings he was having with European leaders, without any witnesses present, were unwise. I believed he would be more effective and less likely to be misunderstood if he limited his negotiations to the Council of Ten. Additionally, I argued that using the Council would make him less vulnerable to public criticism. I backed up these views by stating that the overall secrecy was creating a negative impression everywhere, which was a key reason for my opposition to it. The way the President received my comments was, to me, a clear indication of his stance on my advice, and his continued use of secret methods—if anything becoming even more secretive—showed that we didn’t agree on this matter. The only outcome of what I said seemed to be that Mr. Wilson recognized I did not support his approach to the negotiations. In hindsight, I believe it was a mistake for me to express my views so openly.

Two days after I wrote the note, which is quoted (April 2, 1919), I made another note more general in character, but in which appears the following:

Two days after I wrote the note, which is quoted (April 2, 1919), I made another note that was more general in nature, but in which the following appears:

"Everywhere there are developing bitterness and resentment against a secretiveness which is interpreted to mean failure. The patience of the people is worn threadbare. Their temper has grown ragged. They are sick of whispering diplomats.

"Everywhere, there's growing bitterness and resentment towards a secrecy that's seen as failure. The people's patience is completely worn out. Their tempers have frayed. They’re tired of sneaky diplomats."

"Muttered confidences, secret intrigues, and the tactics of the 'gum-shoer' are discredited. The world wants none of them these days. It despises and loathes them. What the world asks are honest declarations openly proclaimed. The statesman who seeks to gain his end by tortuous and underground ways is foolish or badly advised. The public man who is sly and secretive rather than frank and bold, whose methods are devious rather than obvious, pursues a dangerous path which leads neither to glory nor to success.

Muttered secrets, hidden plots, and the tricks of private investigators are out of style. The world no longer wants anything to do with them. It looks down on and hates them. What people want are honest statements made openly. A politician who tries to achieve his goals through complicated and sneaky means is foolish or poorly advised. A public figure who is sneaky and secretive instead of straightforward and confident, whose methods are underhanded rather than clear, is taking a risky route that won't lead to fame or success.

"Secret diplomacy, the bane of the past, is a menace from which man believed himself to be rid. He who resurrects it invites condemnation. The whole world will rejoice when the day of the whisperer is over."

"Secret diplomacy, the curse of the past, is a danger that people thought they had escaped. Those who bring it back are asking for criticism. The entire world will celebrate when the time of the whisperer comes to an end."

This note, read at the present time, sounds extravagant in thought and intemperate in expression. It was written under the influence of emotions which had been deeply stirred by the conditions then existing. Time usually softens one's judgments and the passage of events makes less vivid one's impressions. The perspective, however, grows clearer and the proportions more accurate when the observer stands at a distance. While the language of the note might well be changed and made less florid, the thought needs little modification. The public criticism was widespread and outspoken, and from the expressions used it was very evident that there prevailed a general popular disapproval of the way the negotiations were being conducted. The Council of Four won the press-name of "The Olympians," and much was said of "the thick cloud of mystery" which hid them from the anxious multitudes, and of the secrecy which veiled their deliberations. The newspapers and the correspondents at Paris openly complained and the delegates to the Conference in a more guarded way showed their bitterness at the overlordship assumed by the leading statesmen of the Great Powers and the secretive methods which they employed. It was, as may be gathered from the note quoted, a distressing and depressing time.

This note, read today, sounds over-the-top in thought and excessive in expression. It was written under the influence of feelings that were deeply stirred by the situation at the time. Time usually softens judgment, and the passage of events makes impressions less vivid. However, the perspective becomes clearer and proportions more accurate when the observer stands at a distance. While the language of the note could be toned down and made less flowery, the main ideas need little adjustment. Public criticism was widespread and vocal, and from the language used, it was clear that there was general popular disapproval of how the negotiations were being handled. The Council of Four earned the nickname "The Olympians," and there was much talk about "the thick cloud of mystery" surrounding them, as well as the secrecy that shrouded their discussions. Newspapers and reporters in Paris openly complained, and the delegates at the Conference, in a more cautious manner, expressed their frustration at the dominance assumed by the leading statesmen of the Great Powers and the secretive methods they used. It was, as can be gathered from the quoted note, a troubling and discouraging time.

As concrete examples of the evils of secret negotiations the "Fiume Affair" and the "Shantung Settlement" are the best known because of the storm of criticism and protest which they caused. As the Shantung Settlement was one of the chief matters of difference between the President and myself, it will be treated later. The case of Fiume is different. As to the merits of the question I was very much in accord with the President, but to the bungling way in which it was handled I was strongly opposed believing that secret interviews, at which false hopes were encouraged, were at the bottom of all the trouble which later developed. But for this secrecy I firmly believe that there would have been no "Fiume Affair."

As clear examples of the problems caused by secret negotiations, the "Fiume Affair" and the "Shantung Settlement" are the most notable due to the intense criticism and protests they generated. Since the Shantung Settlement was one of the main disagreements between the President and me, I will discuss it later. The situation with Fiume is different. While I largely agreed with the President on the merits of the issue, I strongly opposed the clumsy way it was handled, believing that secret meetings, which fostered false hopes, were at the core of the issues that arose later. I firmly believe that if it weren't for this secrecy, there would have been no "Fiume Affair."

The discussion of the Italian claims to territory along the northern boundary of the Kingdom and about the head of the Adriatic Sea began as soon as the American Commission was installed at Paris, about the middle of December, 1918. The endeavor of the Italian emissaries was to induce the Americans, particularly the President, to recognize the boundary laid down in the Pact of London. That agreement, which Italy had required Great Britain and France to accept in April, 1915, before she consented to declare war against the Austro-Hungarian Empire, committed the Entente Powers to the recognition of Italy's right to certain territorial acquisitions at the expense of Austria-Hungary in the event of the defeat of the Central Empires. By the boundary line agreed upon in the Pact, Italy would obtain certain important islands and ports on the Dalmatian coast in addition to the Austrian Tyrol and the Italian provinces of the Dual Monarchy at the head of the Adriatic.

The conversation about Italy's claims to territory along the northern border of the Kingdom and around the head of the Adriatic Sea started as soon as the American Commission was set up in Paris, around mid-December 1918. The goal of the Italian representatives was to persuade the Americans, especially the President, to acknowledge the boundary outlined in the Pact of London. This agreement, which Italy had insisted Great Britain and France accept in April 1915 before she agreed to declare war on the Austro-Hungarian Empire, committed the Allied Powers to recognizing Italy's right to certain territorial gains at Austria-Hungary's expense if the Central Powers were defeated. According to the boundary line established in the Pact, Italy would gain key islands and ports along the Dalmatian coast, as well as the Austrian Tyrol and the Italian provinces of the Dual Monarchy at the head of the Adriatic.

When this agreement was signed, the dissolution of Austria-Hungary was not in contemplation, or at least, if it was considered, the possibility of its accomplishment seemed very remote. It was assumed that the Dalmatian territory to be acquired under the treaty to be negotiated in accordance with the terms of the Pact would, with the return of the Italian provinces, give to Italy naval control over the Adriatic Sea and secure the harborless eastern coast of the Italian peninsula against future hostile attack by the Austro-Hungarian Empire. The boundary laid down in the agreement was essentially strategic and based primarily on considerations of Italian national safety. As long as the Empire existed as a Great Power the boundary of the Pact of London, so far as it related to the Adriatic littoral and islands, was not unreasonable or the territorial demands excessive.

When this agreement was signed, the breakup of Austria-Hungary wasn’t being considered, or at least, if it was, the chance of it happening seemed very unlikely. It was believed that the Dalmatian territory gained through the treaty negotiated under the terms of the Pact would, along with the return of the Italian provinces, give Italy control over the Adriatic Sea and protect the coast of the Italian peninsula from future attacks by the Austro-Hungarian Empire. The boundary set in the agreement was mainly strategic and focused on Italy's national safety. As long as the Empire remained a Great Power, the boundary of the Pact of London regarding the Adriatic coast and islands wasn’t unreasonable, nor were the territorial demands too excessive.

But the close of active warfare in the autumn of 1918, when the armistice went into effect, found conditions wholly different from those upon which these territorial demands had been predicated. The Austro-Hungarian Empire had fallen to pieces beyond the hope of becoming again one of the Great Powers. The various nationalities, which had long been restless and unhappy under the rule of the Hapsburgs, threw off the imperial yoke, proclaimed their independence, and sought the recognition and protection of the Allies. The Poles of the Empire joined their brethren of the Polish provinces of Russia and Prussia in the resurrection of their ancient nation; Bohemia, Moravia, and Slovakia united in forming the new state of Czecho-Slovakia; the southern Slavs of Croatia, Slavonia, Bosnia, Herzegovina, and Dalmatia announced their union with their kindred of the Kingdom of Serbia; and Hungary declared the severance of her political union with Austria. In a word the Dual Empire ceased to exist. It was no longer a menace to the national safety of Italy. This was the state of affairs when the delegates to the Peace Conference began to assemble at Paris.

But when the active fighting ended in the fall of 1918, with the armistice taking effect, the situation was completely different from what these territorial demands were based on. The Austro-Hungarian Empire had collapsed, losing any chance of becoming a major power again. The various nationalities, long restless and unhappy under Hapsburg rule, threw off the imperial control, declared their independence, and sought recognition and protection from the Allies. The Poles within the Empire joined their fellow Poles from the Russian and Prussian provinces to revive their ancient nation; Bohemia, Moravia, and Slovakia came together to create the new state of Czecho-Slovakia; the southern Slavs from Croatia, Slavonia, Bosnia, Herzegovina, and Dalmatia announced their union with their kin in the Kingdom of Serbia; and Hungary declared its separation from Austria. In short, the Dual Empire no longer existed. It was no longer a threat to Italy’s national safety. This was the situation when the delegates to the Peace Conference started gathering in Paris.

The Italian statesmen realized that these new conditions might raise serious questions as to certain territorial cessions which would come to Italy under the terms of the Pact of London, because their strategic necessity had disappeared with the dissolution of Austria-Hungary. While they had every reason to assume that Great Britain and France would live up to their agreement, it was hardly to be expected that under the changed conditions and in the circumstances attending the negotiation and signature of the Pact, the British and French statesmen would be disposed to protest against modifications of the proposed boundary if the United States and other nations, not parties to the agreement, should insist upon changes as a matter of justice to the new state of the Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes. It apparently was considered expedient, by the Italian representatives, in view of the situation which had developed, to increase rather than to reduce their claims along the Dalmatian coast in order that they might have something which could be surrendered in a compromise without giving up the boundaries laid down in the Pact of London.

The Italian leaders realized that these new circumstances could raise serious questions about certain territorial concessions that would come to Italy under the terms of the Pact of London, as their strategic importance had faded with the breakup of Austria-Hungary. While they had every reason to believe that Great Britain and France would honor their agreement, it was unlikely that, given the changed situation and the context of the negotiation and signing of the Pact, the British and French leaders would be inclined to object to changes in the proposed boundaries if the United States and other countries not involved in the agreement insisted on adjustments to ensure fairness for the new state of the Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes. It seemed that, given the evolving situation, the Italian representatives thought it would be better to increase rather than decrease their claims along the Dalmatian coast so they would have something to offer in a compromise without having to give up the boundaries established in the Pact of London.

It is probable, too, that these additional claims were advanced by Italy in order to offset in a measure the claims of the Jugo-Slavs, who through the Serbian delegates at Paris were making territorial demands which the Italians declared to be extravagant and which, if granted, would materially reduce the proposed cessions to Italy under the Pact of London. Furthermore, the Italian Government appeared to be by no means pleased with the idea of a Jugo-Slav state so strong that it might become a commercial, if not a naval, rival of Italy in the Adriatic. The Italian delegates in private interviews showed great bitterness toward the Slavs, who, they declared, had, as Austrian subjects, waged war against Italy and taken part in the cruel and wanton acts attendant upon the invasion of the northern Italian provinces. They asserted that it was unjust to permit these people, by merely changing their allegiance after defeat, to escape punishment for the outrages which they had committed against Italians and actually to profit by being vanquished. This antipathy to the Slavs of the former Empire was in a measure transferred to the Serbs, who were naturally sympathetic with their kinsmen and who were also ambitious to build up a strong Slav state with a large territory and with commercial facilities on the Adriatic coast which would be ample to meet the trade needs of the interior.

It's likely that Italy made these additional claims to counterbalance the demands of the Jugo-Slavs, who, through their Serbian delegates in Paris, were putting forward territorial requests that the Italians considered excessive. If these demands were met, they would significantly reduce the land Italy was supposed to gain under the Pact of London. Moreover, the Italian government didn't seem happy about the idea of a strong Jugo-Slav state that could become a commercial, if not naval, competitor for Italy in the Adriatic. In private discussions, the Italian delegates expressed strong resentment toward the Slavs, claiming that, as subjects of Austria, they had fought against Italy and participated in the brutal and senseless actions during the invasion of northern Italy. They argued that it was unfair to allow these individuals to avoid accountability for their wrongdoings against Italians simply by switching sides after their defeat, and to actually benefit from their loss. This hostility toward the Slavs from the former Empire extended somewhat to the Serbs, who naturally felt connected to their relatives and were also eager to establish a robust Slav state with extensive territory and sufficient commercial facilities along the Adriatic coast to meet the trade demands of the interior.

While there may have been a certain fear for the national safety of Italy in having as a neighbor a Slav state with a large and virile population, extensive resources, and opportunity to become a naval power in the Mediterranean, the real cause of apprehension seemed to be that the new nation would become a commercial rival of Italy in the Adriatic and prevent her from securing the exclusive control of the trade which her people coveted and which the complete victory over Austria-Hungary appeared to assure to them.

While there may have been some concern for Italy's national security in having a neighboring Slavic state with a large and strong population, ample resources, and the potential to become a naval power in the Mediterranean, the main source of worry seemed to be that this new nation would become a commercial competitor for Italy in the Adriatic. This could hinder Italy's aspirations to secure exclusive control over the trade that its people desired and that the total victory over Austria-Hungary seemed to promise them.

The two principal ports having extensive facilities for shipping and rail-transportation to and from the Danubian provinces of the Dual Empire were Trieste and Fiume. The other Dalmatian ports were small and without possibilities of extensive development, while the precipitous mountain barrier between the coast and the interior which rose almost from the water-line rendered railway construction from an engineering standpoint impracticable if not impossible. It was apparent that, if Italy could obtain both the port of Trieste and the port of Fiume, the two available outlets for foreign trade to the territories lying north and east of the Adriatic Sea, she would have a substantial monopoly of the sea-borne commerce of the Dalmatian coast and its hinterland. It was equally apparent that Italian possession of the two ports would place the new Slav state at a great disadvantage commercially, as the principal volume of its exports and imports would have to pass through a port in the hands of a trade rival which could, in case of controversy or in order to check competition, be closed to Slav ships and goods on this or that pretext, even if the new state found it practicable to maintain a merchant marine under an agreement granting it the use of the port.

The two main ports with extensive facilities for shipping and rail transport to and from the Danubian provinces of the Dual Empire were Trieste and Fiume. The other Dalmatian ports were small and had no potential for significant development, while the steep mountain barrier between the coast and the interior, which rose almost from the water's edge, made railway construction impractical, if not impossible, from an engineering perspective. It was clear that if Italy could secure both the port of Trieste and the port of Fiume, which were the two outlets for foreign trade to the territories north and east of the Adriatic Sea, she would have a considerable monopoly on the maritime trade of the Dalmatian coast and its surrounding areas. It was also clear that if Italy controlled the two ports, the new Slav state would be at a significant commercial disadvantage, as most of its exports and imports would have to go through a port controlled by a trading rival, which could, in the event of a dispute or to limit competition, close to Slav ships and goods under various pretenses, even if the new state managed to maintain a merchant marine under an agreement allowing it to use the port.

In view of the new conditions which had thus arisen through the dissolution of the Austro-Hungarian Empire and the union of the Southern Slavs, the Italian delegates at Paris began a vigorous campaign to obtain sovereignty, or at least administrative control, over Fiume and the adjacent coasts and islands, it having been generally conceded that Trieste should be ceded to Italy. The Italian demand for Fiume had become real instead of artificial. This campaign was conducted by means of personal interviews with the representatives of the principal Powers, and particularly with those of the United States because it was apparently felt that the chief opposition to the demand would come from that quarter, since the President was known to favor the general proposition that every nation should have free access to the sea and, if possible, a seaport under its own sovereignty.

In light of the new circumstances that emerged from the breakup of the Austro-Hungarian Empire and the unification of the Southern Slavs, the Italian delegates in Paris launched a strong effort to secure sovereignty, or at least administrative control, over Fiume and the nearby coasts and islands, as it was generally agreed that Trieste should be handed over to Italy. The Italian claim to Fiume became more genuine rather than merely a façade. This effort was carried out through personal meetings with the representatives of the major Powers, especially those from the United States, since it seemed likely that the strongest resistance to their demand would come from that direction, given that the President was known to support the idea that every nation should have free access to the sea and, if possible, a seaport under its own control.

The Italian delegates were undoubtedly encouraged by some Americans to believe that, while the President had not actually declared in favor of Italian control of Fiume, he was sympathetic to the idea and would ultimately assent to it just as he had in the case of the cession to Italy of the Tyrol with its Austrian population. Convinced by these assurances of success the Italian leaders began a nationwide propaganda at home for the purpose of arousing a strong public sentiment for the acquisition of the port. This propaganda was begun, it would seem, for two reasons, first, the political advantage to be gained when it was announced that Signor Orlando and his colleagues at Paris had succeeded in having their demand recognized, and, second, the possibility of influencing the President to a speedy decision by exhibiting the intensity and unity of the Italian national spirit in demanding the annexation of the little city, the major part of the population of which was asserted to be of Italian blood.

The Italian delegates were clearly influenced by some Americans to think that, while the President hadn't outright declared his support for Italian control of Fiume, he was sympathetic to the idea and would eventually agree to it, just as he did with the transfer of the Tyrol, which had an Austrian population. Convinced by these promises of success, the Italian leaders launched a nationwide propaganda campaign at home to generate strong public support for acquiring the port. This campaign appeared to start for two reasons: first, the political gain from being able to announce that Signor Orlando and his colleagues in Paris had their demands acknowledged, and second, the hope of swaying the President towards a quick decision by showcasing the intensity and unity of the Italian national spirit in demanding the annexation of the small city, where the majority of the population was claimed to be of Italian descent.

The idea, which was industriously circulated throughout Italy, that Fiume was an Italian city, aroused the feelings of the people more than any political or economic argument could have done. The fact that the suburbs, which were really as much a part of the municipality as the area within the city proper, were inhabited largely by Jugo-Slavs was ignored, ridiculed, or denied. That the Jugo-Slavs undoubtedly exceeded in numbers the Italians in the community when it was treated as a whole made no difference to the propagandists who asserted that Fiume was Italian. They clamored for its annexation on the ground of "self-determination," though refusing to accept that principle as applicable to the inhabitants of the Austrian Tyrol and failing to raise any question in regard to it in the case of the port of Danzig. The Italian orators and press were not disturbed by the inconsistency of their positions, and the Italian statesmen at Paris, when their attention was called to it, replied that the cases were not the same, an assertion which it would have been difficult to establish with facts or support with convincing arguments.

The idea that Fiume was an Italian city, which spread quickly throughout Italy, stirred up the people's emotions more than any political or economic argument could. The fact that the suburbs, which were just as much a part of the municipality as the city itself, were mostly inhabited by Jugo-Slavs was ignored, ridiculed, or denied. The Jugo-Slavs clearly outnumbered the Italians in the community when looking at it as a whole, but that didn't matter to the propagandists who claimed Fiume was Italian. They demanded its annexation based on "self-determination," while refusing to apply that principle to the people of the Austrian Tyrol and not raising any questions about it regarding the port of Danzig. The Italian speakers and media were unfazed by the inconsistency of their arguments, and when Italian leaders in Paris were pointed out this inconsistency, they simply replied that the situations were different, a claim that would have been hard to back up with facts or solid arguments.

While the propaganda went forward in Italy with increasing energy, additional assurances, I was informed by one of the Italian group, were given to Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino that President Wilson was almost on the point of conceding the justice of the Italian claim to Fiume. It was not until the latter part of March, 1919, that these statesmen began to suspect that they had been misinformed and that the influence of their American friends was not as powerful with Mr. Wilson as they had been led to believe. It was an unpleasant awakening. They were placed in a difficult position. Too late to calm the inflamed temper of the Italian people the Italian leaders at Paris had no alternative but to press their demands with greater vigor since the failure to obtain Fiume meant almost inevitable disaster to the Orlando Ministry.

While the propaganda in Italy was ramping up, I was told by someone from the Italian group that additional reassurances were given to Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino that President Wilson was nearly ready to support Italy's claim to Fiume. It wasn't until late March 1919 that these leaders started to realize they had been misled and that their American allies didn't have as much influence over Mr. Wilson as they had thought. It was a harsh realization for them. They found themselves in a tough spot. Too late to calm the angry feelings of the Italian people, the Italian leaders in Paris had no choice but to push their demands more aggressively, as failing to secure Fiume would likely lead to a disastrous outcome for the Orlando Ministry.

Following conversations with Baron Sonnino and some others connected with the Italian delegation, I drew the conclusion that they would go so far as to refuse to make peace with Germany unless the Adriatic Question was first settled to their satisfaction. In a memorandum dated March 29, I wrote: "This will cause a dangerous crisis," and in commenting on the probable future of the subject I stated:

Following talks with Baron Sonnino and a few others involved with the Italian delegation, I concluded that they would even refuse to make peace with Germany unless the Adriatic Question was resolved to their satisfaction first. In a memo dated March 29, I wrote: "This will create a serious crisis," and when discussing the likely future of the matter, I stated:

"My fear is that the President will continue to rely upon private interviews and his powers of persuasion to induce the Italians to abandon their extravagant claim. I am sure that he will not be able to do it. On the contrary, his conversations will strengthen rather than weaken Italian determination. He ought to tell them now that he will not consent to have Fiume given to Italy. It would cause anger and bitterness, but nothing to compare with the resentment which will be aroused if the uncertainty is permitted to go on much longer. I shall tell the President my opinion at the first opportunity. [I did this a few days later.]

"My fear is that the President will keep relying on private meetings and his charm to get the Italians to drop their outrageous claim. I’m sure he won’t succeed. In fact, his talks will only make the Italians more determined. He should let them know now that he won’t agree to hand Fiume over to Italy. It would upset them, but it wouldn’t compare to the anger that will build if the uncertainty drags on much longer. I’ll share my thoughts with the President at the first chance I get. [I did this a few days later.]

"The future is darkened by the Adriatic situation and I look to an explosion before the matter is settled. It is a good thing that the President visited Italy when he did and when blessings rather than curses greeted him. Secret diplomacy is reaping a new harvest of execrations and condemnations. Will the practice ever cease?"

"The future is clouded by the Adriatic situation, and I anticipate an explosion before this issue is resolved. It’s fortunate that the President visited Italy when he did, as he was welcomed with blessings instead of curses. Secret diplomacy is gathering a new crop of criticism and condemnation. Will this practice ever come to an end?"

During the first three weeks of April the efforts to shake the determination of the President to support the Jugo-Slav claims to Fiume and the adjacent territory were redoubled, but without avail. Every form of compromise as to boundary and port privileges, which did not deprive Italy of the sovereignty, was proposed, but found to be unacceptable. The Italians, held by the pressure of the aroused national spirit, and the President, firm in the conviction that the Italian claim to the port was unjust, remained obdurate. Attempts were made by both sides to reach some common ground for an agreement, but none was found. As the time approached to submit the Treaty to the German plenipotentiaries, who were expected to arrive at Paris on April 26, the Italian delegates let it be known that they would absent themselves from the meeting at which the document was to be presented unless a satisfactory understanding in regard to Fiume was obtained before the meeting. I doubt whether this threat was with the approval and upon the advice of the American friends of the Italians who had been industrious in attempting to persuade the President to accept a compromise. An American familiar with Mr. Wilson's disposition would have realized that to try to coerce him in that manner would be folly, as in all probability it would have just the contrary effect to the one desired.

During the first three weeks of April, attempts to change the President’s mind about supporting the Yugoslav claims to Fiume and the surrounding area intensified, but it was all for nothing. Every possible compromise regarding boundaries and port privileges that didn’t take Italy’s sovereignty away was suggested but was rejected. The Italians, driven by a surge of national pride, and the President, convinced that Italy’s claim to the port was unfair, stood their ground. Both sides tried to find common ground for an agreement, but they were unsuccessful. As the deadline approached for submitting the Treaty to the German negotiators, who were set to arrive in Paris on April 26, the Italian delegates indicated they would skip the meeting where the document would be presented unless a satisfactory resolution regarding Fiume was achieved beforehand. I doubt this threat was made with the support or advice of their American allies, who had been working hard to persuade the President to agree to a compromise. An American who knew Mr. Wilson’s temperament would have understood that trying to pressure him like that would be a mistake, as it would likely have the opposite effect of what they intended.

The Italian delegates did not apparently read the President's temper aright. They made a mistake. Their threat of withdrawal from the Conference resulted far differently from their expectation and hope. When Mr. Wilson learned of the Italian threat he met it with a public announcement of his position in regard to the controversy, which was intended as an appeal to the people of Italy to abandon the claim to Fiume and to reject their Government's policy of insisting on an unjust settlement. This declaration was given to the press late in the afternoon of April 23, and a French newspaper containing it was handed, it was said, to Signor Orlando at the President's residence where the Council of Four were assembled. He immediately withdrew, issued a counter-statement, and the following day left Paris for Rome more on account of his indignation at the course taken by the President than because of the threat which he had made. Baron Sonnino also departed the next day.

The Italian delegates clearly misread the President's mood. They made a mistake. Their threat to pull out of the Conference had very different consequences than they expected. When Mr. Wilson found out about the Italian threat, he responded with a public announcement outlining his stance on the issue, which was meant to encourage the people of Italy to give up their claim to Fiume and to reject their government’s insistence on an unfair settlement. This statement was released to the press late in the afternoon of April 23, and a French newspaper containing it was reportedly given to Signor Orlando at the President's residence where the Council of Four was gathered. He immediately left, issued a counter-statement, and the next day departed Paris for Rome, largely due to his anger over the President's actions rather than the threat he had made. Baron Sonnino also left the following day.

It is not my purpose to pursue further the course of events following the crisis which was precipitated by the President's published statement and the resulting departure of the principal Italian delegates. The effect on the Italian people is common knowledge. A tempest of popular fury against the President swept over Italy from end to end. From being the most revered of all men by the Italians, he became the most detested. As no words of praise and admiration were too extravagant to be spoken of him when he visited Rome in January, so no words of insult or execration were too gross to characterize him after his public announcement regarding the Adriatic Question. There was never a more complete reversal of public sentiment toward an individual.

I'm not going to delve into the events that followed the crisis triggered by the President's statement and the exit of the main Italian delegates. It's well known how this affected the Italian people. A storm of public anger against the President swept across Italy. Once the most respected figure among Italians, he quickly became the most hated. The praises and admiration he received during his visit to Rome in January were overwhelming, yet after his public announcement about the Adriatic Question, no insult was too harsh to describe him. There has never been such a complete shift in public opinion about someone.

The reason for reciting the facts of the Fiume dispute, which was one of the most unpleasant incidents that took place at Paris during the negotiations, is to bring out clearly the consequences of secret diplomacy. A discussion of the reasons, or of the probable reasons, for the return of the Italian statesmen to Paris before the Treaty was handed to the Germans would add nothing to the subject under consideration, while the same may be said of the subsequent occupation of Fiume by Italian nationalists under the fanatical D'Annunzio, without authority of their Government, but with the enthusiastic approval of the Italian people.

The reason for outlining the details of the Fiume dispute, one of the most unpleasant events that occurred in Paris during the negotiations, is to highlight the effects of secret diplomacy. Discussing the motivations, or possible motivations, for the Italian politicians returning to Paris before the Treaty was given to the Germans wouldn’t contribute anything to the topic at hand, and the same goes for the later occupation of Fiume by Italian nationalists led by the fervent D'Annunzio, lacking their Government's authorization but supported enthusiastically by the Italian people.

Five days after the Italian Premier and his Minister of Foreign Affairs had departed from Paris I had a long interview with a well-known Italian diplomat, who was an intimate friend of both Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino and who had been very active in the secret negotiations regarding the Italian boundaries which had been taking place at Paris since the middle of December. This diplomat was extremely bitter about the whole affair and took no pains to hide his views as to the causes of the critical situation which existed. In the memorandum of our conversation, which I wrote immediately after he left my office, appears the following:

Five days after the Italian Prime Minister and his Foreign Affairs Minister left Paris, I had a lengthy meeting with a well-known Italian diplomat. He was a close friend of both Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino and had been heavily involved in the secret talks about Italy's borders that had been happening in Paris since mid-December. This diplomat was very upset about the entire situation and didn't hold back in expressing his thoughts on the reasons for the critical circumstances we faced. In the notes I took immediately after he left my office, I wrote the following:

"He exclaimed: 'One tells you one thing and that is not true; then another tells you another thing and that too is not true. What is one to believe? What can one do? It is hopeless. So many secret meetings with different persons are simply awful'—He threw up his hands—'Now we have the result. It is terrible!'

"He exclaimed, 'One person tells you one thing, and that's not true; then another person tells you something else, and that's also not true. What are you supposed to believe? What can you do? It's hopeless. So many secret meetings with different people are just awful!' He threw up his hands. 'Now we have the result. It's terrible!'"

"I laughed and said, 'I conclude that you do not like secret diplomacy.'

"I laughed and said, 'So, I take it you’re not a fan of secret diplomacy.'"

"'I do not; I do not,' he fervently exclaimed. 'All our trouble comes from these secret meetings of four men [referring to the Big Four], who keep no records and who tell different stories of what takes place. Secrecy is to blame. We have been unable to rely on any one. To have to run around and see this man and that man is not the way to do. Most all sympathize with you when alone and then they desert you when they get with others. This is the cause of much bitterness and distrust. Secret diplomacy is an utter failure. It is too hard to endure. Some men know only how to whisper. They are not to be trusted. I do not like it.'

"I don’t; I really don’t," he said passionately. "All our problems come from these secret meetings of four men [referring to the Big Four], who don’t keep any records and tell different stories about what happens. Secrecy is the problem. We can’t rely on anyone. Having to go around and meet with this person and that person isn’t the way to do things. Most people agree with you when they’re alone but then abandon you when they’re with others. This creates a lot of bitterness and distrust. Secret diplomacy is a complete failure. It’s just too difficult to handle. Some people only know how to whisper. They can’t be trusted. I don’t like it."

   "'Well,' I said, 'you cannot charge me with that way of doing
   business.'

"'Well,' I said, 'you can't blame me for that way of doing
   business.'

   "'I cannot,' he replied, 'you tell me the truth. I may not like it,
   but at least you do not hold out false hopes.'"

"'I can't,' he replied, 'just tell me the truth. I might not like it,
but at least you’re not giving me false hopes.'"

The foregoing conversation no doubt expressed the real sentiments of the members of the Italian delegation at that time. Disgust with confidential personal interviews and with relying upon personal influence rather than upon the merits of their case was the natural reaction following the failure to win by these means the President's approval of Italy's demands.

The previous conversation clearly reflected the true feelings of the members of the Italian delegation at that time. Their frustration with private conversations and depending on personal connections instead of the strengths of their case was a natural response after they failed to gain the President's support for Italy's demands through these methods.

The Italian policy in relation to Flume was wrecked on the rock of President Wilson's firm determination that the Jugo-Slavs should have a seaport on the Adriatic sufficient for their needs and that Italy should not control the approaches to that port. With the wreck of the Fiume policy went in time the Orlando Government which had failed to make good the promises which they had given to their people. Too late they realized that secret diplomacy had failed, and that they had made a mistake in relying upon it. It is no wonder that the two leaders of the Italian delegation on returning to Paris and resuming their duties in the Conference refrained from attempting to arrange clandestinely the settlement of the Adriatic Question. The "go-betweens," on whom they had previously relied, were no longer employed. Secret diplomacy was anathema. They had paid a heavy price for the lesson, which they had learned.

The Italian policy regarding Fiume fell apart due to President Wilson's strong commitment that the Jugo-Slavs should have a seaport on the Adriatic that met their needs, and that Italy should not control the access to that port. With the collapse of the Fiume policy, the Orlando Government also eventually crumbled because they had failed to fulfill the promises made to their people. Too late, they realized that secret diplomacy had not worked and that relying on it was a mistake. It’s no surprise that the two leaders of the Italian delegation, upon returning to Paris and resuming their roles in the Conference, avoided trying to secretly resolve the Adriatic Question. The "middlemen" they had previously depended on were no longer in use. Secret diplomacy was off the table. They paid a heavy price for the lesson they learned.

When one reviews the negotiations at Paris from December, 1918, to June, 1919, the secretiveness which characterized them is very evident. Everybody seemed to talk in whispers and never to say anything worth while except in confidence. The open sessions of the Conference were arranged beforehand. They were formal and perfunctory. The agreements and bargains were made behind closed doors. This secrecy began with the exchange of views concerning the League of Nations, following which came the creation of the Council of Ten, whose meetings were intended to be secret. Then came the secret sessions of the Commission on the League and the numerous informal interviews of the President with one or more of the Premiers of the Allied Powers, the facts concerning which were not divulged to the American Commissioners. Later, on Mr. Wilson's return from the United States, dissatisfaction with and complaint of the publicity given to some of the proceedings of the Council of Ten induced the formation of the Council of Four with the result that the secrecy of the negotiations was practically unbroken. If to this brief summary of the increasing secretiveness of the proceedings of the controlling bodies of the Peace Conference are added the intrigues and personal bargainings which were constantly going on, the "log-rolling"—to use a term familiar to American politics—which was practiced, the record is one which invites no praise and will find many who condemn it. In view of the frequent and emphatic declarations in favor of "open diplomacy" and the popular interpretation placed upon the phrase "Open covenants openly arrived at," the effect of the secretive methods employed by the leading negotiators at Paris was to destroy public confidence in the sincerity of these statesmen and to subject them to the charge of pursuing a policy which they had themselves condemned and repudiated. Naturally President Wilson, who had been especially earnest in his denunciation of secret negotiations, suffered more than his foreign colleagues, whose real support of "open diplomacy" had always been doubted, though all of them in a measure fell in public estimation as a consequence of the way in which the negotiations were conducted.

When you look back at the negotiations in Paris from December 1918 to June 1919, the secretive nature of the discussions is quite obvious. Everyone seemed to speak in whispers and rarely said anything meaningful except in private. The open sessions of the Conference were planned in advance. They were formal and routine. The actual agreements and deals were made behind closed doors. This secrecy started with discussions about the League of Nations, which led to the formation of the Council of Ten, whose meetings were meant to be confidential. Then there were secret sessions of the Commission on the League and numerous informal meetings between the President and various Allied leaders, the details of which were not shared with the American Commissioners. Later, when Mr. Wilson returned from the United States, complaints about the publicity surrounding some of the Council of Ten's activities led to the creation of the Council of Four, which meant that the secrecy of the negotiations remained largely intact. If you add to this brief summary the ongoing intrigues and personal negotiations that were constantly happening, along with the "log-rolling"—a term familiar in American politics—the record is one that invites criticism and will find plenty of detractors. Given the frequent and strong statements in favor of "open diplomacy" and the popular understanding of "Open covenants openly arrived at," the secretive methods used by the leading negotiators in Paris undermined public trust in these statesmen and exposed them to accusations of pursuing policies they had previously condemned. Naturally, President Wilson, who had been particularly vocal against secret negotiations, bore the brunt of the fallout more than his foreign counterparts, whose true commitment to "open diplomacy" had always been questioned, although all of them suffered a decline in public opinion due to how the negotiations were handled.

The criticism and condemnation, expressed with varying degrees of intensity, resulted from the disappointed hopes of the peoples of the world, who had looked forward confidently to the Peace Conference at Paris as the first great and decisive change to a new diplomacy which would cast aside the cloak of mystery that had been in the past the recognized livery of diplomatic negotiations. The record of the Paris proceedings in this particular is a sorry one. It is the record of the abandonment of principle, of the failure to follow precepts unconditionally proclaimed, of the repudiation by act, if not by word, of a new and better type of international intercourse.

The criticism and condemnation, expressed with varying levels of intensity, came from the disappointed hopes of people around the world, who had looked forward with great expectation to the Peace Conference in Paris as the first major shift towards a new kind of diplomacy that would break free from the secrecy that had previously defined diplomatic negotiations. The outcome of the Paris proceedings in this regard is disheartening. It reflects a departure from principles, a failure to uphold the ideals that had been publicly declared, and a rejection, both in action and, to some extent, in words, of a new and improved way of engaging internationally.

It is not my purpose or desire to fix the blame for this perpetuation of old and discredited practices on any one individual. To do so would be unjust, since more than one preferred the old way and should share the responsibility for its continuance. But, as the secrecy became more and more impenetrable and as the President gave silent acquiescence or at least failed to show displeasure with the practice, I realized that in this matter, as in others, our judgments were at variance and our views irreconcilable. As my opposition to the method of conducting the proceedings was evident, I cannot but assume that this decided difference was one that materially affected the relations between Mr. Wilson and myself and that he looked upon me as an unfavorable critic of his course in permitting to go unprotested the secrecy which characterized the negotiations.

I don’t want to blame any one person for keeping outdated and discredited practices alive. That wouldn’t be fair, since multiple people preferred the old ways and should share the responsibility for their continuation. However, as the secrecy grew increasingly impenetrable and the President quietly accepted it or at least didn’t express disapproval, I realized that, in this case, as in others, our judgments differed, and our views were irreconcilable. Since my opposition to the way the proceedings were handled was clear, I can only assume that this significant difference affected my relationship with Mr. Wilson, and he saw me as a negative critic of his decision to allow the secrecy surrounding the negotiations to continue unchallenged.

The attention of the delegates to the Peace Conference who represented the smaller nations was early directed to their being denied knowledge of the terms of the Treaty which were being formulated by the principal members of the delegations of the Five Great Powers. There is no doubt that at the first their mental attitude was one of confidence that the policy of secrecy would not be continued beyond the informal meetings preliminary to and necessary for arranging the organization and procedure of the Conference; but, as the days lengthened into weeks and the weeks into months, and as the information concerning the actual negotiations, which reached them, became more and more meager, they could no longer close their eyes to the fact that their national rights and aspirations were to be recognized or denied by the leaders of the Great Powers without the consent and even without the full knowledge of the delegates of the nations vitally interested.

The delegates to the Peace Conference from the smaller nations quickly realized they were kept in the dark about the terms of the Treaty being drafted by the main representatives of the Five Great Powers. Initially, they were confident that the secrecy would not last beyond the early informal meetings needed to set up the Conference's organization and procedures. However, as days turned into weeks and weeks into months, and the little information they received about the actual negotiations dwindled, they could no longer ignore the fact that their national rights and aspirations would be decided by the leaders of the Great Powers without their input or even full awareness.

Except in the case of a few of these delegates, who had been able to establish intimate personal relations with some of the "Big Four," the secretiveness of the discussions and decisions regarding the Treaty settlements aroused amazement and indignation. It was evident that it was to be a "dictated peace" and not a "negotiated peace," a peace dictated by the Great Powers not only to the enemy, but also to their fellow belligerents. Some of the delegates spoke openly in criticism of the furtive methods that were being employed, but the majority held their peace. It can hardly be doubted, however, that the body of delegates were practically unanimous in disapproving the secrecy of the proceedings, and this disapproval was to be found even among the delegations of the Great Powers. It was accepted by the lesser nations because it seemed impolitic and useless to oppose the united will of the controlling oligarchy. It was natural that the delegates of the less influential states should feel that their countries would suffer in the terms of peace if they openly denounced the treatment accorded them as violative of the dignity of representatives of independent sovereignties. In any event no formal protest was entered against their being deprived of a knowledge to which they were entitled, a deprivation which placed them and their countries in a subordinate, and, to an extent, a humiliating, position.

Except for a few delegates who had managed to form close personal relationships with some of the "Big Four," the secrecy surrounding the discussions and decisions about the Treaty settlements left many amazed and outraged. It was clear that this was going to be a "dictated peace" rather than a "negotiated peace," one imposed by the Great Powers not just on the enemy but also on their fellow nations involved in the conflict. Some delegates openly criticized the secretive methods being used, but most kept quiet. However, it’s hard to doubt that nearly all the delegates disapproved of the secrecy, and this sentiment was even shared among the delegations from the Great Powers. The smaller nations accepted it because it seemed unwise and pointless to oppose the unified will of the ruling elite. It was only natural that delegates from less powerful states felt that their countries would be worse off in terms of peace if they publicly condemned the treatment they received as disrespectful to the dignity of representatives from independent nations. In any case, no formal protest was made against their exclusion from information they were entitled to, a situation that left them and their countries in a subordinate and somewhat humiliating position.

The climax of this policy of secrecy toward the body of delegates came on the eve of the delivery of the Treaty of Peace to the German representatives who were awaiting that event at Versailles. By a decision of the Council of the Heads of States, reached three weeks before the time, only a digest or summary of the Treaty was laid before the plenary session of the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace on the day preceding the delivery of the full text of the Treaty to the Germans. The delegates of the smaller belligerent nations were not permitted to examine the actual text of the document before it was seen by their defeated adversaries. Nations, which had fought valiantly and suffered agonies during the war, were treated with no more consideration than their enemies so far as knowledge of the exact terms of peace were concerned. The arguments, which could be urged on the ground of the practical necessity of a small group dealing with the questions and determining the settlements, seem insufficient to justify the application of the rule of secrecy to the delegates who sat in the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace. It is not too severe to say that it outraged the equal rights of independent and sovereign states and under less critical conditions would have been resented as an insult by the plenipotentiaries of the lesser nations. Even within the delegations of the Great Powers there were indignant murmurings against this indefensible and unheard-of treatment of allies. No man, whose mind was not warped by prejudice or dominated by political expediency, could give it his approval or become its apologist. Secrecy, and intrigues which were only possible through secrecy, stained nearly all the negotiations at Paris, but in this final act of withholding knowledge of the actual text of the Treaty from the delegates of most of the nations represented in the Conference the spirit of secretiveness seems to have gone mad.

The peak of this policy of keeping things secret from the delegates happened just before the Treaty of Peace was delivered to the German representatives waiting for it at Versailles. Three weeks earlier, the Council of Heads of States decided that only a summary of the Treaty would be presented to the full Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace the day before the complete text was given to the Germans. The delegates from the smaller nations that fought in the war were not allowed to see the actual text before their defeated opponents did. Nations that had fought bravely and endured immense suffering were treated with no more consideration than their enemies when it came to knowing the exact terms of peace. The arguments for having a small group handle the negotiations and make the decisions don’t seem strong enough to justify keeping the delegates in the dark during the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace. It’s not too harsh to say that this violated the equal rights of independent and sovereign states, and under less intense circumstances, the representatives of the smaller nations would have viewed it as an insult. Even among the delegations of the Great Powers, there were angry whispers about this outrageous and unprecedented treatment of allies. No person whose judgment wasn’t clouded by bias or political convenience could support it or make excuses for it. Secrecy, along with the plots that could only happen because of it, tainted nearly all the negotiations in Paris, but in this final act of withholding the actual text of the Treaty from most of the nations represented in the Conference, the spirit of secrecy seems to have gone overboard.

The psychological effects of secrecy on those who are kept in ignorance are not difficult to analyze. They follow normal processes and may be thus stated: Secrecy breeds suspicion; suspicion, doubt; doubt, distrust; and distrust produces lack of frankness, which is closely akin to secrecy. The result is a vicious circle, of which deceit and intrigue are the very essence. Secrecy and its natural consequences have given to diplomacy a popular reputation for trickery, for double-dealing, and in a more or less degree for unscrupulous and dishonest methods of obtaining desired ends, a reputation that has found expression in the ironic definition of a diplomat as "an honest man sent to lie abroad for the good of his country."

The psychological effects of keeping people in the dark are easy to analyze. They follow a normal pattern and can be summarized like this: Secrecy leads to suspicion; suspicion leads to doubt; doubt leads to distrust; and distrust results in a lack of openness, which is very similar to secrecy. This creates a vicious cycle, in which deceit and intrigue are fundamental. Secrecy and its natural outcomes have given diplomacy a common reputation for trickery, double-dealing, and, to some extent, for unscrupulous and dishonest ways of achieving goals—a reputation captured in the ironic term for a diplomat as "an honest person sent to lie abroad for the benefit of their country."

The time had arrived when the bad name which diplomacy had so long borne could and should have been removed. "Open covenants openly arrived at" appealed to the popular feeling of antipathy toward secret diplomacy, of which the Great War was generally believed to be the product. The Paris Conference appeared to offer an inviting opportunity to turn the page and to begin a new and better chapter in the annals of international intercourse. To do this required a fixed purpose to abandon the old methods, to insist on openness and candor, to refuse to be drawn into whispered agreements. The choice between the old and the new ways had to be definite and final. It had to be made at the very beginning of the negotiations. It was made. Secrecy was adopted. Thus diplomacy, in spite of the announced intention to reform its practices, has retained the evil taint which makes it out of harmony with the spirit of good faith and of open dealing which is characteristic of the best thought of the present epoch. There is little to show that diplomacy has been raised to a higher plane or has won a better reputation in the world at large than it possessed before the nations assembled at Paris to make peace. This failure to lift the necessary agency of international relations out of the rut worn deep by centuries of practice is one of the deplorable consequences of the peace negotiations. So much might have been done; nothing was done.

The moment had come when the bad reputation that diplomacy had carried for so long could and should have been changed. "Open agreements reached openly" resonated with the public's dislike for secret diplomacy, which many believed caused the Great War. The Paris Conference seemed like a great chance to start fresh and write a new, better chapter in international relations. To make this happen required a clear decision to leave behind the old ways, to demand openness and honesty, and to avoid getting involved in whispered deals. The choice between the old and the new had to be clear and final. It had to be made right at the start of the negotiations. It was made. Secrecy was chosen. So, despite the stated intention to reform its practices, diplomacy has kept the negative impression that sets it apart from the spirit of good faith and transparency that reflects the best thinking of today's world. There's little evidence that diplomacy has been elevated to a higher standard or improved its standing in the eyes of the world compared to before the nations gathered in Paris to establish peace. This inability to elevate the essential mechanism of international relations out of the deep groove created by centuries of practice is one of the sad results of the peace talks. So much could have been accomplished; nothing was accomplished.

CHAPTER XVIII

THE SHANTUNG SETTLEMENT

The Shantung Settlement was not so evidently chargeable to secret negotiations as the crisis over the disposition of Fiume, but the decision was finally reached through that method. The controversy between Japan and China as to which country should become the possessor of the former German property and rights in the Shantung Peninsula was not decided until almost the last moment before the Treaty with Germany was completed. Under pressure of the necessity of making the document ready for delivery to the German delegates, President Wilson, M. Clemenceau, and Mr. Lloyd George, composing the Council of the Heads of States in the absence of Signor Orlando in Rome, issued an order directing the Drafting Committee of the Conference to prepare articles for the Treaty embodying the decision that the Council had made. This decision, which was favorable to the Japanese claims, was the result of a confidential arrangement with the Japanese delegates by which, in the event of their claims being granted, they withdrew their threat to decline to sign the Treaty of Peace, agreed not to insist on a proposed amendment to the Covenant declaring for racial equality, and orally promised to restore to China in the near future certain rights of sovereignty over the territory, which promise failed of confirmation in writing or by formal public declaration.

The Shantung Settlement wasn’t as obviously influenced by secret negotiations as the crisis over Fiume, but the final decision came about through that method. The dispute between Japan and China over who would take control of the former German properties and rights in the Shantung Peninsula wasn’t resolved until nearly the last minute before the Treaty with Germany was finalized. With the pressure of needing to have the document ready for the German delegates, President Wilson, M. Clemenceau, and Mr. Lloyd George, who made up the Council of Heads of State in Signor Orlando's absence in Rome, issued an order for the Drafting Committee of the Conference to prepare articles for the Treaty reflecting the decision made by the Council. This decision, which favored Japanese claims, resulted from a confidential arrangement with the Japanese delegates. They agreed to withdraw their threat to refuse to sign the Treaty of Peace if their claims were accepted, did not insist on an amendment to the Covenant advocating for racial equality, and orally promised to restore certain rights of sovereignty over the territory to China soon. However, this promise was never confirmed in writing or through an official public statement.

It is fair to presume that, if the conflicting claims of Japan and China to the alleged rights of Germany in Chinese territory had been settled upon the merits through the medium of an impartial commission named by the Conference, the Treaty provisions relating to the disposition of those rights would have been very different from those which "The Three" ordered to be drafted. Before a commission of the Conference no persuasive reasons for conceding the Japanese claims could have been urged on the basis of an agreement on the part of Japan to adhere to the League of Nations or to abandon the attempt to have included in the Covenant a declaration of equality between races. It was only through secret interviews and secret agreements that the threat of the Japanese delegates could be successfully made. An adjustment on such a basis had nothing to do with the justice of the case or with the legal rights and principles involved. The threat was intended to coerce the arbiters of the treaty terms by menacing the success of the plan to establish a League of Nations—to use an ugly word, it was a species of "blackmail" not unknown to international relations in the past. It was made possible because the sessions of the Council of the Heads of States and the conversations concerning Shantung were secret.

It’s reasonable to think that if Japan and China’s conflicting claims over Germany's alleged rights in Chinese territory had been settled fairly by an impartial commission appointed by the Conference, the Treaty provisions regarding those rights would have looked very different from what "The Three" had drafted. Before a commission of the Conference, there wouldn't have been any compelling reasons to support Japan’s claims based on Japan’s willingness to join the League of Nations or to drop the request to have a declaration of racial equality included in the Covenant. The Japanese delegates were able to successfully leverage their threat only through private meetings and secret agreements. Finding a solution like that had nothing to do with justice or the legal rights and principles involved. The threat aimed to pressure the treaty arbiters by jeopardizing the success of the plan to set up a League of Nations—if we want to use a harsh term, it was a form of "blackmail" that’s not unfamiliar in international relations. This was made possible because the discussions among the Council of Heads of State and the talks about Shantung were kept secret.

It was a calamity for the Republic of China and unfortunate for the presumed justice written into the Treaty that President Wilson was convinced that the Japanese delegates would decline to accept the Covenant of the League of Nations if the claims of Japan to the German rights were denied. It was equally unfortunate that the President felt that without Japan's adherence to the Covenant the formation of the League would be endangered if not actually prevented. And it was especially unfortunate that the President considered the formation of the League in accordance with the provisions of the Covenant to be superior to every other consideration and that to accomplish this object almost any sacrifice would be justifiable. It is my impression that the departure of Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino from Paris and the uncertainty of their return to give formal assent to the Treaty with Germany, an uncertainty which existed at the time of the decision of the Shantung Question, had much to do with the anxiety of the President as to Japan's attitude. He doubtless felt that to have two of the Five Great Powers decline at the last moment to accept the Treaty containing the Covenant would jeopardize the plan for a League and would greatly encourage his opponents in the United States. His line of reasoning was logical, but in my judgment was based on the false premise that the Japanese would carry out their threat to refuse to accept the Treaty and enter the League of Nations unless they obtained a cession of the German rights. I did not believe at the time, and I do not believe now, that Japan would have made good her threat. The superior international position, which she held as one of the Five Great Powers in the Conference, and which she would hold in the League of Nations as one of the Principal Powers in the constitution of the Executive Council, would never have been abandoned by the Tokio Government. The Japanese delegates would not have run the risk of losing this position by adopting the course pursued by the Italians.

It was a disaster for the Republic of China and unfortunate for the supposed justice outlined in the Treaty that President Wilson was convinced the Japanese delegates would refuse to accept the Covenant of the League of Nations if Japan's claims to German rights were denied. It was equally unfortunate that the President believed that without Japan's support for the Covenant, the League's formation would be in jeopardy, if not outright impossible. And it was especially unfortunate that the President viewed the establishment of the League in line with the Covenant's provisions as more important than anything else, believing that achieving this goal justified almost any sacrifice. I think the departure of Signor Orlando and Baron Sonnino from Paris, along with the uncertainty of their return to formally agree to the Treaty with Germany—which was a concern at the time of the Shantung Question decision—greatly contributed to the President's worries regarding Japan's stance. He likely felt that having two of the Five Great Powers back out at the last minute from accepting the Treaty containing the Covenant would endanger the League plan and significantly embolden his opponents in the United States. His reasoning was logical, but in my opinion, it was based on the incorrect assumption that the Japanese would follow through on their threat to reject the Treaty and join the League of Nations unless they received the German rights. I didn't believe that then, and I still don't believe it now; Japan would not have honored that threat. The strong international position she held as one of the Five Great Powers at the Conference, and would maintain in the League of Nations as a Principal Power in the Executive Council, would never have been given up by the Tokyo government. The Japanese delegates would not have risked losing this status by taking the same approach as the Italians.

The cases were different. No matter what action was taken by Italy she would have continued to be a Great Power in any organization of the world based on a classification of the nations. If she did not enter the League under the German Treaty, she certainly would later and would undoubtedly hold an influential position in the organization whether her delegates signed the Covenant or accepted it in another treaty or by adherence. It was not so with Japan. There were reasons to believe that, if she failed to become one of the Principal Powers at the outset, another opportunity might never be given her to obtain so high a place in the concert of the nations. The seats that her delegates had in the Council of Ten had caused criticism and dissatisfaction in certain quarters, and the elimination of a Japanese from the Council of the Heads of States showed that the Japanese position as an equal of the other Great Powers was by no means secure. These indications of Japan's place in the international oligarchy must have been evident to her plenipotentiaries at Paris, who in all probability reported the situation to Tokio. From the point of view of policy the execution of the threat of withdrawal presented dangers to Japan's prestige which the diplomats who represented her would never have incurred if they were as cautious and shrewd as they appeared to be. The President did not hold this opinion. We differed radically in our judgment as to the sincerity of the Japanese threat. He showed that he believed it would be carried out. I believed that it would not be.

The situations were different. No matter what actions Italy took, she would have remained a Great Power in any world organization that classified nations. If she didn’t join the League under the German Treaty, she would definitely do so later and would likely hold an important position in the organization, regardless of whether her delegates signed the Covenant or accepted it through another treaty or by joining in. The same couldn’t be said for Japan. There were reasons to believe that if she didn’t become one of the Principal Powers from the start, she might never get another chance to secure such a high position in the global community. The seats her delegates had in the Council of Ten sparked criticism and dissatisfaction in some circles, and the removal of a Japanese representative from the Council of Heads of States demonstrated that Japan’s status as an equal among the other Great Powers was far from guaranteed. These signs of Japan's standing in the international group must have been clear to her representatives in Paris, who likely reported the situation back to Tokyo. From a policy standpoint, following through on the threat to withdraw would pose risks to Japan's prestige that her diplomats would not have taken if they were as careful and astute as they seemed. The President did not share this view. We were fundamentally divided in our assessment of the sincerity of the Japanese threat. He indicated that he believed it would be executed. I believed it wouldn’t be.

It has not come to my knowledge what the attitude of the British and French statesmen was concerning the disposition of the Shantung rights, although I have read the views of certain authors on the subject, but I do know that the actual decision lay with the President. If he had declined to recognize the Japanese claims, they would never have been granted nor would the grant have been written into the Treaty. Everything goes to show that he realized this responsibility and that the cession to Japan was not made through error or misconception of the rights of the parties, but was done deliberately and with a full appreciation that China was being denied that which in other circumstances would have been awarded to her. If it had not been for reasons wholly independent and outside of the question in dispute, the President would not have decided as he did.

I’m not sure what the British and French leaders thought about the Shantung rights, even though I've read some opinions on it, but I do know that the final decision was up to the President. If he had refused to recognize Japan's claims, they would never have been accepted, nor would those claims have been included in the Treaty. It's clear that he understood this responsibility and that the transfer to Japan was not a mistake or misunderstanding about the rights involved, but was done intentionally, knowing that China was being denied what would normally have been given to her. If it weren't for reasons completely separate from the issue at hand, the President wouldn’t have made that decision.

It is not my purpose to enter into the details of the origin of the German lease of Kiao-Chau (the port of Tsingtau) and of the economic concessions in the Province of Shantung acquired by Germany. Suffice it to say that, taking advantage of a situation caused by the murder of some missionary priests in the province, the German Government in 1898 forced the Chinese Government to make treaties granting for the period of ninety-nine years the lease and concessions, by which the sovereign authority over this "Holy Land" of China was to all intents ceded to Germany, which at once improved the harbor, fortified the leased area, and began railway construction and the exploitation of the Shantung Peninsula.

I'm not here to dive into the specifics of how Germany came to lease Kiao-Chau (the port of Tsingtau) and the economic concessions in Shantung province. It's enough to say that in 1898, taking advantage of the situation created by the murder of some missionary priests in the area, the German Government pressured the Chinese Government into signing treaties that granted a lease and concessions for ninety-nine years. Essentially, this meant that sovereign control over this "Holy Land" of China was effectively handed over to Germany, which immediately set about upgrading the harbor, strengthening the defenses in the leased area, and starting railway construction and resource extraction on the Shantung Peninsula.

The outbreak of the World War found Germany in possession of the leased area and in substantial control of the territory under the concession. On August 15, 1914, the Japanese Government presented an ultimatum to the German Government, in which the latter was required "to deliver on a date not later than September 15 to the Imperial Japanese authorities, without condition or compensation, the entire leased territory of Kiao-Chau with a view to the eventual restoration of the same to China."

The outbreak of World War I found Germany controlling the leased area and having significant authority over the territory granted under the concession. On August 15, 1914, the Japanese Government issued an ultimatum to the German Government, demanding that by September 15, Germany must "unconditionally deliver the entire leased territory of Kiao-Chau to the Imperial Japanese authorities, with the intention of eventually restoring it to China."

On the German failure to comply with these demands the Japanese Government landed troops and, in company with a small British contingent, took possession of the leased port and occupied the territory traversed by the German railway, even to the extent of establishing a civil government in addition to garrisoning the line with Japanese troops. Apparently the actual occupation of this Chinese territory induced a change in the policy of the Imperial Government at Tokio, for in December, 1914, Baron Kato, the Minister of Foreign Affairs, declared that the restoration of Tsingtau to China "is to be settled in the future" and that the Japanese Government had made no promises to do so.

When Germany failed to meet these demands, the Japanese Government sent in troops, and alongside a small British contingent, took control of the leased port and occupied the area along the German railway. They even went so far as to set up a civilian government in addition to stationing Japanese troops along the line. This actual occupation of Chinese territory seems to have prompted a shift in the policy of the Imperial Government in Tokyo, because in December 1914, Baron Kato, the Minister of Foreign Affairs, announced that the return of Tsingtau to China "will be decided in the future" and that the Japanese Government had made no commitments to do so.

This statement, which seemed in contradiction of the ultimatum to Germany, was made in the Japanese Diet. It was followed up in January, 1915, by the famous "Twenty-one Demands" made upon the Government at Peking. It is needless to go into these demands further than to quote the first to which China was to subscribe.

This statement, which appeared to contradict the ultimatum to Germany, was made in the Japanese Diet. It was followed in January 1915 by the famous "Twenty-one Demands" presented to the government in Peking. There's no need to go into these demands further than to quote the first one that China was expected to agree to.

"The Chinese Government agrees that when the Japanese Government hereafter approaches the German Government for the transfer of all rights and privileges of whatsoever nature enjoyed by Germany in the Province of Shantung, whether secured by treaty or in any other manner, China shall give her full assent thereto."

"The Chinese Government agrees that when the Japanese Government approaches the German Government in the future for the transfer of all rights and privileges of any kind enjoyed by Germany in the Province of Shantung, whether secured by treaty or in any other way, China will fully consent to this."

The important point to be noted in this demand is that Japan did not consider that the occupation of Kiao-Chau and the seizure of the German concessions transferred title to her, but looked forward to a future transfer by treaty.

The key thing to note in this demand is that Japan did not believe that the occupation of Kiao-Chau and the takeover of the German concessions gave her ownership, but was anticipating a future transfer through a treaty.

The "Twenty-one Demands" were urged with persistency by the Japanese Government and finally took the form of an ultimatum as to all but Group V of the "Demands." The Peking Government was in no political or military condition to resist, and, in order to avoid an open rupture with their aggressive neighbor, entered into a treaty granting the Japanese demands.

The "Twenty-one Demands" were pushed persistently by the Japanese Government and ultimately became an ultimatum for all but Group V of the "Demands." The Peking Government was not in a strong political or military position to fight back, and to prevent a direct conflict with their aggressive neighbor, they agreed to a treaty that granted the Japanese demands.

China, following the action which the United States had taken on February 3, 1917, severed diplomatic relations with Germany on March 14, and five months later declared war against her announcing at the same time that the treaties, conventions, and agreements between the two countries were by the declaration abrogated. As to whether a state of war does in fact abrogate a treaty of the character of the Sino-German Treaty of 1898 some question may be raised under the accepted rules of international law, on the ground that it was a cession of sovereign rights and constituted an international servitude in favor of Germany over the territory affected by it. But in this particular case the indefensible duress employed by the German Government to compel China to enter into the treaty introduces another factor into the problem and excepts it from any general rule that treaties of that nature are merely suspended and not abrogated by war between the parties. It would seem as if no valid argument could be made in favor of suspension because the effect of the rule would be to revive and perpetuate an inequitable and unjustifiable act. Morally and legally the Chinese Government was right in denouncing the treaty and agreements with Germany and in treating the territorial rights acquired by coercion as extinguished.

China, following the actions taken by the United States on February 3, 1917, cut diplomatic ties with Germany on March 14. Five months later, it declared war on Germany and announced that all treaties, conventions, and agreements between the two countries were canceled. There might be some debate about whether a state of war actually nullifies a treaty like the Sino-German Treaty of 1898 under established international law, as it involved the cession of sovereign rights and created an international obligation favoring Germany over the affected territory. However, in this case, the unacceptable pressure used by the German Government to force China into the treaty adds another dimension to the issue and excludes it from the general principle that such treaties are only suspended and not voided by war between the parties. It seems there’s no valid argument for suspension since that would only serve to revive and continue an unfair and unjust action. Morally and legally, the Chinese Government was correct in rejecting the treaty and agreements with Germany and in considering the territorial rights gained through coercion as null.

It would appear, therefore, that, as the Japanese Government recognized that the rights in the Province of Shantung had not passed to Japan by the forcible occupation of Kiao-Chau and the German concessions, those rights ceased to exist when China declared war against Germany, and that China was, therefore, entitled to resume full sovereignty over the area where such rights previously existed.

It seems, then, that since the Japanese Government acknowledged that the rights in the Province of Shantung didn’t transfer to Japan through the forceful takeover of Kiao-Chau and the German concessions, those rights were effectively nullified when China declared war on Germany. Therefore, China was entitled to reclaim full sovereignty over the area where those rights once existed.

It is true that subsequently, on September 24, 1918, the Chinese and Japanese Governments by exchange of notes at Tokio entered into agreements affecting the Japanese occupation of the Kiao-Chau Tsinan Railway and the adjoining territory, but the governmental situation at Peking was too precarious to refuse any demands made by the Japanese Government. In fact the action of the Japanese Government was very similar to that of the German Government in 1898. An examination of these notes discloses the fact that the Japanese were in possession of the denounced German rights, but nothing in the notes indicates that they were there as a matter of legal right, or that the Chinese Government conceded their right of occupation.

It’s true that later, on September 24, 1918, the Chinese and Japanese Governments exchanged notes in Tokyo to enter into agreements regarding the Japanese occupation of the Kiao-Chau Tsinan Railway and the surrounding area. However, the political situation in Peking was too unstable for the Chinese Government to reject any demands from the Japanese Government. In fact, the Japanese Government's actions were very similar to those of the German Government back in 1898. A closer look at these notes shows that the Japanese were in control of the abandoned German rights, but nothing in the notes suggests they were there based on legal grounds, nor that the Chinese Government acknowledged their right to occupy the area.

This was the state of affairs when the Peace Conference assembled at Paris. Germany had by force compelled China in 1898 to cede to her certain rights in the Province of Shantung. Japan had seized these rights by force in 1914 and had by threats forced China in 1915 to agree to accept her disposition of them when they were legally transferred by treaty at the end of the war. China in 1917 had, on entering the war against Germany, denounced all treaties and agreements with Germany, so that the ceded rights no longer existed and could not legally be transferred by Germany to Japan by the Treaty of Peace, since the title was in China. In fact any transfer or disposition of the rights in Shantung formerly belonging to Germany was a transfer or disposition of rights belonging wholly to China and would deprive that country of a portion of its full sovereignty over the territory affected.

This was the situation when the Peace Conference met in Paris. Germany had forced China in 1898 to give up certain rights in the Province of Shantung. Japan took these rights by force in 1914 and, through threats, made China agree in 1915 to accept its handling of them when they were legally transferred by treaty after the war. In 1917, when China entered the war against Germany, it declared all treaties and agreements with Germany null, meaning those ceded rights no longer existed and couldn’t be legally transferred by Germany to Japan through the Treaty of Peace, since the title was with China. In reality, any transfer or handling of the rights in Shantung that originally belonged to Germany would actually mean transferring rights that solely belonged to China, which would strip that country of part of its full sovereignty over the territory in question.

While this view of the extinguishment of the German rights in Shantung was manifestly the just one and its adoption would make for the preservation of permanent peace in the Far East, the Governments of the Allied Powers had, early in 1917, and prior to the severance of diplomatic relations between China and Germany, acceded to the request of Japan to support, "on the occasion of the Peace Conference," her claims in regard to these rights which then existed. The representatives of Great Britain, France, and Italy at Paris were thus restricted, or at least embarrassed, by the promises which their Governments had made at a time when they were in no position to refuse Japan's request. They might have stood on the legal ground that the Treaty of 1898 having been abrogated by China no German rights in Shantung were in being at the time of the Peace Conference, but they apparently were unwilling to take that position. Possibly they assumed that the ground was one which they could not take in view of the undertakings of their Governments; or possibly they preferred to let the United States bear the brunt of Japanese resentment for interfering with the ambitious schemes of the Japanese Government in regard to China. There can be little doubt that political, and possibly commercial, interests influenced the attitude of the European Powers in regard to the Shantung Question.

While this view of ending German rights in Shantung was clearly the fair one and adopting it would contribute to lasting peace in the Far East, the Allied Powers' governments had, early in 1917, and before diplomatic relations between China and Germany were cut, agreed to Japan's request to support its claims regarding these existing rights "on the occasion of the Peace Conference." The representatives of Great Britain, France, and Italy in Paris were thus limited, or at least put in a difficult position, by the promises their governments had made at a time when they couldn't refuse Japan's request. They could have argued that since the Treaty of 1898 had been annulled by China, there were no German rights in Shantung at the Peace Conference, but they seemed reluctant to take that stance. They may have believed that this argument was not an option due to their governments' commitments; or perhaps they preferred to let the United States take the heat for Japanese anger at interfering with Japan's ambitious plans in China. It is clear that political, and possibly commercial, interests played a role in the European Powers' stance on the Shantung Question.

President Wilson and the American Commissioners, unhampered by previous commitments, were strongly opposed to acceding to the demands of the Japanese Government. The subject had been frequently considered during the early days of the negotiations and there seemed to be no divergence of views as to the justice of the Chinese claim of right to the resumption of full sovereignty over the territory affected by the lease and the concessions to Germany. These views were further strengthened by the presentation of the question before the Council of Ten. On January 27 the Japanese argued their case before the Council, the Chinese delegates being present; and on the 28th Dr. V.K. Wellington Koo spoke on behalf of China. In a note on the meeting I recorded that "he simply overwhelmed the Japanese with his argument." I believe that that opinion was common to all those who heard the two presentations. In fact it made such an impression on the Japanese themselves, that one of the delegates called upon me the following day and attempted to offset the effect by declaring that the United States, since it had not promised to support Japan's contention, would be blamed if Kiao-Chau was returned directly to China. He added that there was intense feeling in Japan in regard to the matter. It was an indirect threat of what would happen to the friendly relations between the two countries if Japan's claim was denied.

President Wilson and the American Commissioners, free from prior commitments, were strongly against giving in to the demands of the Japanese Government. This topic had been discussed often during the early stages of the negotiations, and there seemed to be no disagreement on the fairness of the Chinese claim to regain full sovereignty over the territory involved in the lease and the concessions to Germany. These views were further bolstered by the discussion held before the Council of Ten. On January 27, the Japanese presented their case to the Council, with the Chinese delegates in attendance; then on the 28th, Dr. V.K. Wellington Koo spoke on behalf of China. In a note about the meeting, I noted that "he simply overwhelmed the Japanese with his argument." I believe that this sentiment was shared by everyone who heard the two presentations. In fact, it made such an impact on the Japanese delegates that one of them came to see me the next day and tried to counter the effect by claiming that the United States, since it hadn't promised to support Japan's position, would be held responsible if Kiao-Chau was returned directly to China. He added that there was strong sentiment in Japan regarding this issue. It was an indirect threat about what could happen to the friendly relations between the two countries if Japan's claim was denied.

The sessions of the Commission on the League of Nations and the absence of President Wilson from Paris interrupted further consideration of the Shantung Question until the latter part of March, when the Council of Four came into being. As the subject had been fully debated in January before the Council of Ten, final decision lay with the Council of Four. What discussions took place in the latter council I do not know on account of the secrecy which was observed as to their deliberations. But I presume that the President stood firmly for the Chinese rights, as the matter remained undecided until the latter part of April.

The meetings of the Commission on the League of Nations and President Wilson’s absence from Paris delayed further discussion of the Shantung Question until late March, when the Council of Four was formed. Since the topic had been thoroughly debated in January before the Council of Ten, the final decision rested with the Council of Four. I’m not aware of the discussions that occurred in that council due to the secrecy surrounding their meetings. However, I assume that the President strongly supported Chinese rights, as the issue remained unresolved until late April.

On the 21st of April Baron Makino and Viscount Chinda called upon me in regard to the question, and I frankly told them that they ought to prove the justice of the Japanese claim, that they had not done it and that I doubted their ability to do so. I found, too, that the President had proposed that the Five Powers act as trustees of the former German rights in Shantung, but that the Japanese delegates had declared that they could not consent to the proposition, which was in the nature of a compromise intended to bridge over the existing situation that, on account of the near approach of the completion of the Treaty, was becoming more and more acute.

On April 21st, Baron Makino and Viscount Chinda met with me to discuss the issue, and I openly told them that they needed to prove the validity of Japan's claim, which they hadn't done, and I doubted their ability to do so. I also learned that the President had suggested that the Five Powers act as trustees for the former German rights in Shantung, but the Japanese delegates said they couldn't agree to that proposal, which was meant as a compromise to resolve the escalating situation as the completion of the Treaty drew closer.

On April 26 the President, at a conference with the American Commissioners, showed deep concern over the existing state of the controversy, and asked me to see the Japanese delegates again and endeavor to dissuade them from insisting on their demands and to induce them to consider the international trusteeship proposed. The evening of the same day the two Japanese came by request to my office and conferred with Professor E.T. Williams, the Commission's principal adviser on Far Eastern affairs, and with me. After an hour's conversation Viscount Chinda made it very clear that Japan intended to insist on her "pound of flesh." It was apparent both to Mr. Williams and to me that nothing could be done to obtain even a compromise, though it was on the face favorable to Japan, since it recognized the existence of the German rights, which China claimed were annulled.

On April 26, the President, during a meeting with the American Commissioners, expressed serious concern about the current state of the controversy and asked me to meet with the Japanese delegates again to try to persuade them to drop their demands and consider the proposed international trusteeship. That evening, the two Japanese delegates came to my office at my request and spoke with Professor E.T. Williams, the Commission's main adviser on Far Eastern issues, and me. After an hour of discussion, Viscount Chinda made it very clear that Japan was determined to insist on its "pound of flesh." It was obvious to both Mr. Williams and me that nothing could be done to reach even a compromise, even though on the surface it favored Japan, since it acknowledged the existence of the German rights that China claimed were canceled.

On April 28 I gave a full report of the interview to Mr. White and General Bliss at our regular morning meeting. Later in the morning the President telephoned me and I informed him of the fixed determination of the Japanese to insist upon their claims. What occurred between the time of my conversation with the President and the plenary session of the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace in the afternoon, at which the Covenant of the League of Nations was adopted, I do not actually know, but the presumption is that the Japanese were promised a satisfactory settlement in regard to Shantung, since they announced that they would not press an amendment on "racial equality" at the session, an amendment upon which they had indicated they intended to insist.

On April 28, I gave a detailed report of the interview to Mr. White and General Bliss at our usual morning meeting. Later that morning, the President called me, and I told him about the Japanese's firm determination to stand by their claims. What happened between my conversation with the President and the afternoon plenary session of the Conference on the Preliminaries of Peace, where the Covenant of the League of Nations was adopted, is unclear to me, but it seems likely that the Japanese were promised a satisfactory resolution regarding Shantung, since they announced they wouldn't push for an amendment on "racial equality" during the session, an amendment they had previously indicated they would insist on.

After the meeting of the Conference I made the following memorandum of the situation:

After the conference meeting, I wrote down the following notes about the situation:

"At the Plenary Session of the Peace Conference this afternoon Baron Makino spoke of his proposed amendment to the Covenant declaring 'racial equality,' but said he would not press it.

"At the Plenary Session of the Peace Conference this afternoon, Baron Makino talked about his proposed amendment to the Covenant declaring 'racial equality,' but mentioned he wouldn't pursue it."

"I concluded from what the President said to me that he was disposed to accede to Japan's claims in regard to Kiao-Chau and Shantung. He also showed me a letter from —— to Makino saying he was sorry their claims had not been finally settled before the Session.

"I gathered from what the President told me that he was inclined to agree to Japan's claims about Kiao-Chau and Shantung. He also showed me a letter from —— to Makino expressing regret that their claims hadn't been resolved before the Session."

"From all this I am forced to the conclusion that a bargain has been struck by which the Japanese agree to sign the Covenant in exchange for admission of their claims. If so, it is an iniquitous agreement.

"From all this, I have to conclude that a deal has been made in which the Japanese agree to sign the Covenant in exchange for recognition of their claims. If that's the case, it's an unjust agreement."

"Apparently the President is going to do this to avoid Japan's declining to enter the League of Nations. It is a surrender of the principle of self-determination, a transfer of millions of Chinese from one foreign master to another. This is another of those secret arrangements which have riddled the 'Fourteen Points' and are wrecking a just peace.

"Looks like the President is planning to do this to stop Japan from refusing to join the League of Nations. It's giving up on the principle of self-determination, just moving millions of Chinese from one foreign ruler to another. This is yet another one of those secret deals that have undermined the 'Fourteen Points' and are ruining a fair peace."

"In my opinion it would be better to let Japan stay out of the League than to abandon China and surrender our prestige in the Far East for 'a mess of pottage'—and a mess it is. I fear that it is too late to do anything to save the situation."

"In my opinion, it would be better to let Japan stay out of the League than to abandon China and give up our standing in the Far East for 'a bowl of soup'—and it is indeed a mess. I worry that it’s too late to do anything to fix the situation."

Mr. White, General Bliss, and I, at our meeting that morning before the plenary session, and later when we conferred as to what had taken place at the session, were unanimous in our opinions that China's rights should be sustained even if Japan withdrew from the Peace Conference. We were all indignant at the idea of submitting to the Japanese demands and agreed that the President should be told of our attitude, because we were unwilling to have it appear that we in any way approved of acceding to Japan's claims or even of compromising them.

Mr. White, General Bliss, and I met that morning before the main session, and later when we discussed what had happened during the session, we all agreed that China's rights should be upheld even if Japan decided to pull out of the Peace Conference. We were all outraged at the thought of giving in to Japan's demands and agreed that the President needed to be informed of our stance, because we didn't want it to seem like we in any way supported Japan's claims or were even willing to compromise on them.

General Bliss volunteered to write the President a letter on the subject, a course which Mr. White and I heartily endorsed.

General Bliss offered to write a letter to the President about the topic, a move that Mr. White and I fully supported.

The next morning the General read the following letter to us and with our entire approval sent it to Mr. Wilson:

The next morning, the General read us the following letter and, with our full approval, sent it to Mr. Wilson:

"Hôtel de Crillon, Paris

"Hotel de Crillon, Paris"

"April 29, 1919

"April 29, 1919"

"MY DEAR MR. PRESIDENT:

"Last Saturday morning you told the American Delegation that you desired suggestions, although not at that moment, in regard to the pending matter of certain conflicting claims between Japan and China centering about the alleged German rights. My principal interest in the matter is with sole reference to the question of the moral right or wrong involved. From this point of view I discussed the matter this morning with Mr. Lansing and Mr. White. They concurred with me and requested me to draft a hasty note to you on the subject.

"Last Saturday morning, you mentioned to the American Delegation that you wanted suggestions about the ongoing issue of conflicting claims between Japan and China regarding the supposed German rights, although not immediately. My main concern is focused solely on the question of the moral rights and wrongs involved. From this perspective, I talked about it this morning with Mr. Lansing and Mr. White. They agreed with me and asked me to quickly write you a note on the subject."

"Since your conference with us last Saturday, I have asked myself three or four Socratic questions the answers to which make me, personally, quite sure on which side the moral right lies.

"Since our meeting last Saturday, I've been thinking about three or four Socratic questions, and the answers make me pretty confident about where the moral high ground is."

"First. Japan bases certain of her claims on the right acquired by conquest. I asked myself the following questions: Suppose Japan had not succeeded in her efforts to force the capitulation of the Germans at Tsing-Tsau; suppose that the armistice of November 11th had found her still fighting the Germans at that place, just as the armistice found the English still fighting the Germans in South-East Africa. We would then oblige Germany to dispose of her claims in China by a clause in the Treaty of Peace. Would it occur to any one that, as a matter of right, we should force Germany to cede her claims to Japan rather than to China? It seems to me that it would occur to every American that we would then have the opportunity that we have long desired to force Germany to correct, in favor of China, the great wrong which she began to do to the latter in 1898. What moral right has Japan acquired by her conquest of Shantung assisted by the British? If Great Britain and Japan secured no moral right to sovereignty over various savages inhabiting islands in the Pacific Ocean, but, on the other hand, we held that these peoples shall be governed by mandates under the League of Nations, what moral right has Japan acquired to the suzerainty (which she would undoubtedly eventually have) over 30,000,000 Chinese in the sacred province of Shantung?

First. Japan bases some of her claims on the rights gained through conquest. I asked myself these questions: What if Japan hadn’t succeeded in forcing the Germans to surrender at Tsing-Tsau? What if the armistice on November 11th found her still fighting the Germans there, just like the armistice found the English still battling the Germans in South-East Africa? In that case, we would have to make Germany settle her claims in China through a clause in the Treaty of Peace. Would anyone think that we should force Germany to hand over her claims to Japan instead of China? I believe every American would see that we would finally have the chance we've long wanted to make Germany right the significant wrong she started against China in 1898. What moral right has Japan gained from her conquest of Shantung, assisted by the British? If Great Britain and Japan didn't gain any moral right to sovereignty over various indigenous peoples living on islands in the Pacific Ocean, but instead we believe these people should be governed by mandates under the League of Nations, what moral right does Japan have to eventually have control over 30 million Chinese in the sacred province of Shantung?

"Second. Japan must base her claims either on the Convention with China or on the right of conquest, or on both. Let us consider her moral right under either of these points.

"Second. Japan needs to support her claims either with the Convention with China or through the right of conquest, or both. Let's examine her moral right under either of these aspects."

"a) If the United States has not before this recognized the validity of the rights claimed by Japan under her Convention with China, what has happened since the Armistice that would justify us in recognizing their validity now?

"a) If the United States has not previously acknowledged the validity of the rights claimed by Japan based on her agreement with China, what has transpired since the Armistice that would warrant us recognizing their validity now?"

"b) If Germany had possessed territory, in full sovereignty, on the east coast of Asia, a right to this territory, under international law, could have been obtained by conquest. But Germany possessed no such territory. What then was left for Japan to acquire by conquest? Apparently nothing but a lease extorted under compulsion from China by Germany. I understand that international lawyers hold that such a lease, or the rights acquired, justly or unjustly, under it, cannot be acquired by conquest.

"b) If Germany had owned territory, with full sovereignty, on the east coast of Asia, it could have claimed rights to that territory through conquest, according to international law. However, Germany did not own such territory. So, what was left for Japan to gain through conquest? It seems like the only thing was a lease that Germany forced from China. I’ve heard that international lawyers argue that such a lease, or the rights obtained from it, whether fairly or unfairly, cannot be claimed through conquest."

"Third. Suppose Germany says to us, 'We will cede our lease and all rights under it, but we will cede them back to China.' Will we recognize the justice of Japan's claims to such an extent that we will threaten Germany with further war unless she cedes these rights to Japan rather than to China?

"Third. Imagine Germany tells us, 'We will give up our lease and all rights related to it, but we will return them to China.' Will we acknowledge the validity of Japan's claims enough to threaten Germany with more conflict unless they hand these rights over to Japan instead of China?"

"Again, suppose that Germany, in her hopelessness of resistance to our demands, should sign without question a clause ceding these rights to Japan, even though we know that this is so wrong that we would not fight in order to compel Germany to do it, what moral justification would we have in making Germany do this?

"Again, let’s say that Germany, feeling completely helpless against our demands, agrees without hesitation to a clause giving these rights to Japan, even though we know it’s wrong and we wouldn’t go to war to force Germany to do it. What moral justification would we have in making Germany do this?"

"Fourth. Stripped of all words that befog the issue, would we not, under the guise of making a treaty with Germany, really be making a treaty with Japan by which we compel one of our Allies (China) to cede against her will these things to Japan? Would not this action be really more unjustifiable than the one which you have refused to be a party to on the Dalmatian Coast? Because, in the latter case, the territory in dispute did not belong to one of the Allies, but to one of the Central Powers; the question in Dalmatia is as to which of two friendly powers we shall give territory taken from an enemy power; in China the question is, shall we take certain claimed rights from one friendly power in order to give them to another friendly power.

Fourth. If we strip away all the confusing language, wouldn't we, while pretending to make a treaty with Germany, actually be making a treaty with Japan that forces one of our Allies (China) to give up these things against its will? Wouldn't this be even more unjustifiable than the situation you refused to be part of on the Dalmatian Coast? Because, in that case, the territory in question didn’t belong to an Ally, but to one of the Central Powers; the issue in Dalmatia is about which of two friendly nations we should give territory taken from an enemy power; in China, it’s about whether we should take certain claimed rights from one friendly nation to hand them over to another friendly nation.

"It would seem to be advisable to call particular attention to what the Japanese mean when they say that they will return Kiao-chow to China. They do not offer to return the railway, the mines or the port, i.e., Tsingtau. The leased territory included a portion of land on the north-east side of the entrance of the Bay and another on the south-west and some islands. It is a small territory. The 50 Kilometer Zone was not included. That was a limitation put upon the movement of German troops. They could not go beyond the boundary of the zone. Within this zone China enjoyed all rights of sovereignty and administration.

"It seems important to point out what the Japanese mean when they say they will return Kiao-chow to China. They do not plan to return the railway, the mines, or the port, meaning Tsingtau. The leased territory included a small area of land on the northeast side of the entrance to the Bay and another on the southwest, along with some islands. It's a small territory. The 50 Kilometer Zone wasn’t included. That was a limitation imposed on the movement of German troops. They couldn’t go beyond the boundary of that zone. Within this zone, China retained all rights of sovereignty and administration."

"Japan's proposal to abandon the zone is somewhat of an impertinence, since she has violated it ever since she took possession. She kept troops all along the railway line until recently and insists on maintaining in the future a guard at Tsinan, 254 miles away. The zone would restrict her military movements, consequently she gives it up.

"Japan's suggestion to give up the zone is a bit disrespectful since it has ignored it ever since taking control. It has maintained troops along the railway line until recently and insists on keeping a guard at Tsinan, 254 miles away, in the future. The zone would limit Japan's military actions, so she chooses to abandon it."

"The proposals she makes are (1) to open the whole bay. It is from 15 to 20 miles from the entrance to the northern shore of the bay. (2) To have a Japanese exclusive concession at a-place to be designated by her, i.e., she can take just as much as she likes of the territory around the bay. It may be as large as the present leased territory, but more likely it will include only the best part of Tsingtau. What then does she give up? Nothing but such parts of the leased territory as are of no value.

"The proposals she makes are (1) to open the entire bay. It's about 15 to 20 miles from the entrance to the northern shore of the bay. (2) To have a Japanese exclusive concession at a-place to be designated by her, meaning she can take as much territory around the bay as she wants. It could be as large as the current leased territory, but it's more likely to include just the best parts of Tsingtau. So, what does she give up? Only the parts of the leased territory that have no value."

"The operation then would amount chiefly to an exchange of two pieces of paper—one cancelling the lease for 78 years, the other granting a more valuable concession which would amount to a permanent title to the port. Why take two years to go through this operation?

"The operation would mainly involve swapping two pieces of paper—one that cancels the 78-year lease and another that grants a more valuable concession, essentially giving a permanent title to the port. Why take two years to complete this process?"

"If it be right for a policeman, who recovers your purse, to keep the contents and claim that he has fulfilled his duty in returning the empty purse, then Japan's conduct may be tolerated.

"If it's acceptable for a policeman, who finds your purse, to keep the contents and say he's done his job by returning the empty purse, then Japan's actions might be overlooked."

   "If it be right for Japan to annex the territory of an Ally, then it
   cannot be wrong for Italy to retain Fiume taken from the enemy.

"If it's okay for Japan to take the land of an Ally, then it
can't be wrong for Italy to keep Fiume taken from the enemy.

   "If we support Japan's claim, we abandon the democracy of China to
   the domination of the Prussianized militarism of Japan.

"If we back Japan's claim, we give up China's democracy to
the control of Japan's militarized Prussian-style rule.

"We shall be sowing dragons' teeth.

"We will be planting dragons' teeth."

"It can't be right to do wrong even to make peace. Peace is desirable, but there are things dearer than peace, justice and freedom.

"It can't be right to do something wrong just to achieve peace. Peace is important, but there are things more valuable than peace: justice and freedom."

"Sincerely yours

"Best regards"

"THE PRESIDENT
"T.H. BLISS"

I have not discussed certain modifications proposed by the Japanese delegates, since, as is clear from General Bliss's letter, they amounted to nothing and were merely a pretense of concession and without substantial value.

I haven’t talked about some of the changes suggested by the Japanese delegates because, as General Bliss's letter makes clear, they didn’t mean much and were just a show of compromise without any real value.

The day following the delivery of this letter to the President (April 30), by which he was fully advised of the attitude of General Bliss, Mr. White, and myself in regard to the Japanese claims, the Council of Four reached its final decision of the matter, in which necessarily Mr. Wilson acquiesced. I learned of this decision the same evening. The memorandum which I made the next morning in regard to the matter is as follows:

The day after this letter was delivered to the President (April 30), which fully informed him of the positions of General Bliss, Mr. White, and me concerning the Japanese claims, the Council of Four made its final decision on the matter, which Mr. Wilson had to agree to. I found out about this decision that same evening. The memorandum I wrote the next morning regarding the matter is as follows:

"China has been abandoned to Japanese rapacity. A democratic territory has been given over to an autocratic government. The President has conceded to Japan all that, if not more than, she ever hoped to obtain. This is the information contained in a memorandum handed by Ray Stannard Baker under the President's direction to the Chinese delegation last evening, a copy of which reached me through Mr. —— [of the Chinese delegation].

"China has been left to Japanese greed. A democratic area has been turned over to an authoritarian government. The President has given Japan everything she ever expected to gain, if not more. This is the information included in a memorandum delivered by Ray Stannard Baker under the President's instructions to the Chinese delegation last night, a copy of which I received through Mr. —— [of the Chinese delegation]."

"Mr. —— also said that Mr. Baker stated that the President desired him to say that the President was very sorry that he had not been able to do more for China but that he had been compelled to accede to Japan's demand 'in order to save the League of Nations.'

"Mr. —— also said that Mr. Baker mentioned that the President wanted him to convey that the President was very sorry he hadn’t been able to do more for China but that he had to give in to Japan's demand 'to save the League of Nations.'"

"The memorandum was most depressing. Though I had anticipated something of the sort three days ago [see note of April 28 previously quoted], I had unconsciously cherished a hope that the President would stand to his guns and champion China's cause. He has failed to do so. It is true that China is given the shell called 'sovereignty,' but the economic control, the kernel, is turned over to Japan.

The memo was really disappointing. Even though I expected something like this three days ago [see note of April 28 previously quoted], I secretly hoped that the President would stick to his principles and support China's case. He hasn't done that. It's true that China has been given the outer layer called 'sovereignty,' but the real control over the economy has been handed to Japan.

"However logical may appear the argument that China's political integrity is preserved and will be maintained under the guaranty of the League of Nations, the fact is that Japan will rule over millions of Chinese. Furthermore it is still a matter of conjecture how valuable the guaranty of the League will prove to be. It has, of course, never been tried, and Japan's representation on the Council will possibly thwart any international action in regard to China.

"Although the argument that China's political stability is safeguarded and will be upheld by the League of Nations may seem logical, the reality is that Japan will have control over millions of Chinese people. Moreover, it's still uncertain how effective the League's guarantee will actually be. It has, after all, never been tested, and Japan's position on the Council may hinder any international efforts concerning China."

"Frankly my policy would have been to say to the Japanese, 'If you do not give back to China what Germany stole from her, we don't want you in the League of Nations.' If the Japanese had taken offense and gone, I would have welcomed it, for we would have been well rid of a government with such imperial designs. But she would not have gone. She would have submitted. She has attained a high place in world councils. Her astute statesmen would never have abandoned her present exalted position even for the sake of Kiao-Chau. The whole affair assumes a sordid and sinister character, in which the President, acting undoubtedly with the best of motives, became the cat's-paw.

Honestly, my approach would have been to tell the Japanese, 'If you don't return to China what Germany took from her, we don't want you in the League of Nations.' If the Japanese had felt insulted and left, I would have been glad because we would have been better off without a government with such imperial ambitions. But they wouldn’t have left. They would have complied. They have achieved a prominent role in global politics. Their clever leaders would never give up their current high status, even for Kiao-Chau. The whole situation looks bleak and sinister, where the President, acting with undoubtedly good intentions, became a pawn.

"I have no doubt that the President fully believed that the League of Nations was in jeopardy and that to save it he was compelled to subordinate every other consideration. The result was that China was offered up as a sacrifice to propitiate the threatening Moloch of Japan. When you get down to facts the threats were nothing but 'bluff.'

"I have no doubt that the President truly believed that the League of Nations was at risk and that to save it, he had to prioritize it above everything else. The outcome was that China was sacrificed to appease the looming threat of Japan. When you look at the facts, the threats were really nothing more than 'bluff.'"

"I do not think that anything that has happened here has caused more severe or more outspoken criticism than this affair. I am heartsick over it, because I see how much good-will and regard the President is bound to lose. I can offer no adequate explanation to the critics. There seems to be none."

"I don't think anything that has happened here has led to more severe or vocal criticism than this incident. I'm really upset about it because I can see how much goodwill and respect the President is going to lose. I can't provide a good explanation to the critics. It seems there isn’t one."

It is manifest, from the foregoing recital of events leading up to the decision in regard to the Shantung Question and the apparent reasons for the President's agreement to support the Japanese claims, that we radically differed as to the decision which was embodied in Articles 156, 157, and 158 of the Treaty of Versailles (see Appendix VI, p. 318). I do not think that we held different opinions as to the justice of the Chinese position, though probably the soundness of the legal argument in favor of the extinguishment of the German rights appealed more strongly to me than it did to Mr. Wilson. Our chief differences were, first, that it was more important to insure the acceptance of the Covenant of the League of Nations than to do strict justice to China; second, that the Japanese withdrawal from the Conference would prevent the formation of the League; and, third, that Japan would have withdrawn if her claims had been denied. As to these differences our opposite views remained unchanged after the Treaty of Versailles was signed.

It's clear from the events leading up to the decision about the Shantung Question and the reasons for the President's support of Japanese claims that we had significant disagreements regarding the decision stated in Articles 156, 157, and 158 of the Treaty of Versailles (see Appendix VI, p. 318). I don't believe we had different opinions on the justice of the Chinese position, though I probably found the legal arguments for the end of German rights more convincing than Mr. Wilson did. Our main differences were, first, that it was more important to ensure the acceptance of the Covenant of the League of Nations than to provide strict justice to China; second, that Japan's withdrawal from the Conference would block the formation of the League; and third, that Japan would have pulled out if their claims had been rejected. Regarding these differences, our views remained unchanged after the Treaty of Versailles was signed.

When I was summoned before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations on August 6, 1919, I told the Committee that, in my opinion, the Japanese signatures would have been affixed to the Treaty containing the Covenant even though Shantung had not been delivered over to Japan, and that the only reason that I had yielded was because it was my duty to follow the decision of the President of the United States.

When I was called before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations on August 6, 1919, I told the Committee that, in my view, the Japanese would have signed the Treaty with the Covenant even if Shantung hadn't been transferred to Japan, and that the only reason I gave in was because I felt it was my responsibility to follow the decision of the President of the United States.

About two weeks later, August 19, the President had a conference at the White House with the same Committee. In answer to questions regarding the Shantung Settlement, Mr. Wilson said concerning my statement that his judgment was different from mine, that in his judgment the signatures could not have been obtained if he had not given Shantung to Japan, and that he had been notified that the Japanese delegates had been instructed not to sign the Treaty unless the cession of the German rights in Shantung to Japan was included.

About two weeks later, on August 19, the President held a meeting at the White House with the same Committee. In response to questions about the Shantung Settlement, Mr. Wilson remarked regarding my statement that his view differed from mine, stating that he believed the signatures could not have been secured if he hadn’t given Shantung to Japan, and that he had been informed that the Japanese delegates were instructed not to sign the Treaty without the transfer of German rights in Shantung to Japan being included.

Presumably the opinion which Mr. Wilson held in the summer of 1919 he continues to hold, and for my part my views and feelings remain the same now as they were then, with possibly the difference that the indignation and shame that I felt at the time in being in any way a participant in robbing China of her just rights have increased rather than lessened.

Presumably, the opinion Mr. Wilson had in the summer of 1919 is still the same, and for my part, my views and feelings are unchanged from then, with the possible difference that the anger and shame I felt about being involved in taking China’s rightful claims have grown rather than diminished.

So intense was the bitterness among the American Commissioners over the flagrant wrong being perpetrated that, when the decision of the Council of Four was known, some of them considered whether or not they ought to resign or give notice that they would not sign the Treaty if the articles concerning Shantung appeared. The presence at Versailles of the German plenipotentiaries, the uncertainty of the return of the Italian delegates then in Rome, and the murmurs of dissatisfaction among the delegates of the lesser nations made the international situation precarious. To have added to the serious conditions and to have possibly precipitated a crisis by openly rebelling against the President was to assume a responsibility which no Commissioner was willing to take. With the greatest reluctance the American Commissioners submitted to the decision of the Council of Four; and, when the Chinese delegates refused to sign the Treaty after they had been denied the right to sign it with reservations to the Shantung articles, the American Commissioners, who had so strongly opposed the settlement, silently approved their conduct as the only patriotic and statesmanlike course to take. So far as China was concerned the Shantung Question remained open, and the Chinese Government very properly refused, after the Treaty of Versailles was signed, to enter into any negotiations with Japan looking toward its settlement upon the basis of the treaty provisions.

The bitterness among the American Commissioners was so intense over the blatant wrong being done that, when they learned the decision of the Council of Four, some considered resigning or declaring they wouldn’t sign the Treaty if the articles concerning Shantung were included. The presence of the German representatives in Versailles, the uncertainty surrounding the return of the Italian delegates back in Rome, and the rising dissatisfaction among the delegates from smaller nations made the international situation unstable. Adding to these serious conditions by openly going against the President would have created a crisis that no Commissioner was willing to risk. Reluctantly, the American Commissioners accepted the decision of the Council of Four, and when the Chinese delegates refused to sign the Treaty after they were denied the right to do so with reservations to the Shantung articles, the American Commissioners, who had strongly opposed the settlement, quietly supported their decision as the only patriotic and statesmanlike option. As far as China was concerned, the Shantung Question remained unresolved, and the Chinese Government rightly refused to negotiate with Japan regarding its settlement based on the treaty provisions after the Treaty of Versailles was signed.

There was one exception to the President's usual practice which is especially noticeable in connection with the Shantung controversy, and that was the greater participation which he permitted the members of the American Commission in negotiating with both the Japanese and the Chinese. It is true he did not disclose his intentions to the Commissioners, but he did express a wish for their advice and he directed me to confer with the Japanese and obtain their views. Just why he adopted this course, for him unusual, I do not know unless he felt that so far as the equity of China's claim was concerned we were all in agreement, and if there was to be a departure from strict justice he desired to have his colleagues suggest a way to do so. It is possible, too, that he felt the question was in large measure a legal one, and decided that the illegality of transferring the German rights to Japan could be more successfully presented to the Japanese delegates by a lawyer. In any event, in this particular case he adopted a course more in accord with established custom and practice than he did in any other of the many perplexing and difficult problems which he was called upon to solve during the Paris negotiations, excepting of course the subjects submitted to commissions of the Conference. As has been shown, Mr. Wilson did not follow the advice of the three Commissioners given him in General Bliss's letter, but that does not detract from the noteworthiness of the fact that in the case of Shantung he sought advice from his Commissioners.

There was one exception to the President's usual practice that stands out, particularly regarding the Shantung issue, and that was the increased involvement he allowed the members of the American Commission in discussions with both the Japanese and the Chinese. It's true he didn’t share his intentions with the Commissioners, but he did ask for their input and instructed me to talk with the Japanese to get their opinions. I’m not sure why he took this unusual approach, unless he felt we all agreed on the fairness of China's claim, and if there was going to be a departure from strict justice, he wanted his colleagues to suggest how to handle it. It’s also possible he thought the matter was largely a legal issue and that a lawyer could present the argument about the illegality of transferring German rights to Japan more effectively to the Japanese delegates. Regardless, in this specific situation, he followed a course that aligned more with established customs and practices than in any other of the many complex problems he faced during the Paris negotiations, except for those topics given to the commissions of the Conference. As noted, Mr. Wilson didn’t follow the advice from the three Commissioners as given in General Bliss’s letter, but that doesn’t lessen the significance of the fact that, in the case of Shantung, he sought input from his Commissioners.

This ends the account of the Shantung Settlement and the negotiations which led up to it. The consequences were those which were bound to follow so indefensible a decision as the one that was reached. Public opinion in the United States was almost unanimous in condemning it and in denouncing those responsible for so evident a departure from legal justice and the principles of international morality. No plea of expediency or of necessity excused such a flagrant denial of undoubted right. The popular recognition that a great wrong had been done to a nation weak because of political discord and an insufficient military establishment, in order to win favor with a nation strong because of its military power and national unity, had much to do with increasing the hostility to the Treaty and preventing its acceptance by the Senate of the United States. The whole affair furnishes another example of the results of secret diplomacy, for the arguments which prevailed with the President were those to which he listened when he sat in secret council with M. Clemenceau and Mr. Lloyd George.

This concludes the story of the Shantung Settlement and the negotiations that led to it. The outcomes were what you would expect from such an unjust decision. Public opinion in the United States largely condemned it and criticized those responsible for such a clear violation of legal justice and international morality. No argument based on convenience or necessity could justify such a blatant denial of undeniable rights. The widespread acknowledgment that a significant injustice was done to a nation weakened by political strife and a lack of military strength, all to gain favor with a nation that was strong due to its military capabilities and national unity, played a big role in increasing hostility towards the Treaty and blocking its acceptance by the U.S. Senate. The entire situation serves as yet another example of the consequences of secret diplomacy, as the arguments that influenced the President came from discussions he had in private with M. Clemenceau and Mr. Lloyd George.

CHAPTER XIX

THE BULLITT AFFAIR

The foregoing chapters have related to subjects which were known to President Wilson to be matters of difference between us while we were together in Paris and which are presumably referred to in his letter of February 11, 1920, extracts from which are quoted in the opening chapter. The narration might be concluded with our difference of opinion as to the Shantung Settlement, but in view of subsequent information which the President received I am convinced that he felt that my objections to his decisions in regard to the terms of the peace with Germany extended further than he knew at the time, and that he resented the fact that my mind did not go along with his as to these decisions. This undoubtedly added to the reasons for his letter and possibly influenced him to write as he did in February, 1920, even more than our known divergence of judgment during the negotiations.

The previous chapters have discussed issues that President Wilson was aware of as points of disagreement between us when we were in Paris, and which he likely mentioned in his letter from February 11, 1920, excerpts of which are quoted in the opening chapter. We could wrap things up with our differing views on the Shantung Settlement, but considering the additional information the President received, I believe he realized that my objections to his decisions regarding the peace terms with Germany went deeper than he understood at the time, and that he was frustrated that I didn’t share his perspective on these decisions. This likely contributed to the reasons for his letter and may have influenced him to write what he did in February 1920, even more than our known disagreements during the negotiations.

I do not feel, therefore, that the story is complete without at least a brief reference to my views concerning the Treaty of Versailles at the time of its delivery to the German delegates, which were imperfectly disclosed in a statement made by William C. Bullitt on September 12, 1919, at a public hearing before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations. As to the conduct of Mr. Bullitt, who had held a responsible position with the American Commission at Paris, in voluntarily repeating a conversation which was from its nature highly confidential, I make no comment.

I don’t think the story is complete without at least a quick mention of my views on the Treaty of Versailles when it was presented to the German delegates. These views were not fully shared in a statement made by William C. Bullitt on September 12, 1919, at a public hearing before the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations. As for Mr. Bullitt’s actions, he had a key role with the American Commission in Paris, and he chose to share a conversation that was supposed to be highly confidential; I won’t comment further on that.

The portion of the statement, which I have no doubt deeply incensed the
President because it was published while he was in the West making his
appeals to the people in behalf of the Treaty and especially of the
League of Nations, is as follows:

The part of the statement that I’m sure really upset the President because it was published while he was in the West making his appeals to the people for the Treaty and especially for the League of Nations is as follows:

"Mr. Lansing said that he, too, considered many parts of the Treaty thoroughly bad, particularly those dealing with Shantung and the League of Nations. He said: 'I consider that the League of Nations at present is entirely useless. The Great Powers have simply gone ahead and arranged the world to suit themselves. England and France have gotten out of the Treaty everything that they wanted, and the League of Nations can do nothing to alter any of the unjust clauses of the Treaty except by unanimous consent of the members of the League, and the Great Powers will never give their consent to changes in the interests of weaker peoples.'

"Mr. Lansing mentioned that he also saw many aspects of the Treaty as completely flawed, especially those related to Shantung and the League of Nations. He stated: 'I believe the League of Nations is currently useless. The Great Powers have just gone ahead and shaped the world to meet their needs. England and France have extracted everything they wanted from the Treaty, and the League of Nations can’t change any of the unfair terms of the Treaty unless all members agree, and the Great Powers will never agree to changes that benefit weaker nations.'"

"We then talked about the possibility of ratification by the Senate. Mr. Lansing said: 'I believe that if the Senate could only understand what this Treaty means, and if the American people could really understand, it would unquestionably be defeated, but I wonder if they will ever understand what it lets them in for.'" (Senate Doc. 106, 66th Congress, 1st Session, p. 1276.)

"We then discussed the possibility of the Senate ratifying the Treaty. Mr. Lansing said: 'I believe that if the Senate could truly grasp what this Treaty entails, and if the American public really understood it, it would definitely be rejected. But I wonder if they will ever fully realize what they're getting into.'" (Senate Doc. 106, 66th Congress, 1st Session, p. 1276.)

It does not seem an unwarranted conjecture that the President believed that this statement, which was asserted by Mr. Bullitt to be from a memorandum made at the time, indicated that I had been unfaithful to him. He may even have concluded that I had been working against the League of Nations with the intention of bringing about the rejection of the Covenant by the Senate. If he did believe this, I cannot feel that it was other than natural in the circumstances, especially if I did not at once publicly deny the truth of the Bullitt statement. That I could not do because there was sufficient truth in it to compel me to show how, by slight variations and by omissions in the conversation, my words were misunderstood or misinterpreted.

It doesn't seem like a crazy guess that the President thought this statement, which Mr. Bullitt claimed was from a memorandum made at the time, suggested that I had been disloyal to him. He might have even thought that I was working against the League of Nations to encourage the Senate to reject the Covenant. If he really believed this, I can’t say it wasn't understandable given the circumstances, especially since I didn’t immediately deny the truth of the Bullitt statement. I couldn’t do that because there was enough truth in it to require me to explain how, through small variations and omissions in the conversation, my words were misunderstood or misinterpreted.

In view of the fact that I found it impossible to make an absolute denial, I telegraphed the President stating the facts and offering to make them public if he considered it wise to do so. The important part of the telegram, which was dated September 16, 1919, is as follows:

In light of the fact that I found it impossible to give a total denial, I sent a telegram to the President outlining the facts and offering to make them public if he thought it was a good idea. The key part of the telegram, dated September 16, 1919, is as follows:

"On May 17th Bullitt resigned by letter giving his reasons, with which you are familiar. I replied by letter on the 18th without any comment on his reasons. Bullitt on the 19th asked to see me to say good-bye and I saw him. He elaborated on the reasons for his resignation and said that he could not conscientiously give countenance to a treaty which was based on injustice. I told him that I would say nothing against his resigning since he put it on conscientious grounds, and that I recognized that certain features of the Treaty were bad, as I presumed most every one did, but that was probably unavoidable in view of conflicting claims and that nothing ought to be done to prevent the speedy restoration of peace by signing the Treaty. Bullitt then discussed the numerous European commissions provided for by the Treaty on which the United States was to be represented. I told him that I was disturbed by this fact because I was afraid the Senate and possibly the people, if they understood this, would refuse ratification, and that anything which was an obstacle to ratification was unfortunate because we ought to have peace as soon as possible."

"On May 17th, Bullitt resigned via letter explaining his reasons, which you already know. I replied by letter on the 18th without commenting on his reasons. On the 19th, Bullitt asked to meet with me to say goodbye, and I agreed. He went into more detail about why he was resigning, saying he couldn't support a treaty built on injustice. I told him I wouldn't criticize his decision to resign since he was doing it on moral grounds, and I acknowledged that some aspects of the Treaty were problematic, as I assumed most people recognized, but that these issues were probably unavoidable given the conflicting claims. I believed nothing should hinder the swift restoration of peace by signing the Treaty. Bullitt then went over the many European commissions outlined in the Treaty where the United States was supposed to be represented. I expressed my concern about this, fearing that the Senate and possibly the public would refuse ratification if they understood this, and anything that stood in the way of ratification was unfortunate, as we needed peace as soon as possible."

It is very easy to see how by making a record of one side of this conversation without reference to the other side and by an omission here and there, possibly unintentionally, the sense was altered. Thus Mr. Bullitt, by repeating only a part of my words and by omitting the context, entirely changed the meaning of what was said. My attitude was, and I intended to show it at the time, that the Treaty should be signed and ratified at the earliest possible moment because the restoration of peace was paramount and that any provision in the Treaty which might delay the peace, by making uncertain senatorial consent to ratification, was to be deplored.

It's easy to see how recording just one side of this conversation, without acknowledging the other side and leaving out bits here and there—perhaps unintentionally—can change the meaning. Mr. Bullitt, by quoting only part of what I said and ignoring the context, completely altered the original message. My stance was, and I wanted to make it clear at the time, that the Treaty should be signed and ratified as quickly as possible because restoring peace was the top priority. Any part of the Treaty that could delay that, by creating uncertainty around Senate approval for ratification, was something to be regretted.

Having submitted to the President the question of making a public explanation of my interview with Mr. Bullitt which would in a measure at least correct the impression caused by his statement, I could not do so until I received the President's approval. That was never received. The telegram, which was sent to Mr. Wilson, through the Department of State, was never answered. It was not even acknowledged. The consequence was that the version of the conversation given by Mr. Bullitt was the only one that up to the present time has been published.

Having asked the President if I could make a public explanation of my meeting with Mr. Bullitt to help correct the impression left by his statement, I couldn't proceed until I got the President's approval. That approval never came. The telegram sent to Mr. Wilson through the Department of State never got a response. It wasn't even acknowledged. As a result, Mr. Bullitt's account of the conversation is the only one that has been published so far.

The almost unavoidable conclusion from the President's silence is that he considered my explanation was insufficient to destroy or even to weaken materially the effect of Mr. Bullitt's account of what had taken place, and that the public would believe in spite of it that I was opposed to the Treaty and hostile to the League of Nations. I am not disposed to blame the President for holding this opinion considering what had taken place at Paris. From his point of view a statement, such as I was willing to make, would in no way help the situation. I would still be on record as opposed to certain provisions of the Treaty, provisions which he was so earnestly defending in his addresses. While Mr. Bullitt had given an incomplete report of our conversation, there was sufficient truth in it to make anything but a flat denial seem of little value to the President; and, as I could not make such a denial, his point of view seemed to be that the damage was done and could not be undone. I am inclined to think that he was right.

The nearly unavoidable conclusion from the President's silence is that he felt my explanation wasn't enough to counter or even significantly lessen the impact of Mr. Bullitt's account of what happened. He believed the public would still think I was against the Treaty and opposed to the League of Nations. I don't blame the President for holding this view, considering what happened in Paris. From his perspective, a statement like the one I was prepared to make wouldn’t help the situation at all. I would still appear to be against certain parts of the Treaty, parts that he was passionately defending in his speeches. Although Mr. Bullitt provided an incomplete version of our conversation, there was enough truth in it that anything short of a complete denial would seem of little worth to the President. Since I couldn't make such a denial, it seemed to him that the damage was done and couldn't be reversed. I tend to think he was right.

My views concerning the Treaty at the time of the conversation with Mr. Bullitt are expressed in a memorandum of May 8, 1919, which is as follows:

My thoughts on the Treaty during my discussion with Mr. Bullitt are outlined in a memo dated May 8, 1919, which is as follows:

"The terms of peace were yesterday delivered to the German plenipotentiaries, and for the first time in these days of feverish rush of preparation there is time to consider the Treaty as a complete document.

"The terms of peace were delivered to the German representatives yesterday, and for the first time amidst the frantic preparations, there's time to evaluate the Treaty as a complete document."

"The impression made by it is one of disappointment, of regret, and of depression. The terms of peace appear immeasurably harsh and humiliating, while many of them seem to me impossible of performance.

The impression it leaves is one of disappointment, regret, and sadness. The terms of peace seem incredibly harsh and humiliating, while many of them appear impossible to fulfill.

"The League of Nations created by the Treaty is relied upon to preserve the artificial structure which has been erected by compromise of the conflicting interests of the Great Powers and to prevent the germination of the seeds of war which are sown in so many articles and which under normal conditions would soon bear fruit. The League might as well attempt to prevent the growth of plant life in a tropical jungle. Wars will come sooner or later.

"The League of Nations, established by the Treaty, is expected to maintain the fragile structure built on the compromises of the Great Powers' conflicting interests and to stop the roots of war, which are embedded in so many articles and would normally flourish quickly. The League might as well try to stop plant life from growing in a tropical jungle. Wars will happen sooner or later."

"It must be admitted in honesty that the League is an instrument of the mighty to check the normal growth of national power and national aspirations among those who have been rendered impotent by defeat. Examine the Treaty and you will find peoples delivered against their wills into the hands of those whom they hate, while their economic resources are torn from them and given to others. Resentment and bitterness, if not desperation, are bound to be the consequences of such provisions. It may be years before these oppressed peoples are able to throw off the yoke, but as sure as day follows night the time will come when they will make the effort.

It has to be honestly acknowledged that the League is a tool for the powerful to restrict the natural growth of national strength and ambitions of those who have been weakened by defeat. If you look at the Treaty, you’ll see people forced against their will into the hands of those they despise, while their economic resources are taken from them and handed over to others. Resentment and bitterness, if not outright desperation, are almost guaranteed outcomes of such arrangements. It may take years for these oppressed people to break free from this oppression, but just as day follows night, the time will inevitably come when they will try to fight back.

"This war was fought by the United States to destroy forever the conditions which produced it. Those conditions have not been destroyed. They have been supplanted by other conditions equally productive of hatred, jealousy, and suspicion. In place of the Triple Alliance and the Entente has arisen the Quintuple Alliance which is to rule the world. The victors in this war intend to impose their combined will upon the vanquished and to subordinate all interests to their own.

"This war was fought by the United States to eliminate the conditions that caused it once and for all. Those conditions still exist. They have been replaced by other conditions that generate just as much hatred, jealousy, and suspicion. Instead of the Triple Alliance and the Entente, we now have the Quintuple Alliance, which aims to dominate the world. The victors of this war plan to enforce their combined will on those who lost and to prioritize their interests above all others."

"It is true that to please the aroused public opinion of mankind and to respond to the idealism of the moralist they have surrounded the new alliance with a halo and called it 'The League of Nations,' but whatever it may be called or however it may be disguised it is an alliance of the Five Great Military Powers.

"It’s true that to satisfy the stirred public sentiment and to cater to the idealism of the moralist, they have wrapped the new alliance in grandeur and labeled it 'The League of Nations,' but no matter what it’s called or how it’s presented, it is an alliance of the Five Great Military Powers."

"It is useless to close our eyes to the fact that the power to compel obedience by the exercise of the united strength of 'The Five' is the fundamental principle of the League. Justice is secondary. Might is primary.

"It is pointless to ignore the reality that the ability to enforce obedience through the combined strength of 'The Five' is the core principle of the League. Justice comes second. Power comes first."

"The League as now constituted will be the prey of greed and intrigue; and the law of unanimity in the Council, which may offer a restraint, will be broken or render the organization powerless. It is called upon to stamp as just what is unjust.

"The League as it is now set up will be vulnerable to greed and manipulation; the requirement for unanimity in the Council, which might serve as a check, will either be ignored or make the organization ineffective. It is expected to endorse what is unfair as if it were fair."

"We have a treaty of peace, but it will not bring permanent peace because it is founded on the shifting sands of self-interest."

"We have a peace treaty, but it won’t lead to lasting peace because it’s built on the unstable ground of self-interest."

In the views thus expressed I was not alone. A few days after they were written I was in London where I discussed the Treaty with several of the leading British statesmen. I noted their opinions thus: "The consensus was that the Treaty was unwise and unworkable, that it was conceived in intrigue and fashioned in cupidity, and that it would produce rather than prevent wars." One of these leaders of political thought in Great Britain said that "the only apparent purpose of the League of Nations seems to be to perpetuate the series of unjust provisions which were being imposed."

I wasn't the only one with those views. A few days after I wrote them, I was in London discussing the Treaty with several prominent British politicians. I noted their opinions like this: "The general agreement was that the Treaty was ill-advised and unfeasible, that it was born out of intrigue and driven by greed, and that it would create more conflicts instead of preventing them." One of these influential political figures in Great Britain mentioned that "the only clear purpose of the League of Nations seems to be to maintain the series of unfair provisions that were being enforced."

The day following my return from London, which was on May 17, I received Mr. Bullitt's letter of resignation and also letters from five of our principal experts protesting against the terms of peace and stating that they considered them to be an abandonment of the principles for which Americans had fought. One of the officials, whose relations with the President were of a most intimate nature, said that he was in a quandary about resigning; that he did not think that the conditions in the Treaty would make for peace because they were too oppressive; that the obnoxious things in the Treaty were due to secret diplomacy; and that the President should have stuck rigidly to his principles, which he had not. This official was evidently deeply incensed, but in the end he did not resign, nor did the five experts who sent letters, because they were told that it would seriously cripple the American Commission in the preparation of the Austrian Treaty if they did not continue to serve. Another and more prominent adviser of the President felt very bitterly over the terms of peace. In speaking of his disapproval of them he told me that he had found the same feeling among the British in Paris, who were disposed to blame the President since "they had counted upon him to stand firmly by his principles and face down the intriguers."

The day after I got back from London, on May 17, I received Mr. Bullitt's resignation letter along with letters from five of our top experts protesting the peace terms, saying they felt it was a betrayal of the principles Americans had fought for. One official, who had a close relationship with the President, mentioned he was torn about resigning; he believed the Treaty conditions wouldn’t lead to real peace because they were too harsh; that the offensive parts of the Treaty came from secret negotiations; and that the President should have stayed true to his principles, which he hadn’t. This official was clearly very upset, but in the end, he didn’t resign, nor did the five experts who sent letters, because they were told that stepping down would seriously undermine the American Commission's work on the Austrian Treaty. Another more senior advisor to the President was also very unhappy about the peace terms. While expressing his disapproval, he told me he sensed similar feelings among the British in Paris, who seemed to blame the President, saying “they had expected him to stick to his principles and confront the schemers.”

It is needless to cite other instances indicating the general state of mind among the Americans and British at Paris to show the views that were being exchanged and the frank comments that were being made at the time of my interview with Mr. Bullitt. In truth I said less to him in criticism of the Treaty than I did to some others, but they have seen fit to respect the confidential nature of our conversations.

It’s unnecessary to mention other examples that reflect the overall mindset of the Americans and British in Paris to illustrate the opinions being shared and the candid remarks being made during my conversation with Mr. Bullitt. In fact, I criticized the Treaty less to him than I did to a few others, but they chose to keep our discussions confidential.

It is not pertinent to the present subject to recite the events between the delivery of the Treaty to the Germans on May 7 and its signature on June 28. In spite of the dissatisfaction, which even went so far that some of the delegates of the Great Powers threatened to decline to sign the Treaty unless certain of its terms were modified, the supreme necessity of restoring peace as soon as possible overcame all obstacles. It was the appreciation of this supreme necessity which caused many Americans to urge consent to ratification when the Treaty was laid before the Senate.

It isn't relevant to the current topic to go over what happened between the presentation of the Treaty to the Germans on May 7 and its signing on June 28. Despite the discontent, which even led some delegates from the Great Powers to threaten to refuse to sign the Treaty unless certain terms were changed, the urgent need to restore peace as quickly as possible overcame all obstacles. It was this recognition of the urgent need that prompted many Americans to push for approval when the Treaty was submitted to the Senate.

My own position was paradoxical. I was opposed to the Treaty, but signed it and favored its ratification. The explanation is this: Convinced after conversations with the President in July and August, 1919, that he would not consent to any effective reservations, the politic course seemed to be to endeavor to secure ratification without reservations. It appeared to be the only possible way of obtaining that for which all the world longed and which in the months succeeding the signature appeared absolutely essential to prevent the widespread disaster resulting from political and economic chaos which seemed to threaten many nations if not civilization itself. Even if the Treaty was bad in certain provisions, so long as the President remained inflexible and insistent, its ratification without change seemed a duty to humanity. At least that was my conviction in the summer and autumn of 1919, and I am not yet satisfied that it was erroneous. My views after January, 1920, are not pertinent to the subject under consideration. The consequences of the failure to ratify promptly the Treaty of Versailles are still uncertain. They may be more serious or they may be less serious than they appeared in 1919. Time alone will disclose the truth and fix the responsibility for what occurred after the Treaty of Versailles was laid before the Senate of the United States.

My situation was complicated. I was against the Treaty, yet I signed it and supported its ratification. Here’s why: After discussions with the President in July and August 1919, I was convinced he wouldn’t agree to any meaningful reservations, so the political strategy seemed to be to push for ratification without reservations. It looked like the only way to achieve what the whole world was hoping for, which, in the months after the signing, seemed absolutely necessary to prevent the widespread disaster posed by the political and economic chaos threatening many nations, if not civilization itself. Even if the Treaty had some bad elements, as long as the President remained firm and unyielding, ratifying it without changes felt like a responsibility to humanity. That was my belief in the summer and fall of 1919, and I still don’t think it was wrong. My thoughts after January 1920 aren’t relevant to this discussion. The implications of not ratifying the Treaty of Versailles quickly are still unclear. They could be either more serious or less serious than they seemed in 1919. Only time will reveal the truth and determine who is responsible for what happened after the Treaty of Versailles was presented to the U.S. Senate.

CONCLUSION

The narration of my relations to the peace negotiations as one of the American Commissioners to the Paris Conference, which has been confined within the limits laid down in the opening chapter of this volume, concludes with the recital of the views which I held concerning the terms of the Treaty of Peace with Germany and which were brought to the attention of Mr. Wilson through the press reports of William C. Bullitt's statement to the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations on September 12, 1919.

The account of my involvement in the peace negotiations as one of the American Commissioners at the Paris Conference, which has been limited to what is outlined in the opening chapter of this book, ends with a summary of my opinions on the terms of the Treaty of Peace with Germany. These views were brought to Mr. Wilson's attention through news coverage of William C. Bullitt's statement to the Senate Committee on Foreign Relations on September 12, 1919.

The endeavor has been to present, as fully as possible in the circumstances, a review of my association with President Wilson in connection with the negotiations at Paris setting forth our differences of opinion and divergence of judgment upon the subjects coming before the Peace Conference, the conduct of the proceedings, and the terms of peace imposed upon Germany by the Treaty of Versailles.

The goal has been to provide, as comprehensively as possible given the circumstances, a summary of my experience working with President Wilson during the negotiations in Paris. This includes outlining our differing opinions and judgments on the issues discussed at the Peace Conference, the handling of the proceedings, and the peace terms imposed on Germany by the Treaty of Versailles.

It is evident from this review that, from a time prior to Mr. Wilson's departure from the United States on December 4, 1918, to attend the Peace Conference up to the delivery of the text of the Treaty to the German plenipotentiaries on May 7, 1919, there were many subjects of disagreement between the President and myself; that he was disposed to reject or ignore the advice and suggestions which I volunteered; and that in consequence of my convictions I followed his guidance and obeyed his instructions unwillingly.

It’s clear from this review that, from before Mr. Wilson left the United States on December 4, 1918, to attend the Peace Conference until the text of the Treaty was delivered to the German representatives on May 7, 1919, there were several points of disagreement between the President and me; that he was inclined to dismiss or overlook the advice and suggestions I offered; and that because of my beliefs, I followed his guidance and obeyed his instructions reluctantly.

While there were other matters of friction between us they were of a personal nature and of minor importance. Though they may have contributed to the formality of our relations they played no real part in the increasing difficulty of the situation. The matters narrated were, in my opinion, the principal causes for the letters written by President Wilson in February, 1920; at least they seem sufficient to explain the origin of the correspondence, while the causes specifically stated by him—my calling together of the heads of the executive departments for consultation during his illness and my attempts to anticipate his judgment—are insufficient.

While there were other points of tension between us, they were personal and not very significant. Although they may have added to the formality of our relationship, they didn't really affect the growing difficulties of the situation. The issues described were, in my view, the main reasons for the letters President Wilson wrote in February 1920; at the very least, they seem adequate to clarify the origin of the correspondence. The reasons he specifically mentioned—my gathering the heads of the executive departments for discussion during his illness and my efforts to predict his decisions—aren't enough on their own.

The reasons given in the President's letter of February 11, the essential portions of which have been quoted, for stating that my resignation as Secretary of State would be acceptable to him, are the embarrassment caused him by my "reluctance and divergence of judgment" and the implication that my mind did not "willingly go along" with his. As neither of these reasons applies to the calling of Cabinet meetings or to the anticipation of his judgment in regard to foreign affairs, the unavoidable conclusion is that these grounds of complaint were not the real causes leading up to the severance of our official association.

The reasons mentioned in the President's letter from February 11, which I've quoted in part, for saying that my resignation as Secretary of State would be okay with him, are the embarrassment my "reluctance and difference in opinion" caused him and the suggestion that I didn't "fully agree" with him. Since neither of these reasons relates to calling Cabinet meetings or anticipating his views on foreign affairs, the clear conclusion is that these complaints weren't the actual reasons for ending our official relationship.

The real causes—which are the only ones worthy of consideration—are to be found in the record of the relations between President Wilson and myself in connection with the peace negotiations. Upon that record must rest the justification or the refutation of Mr. Wilson's implied charge that I was not entirely loyal to him as President and that I failed to perform my full duty to my country as Secretary of State and as a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace by opposing the way in which he exercised his constitutional authority to conduct the foreign affairs of the United States.

The real reasons—which are the only ones worth considering—are found in the history of the relationship between President Wilson and me regarding the peace negotiations. That history should provide the justification or the rebuttal to Mr. Wilson's implied accusation that I was not fully loyal to him as President and that I didn't fulfill my responsibilities to my country as Secretary of State and as a Commissioner to Negotiate Peace by challenging how he used his constitutional authority to handle the foreign affairs of the United States.

THE END

APPENDIX I

THE PRESIDENT'S ORIGINAL DRAFT OF THE COVENANT OF THE LEAGUE OF NATIONS, LAID BEFORE THE AMERICAN COMMISSION ON JANUARY 10, 1919

PREAMBLE

In order to secure peace, security, and orderly government by the prescription of open, just, and honorable relations between nations, by the firm establishment of the understandings of international law as the actual rule of conduct among governments, and by the maintenance of justice and a scrupulous respect for all treaty obligations in the dealings of organized peoples with one another, the Powers signatory to this covenant and agreement jointly and severally adopt this constitution of the League of Nations.

To ensure peace, security, and a stable government by promoting open, fair, and respectful relationships between countries, by firmly establishing international law as the actual standard of behavior among governments, and by upholding justice and carefully respecting all treaty obligations in the interactions of organized societies, the countries that sign this covenant and agreement collectively adopt this constitution for the League of Nations.

ARTICLE I

The action of the Signatory Powers under the terms of this agreement shall be effected through the instrumentality of a Body of Delegates which shall consist of the ambassadors and ministers of the contracting Powers accredited to H. and the Minister for Foreign Affairs of H. The meetings of the Body of Delegates shall be held at the seat of government of H. and the Minister for Foreign Affairs of H. shall be the presiding officer of the Body.

The Signatory Powers will carry out the actions outlined in this agreement through a Body of Delegates, made up of the ambassadors and ministers from the contracting Powers accredited to H., along with the Minister for Foreign Affairs of H. The Body of Delegates will meet at the government headquarters of H., and the Minister for Foreign Affairs of H. will serve as the presiding officer of the Body.

Whenever the Delegates deem it necessary or advisable, they may meet temporarily at the seat of government of B. or of S., in which case the Ambassador or Minister to H. of the country in which the meeting is held shall be the presiding officer pro tempore.

Whenever the Delegates think it's necessary or a good idea, they can temporarily meet at the government seat of B. or S. In that case, the Ambassador or Minister to H. from the country where the meeting is held will be the acting presiding officer pro tempore.

It shall be the privilege of any of the contracting Powers to assist its representative in the Body of Delegates by any method of conference, counsel, or advice that may seem best to it, and also to substitute upon occasion a special representative for its regular diplomatic representative accredited to H.

It shall be the right of any of the contracting Powers to support its representative in the Body of Delegates by any method of discussion, guidance, or advice that it sees fit, and also to occasionally appoint a special representative in place of its regular diplomatic representative accredited to H.

ARTICLE II

The Body of Delegates shall regulate their own procedure and shall have power to appoint such committees as they may deem necessary to inquire into and report upon any matters that lie within the field of their action.

The Body of Delegates will manage its own procedures and has the authority to appoint committees as they see fit to investigate and report on any issues that fall within their scope of action.

It shall be the right of the Body of Delegates, upon the initiative of any member, to discuss, either publicly or privately as it may deem best, any matter lying within the jurisdiction of the League of Nations as defined in this Covenant, or any matter likely to affect the peace of the world; but all actions of the Body of Delegates taken in the exercise of the functions and powers granted to them under this Covenant shall be first formulated and agreed upon by an Executive Council, which shall act either by reference or upon its own initiative and which shall consist of the representatives of the Great Powers together with representatives drawn in annual rotation from two panels, one of which shall be made up of the representatives of the States ranking next after the Great Powers and the other of the representatives of the minor States (a classification which the Body of Delegates shall itself establish and may from time to time alter), such a number being drawn from these panels as will be but one less than the representatives of the Great Powers; and three or more negative votes in the Council shall operate as a veto upon any action or resolution proposed.

The Body of Delegates has the right, initiated by any member, to discuss any issue within the League of Nations' jurisdiction as defined in this Covenant, whether publicly or privately, as they see fit. However, all actions taken by the Body of Delegates in exercising their functions and powers granted under this Covenant must first be formulated and agreed upon by an Executive Council. This Council can act either on its own or by referral and will include representatives from the Great Powers, along with representatives selected annually from two groups: one consisting of representatives from countries next in rank after the Great Powers, and the other from representatives of smaller States (a classification that the Body of Delegates will establish and can change over time). The number of representatives drawn from these groups will be one less than the number of Great Power representatives; additionally, if there are three or more negative votes in the Council, it will serve as a veto against any proposed action or resolution.

All resolutions passed or actions taken by the Body of Delegates upon the recommendation of the Executive Council, except those adopted in execution of any direct powers herein granted to the Body of Delegates themselves, shall have the effect of recommendations to the several governments of the League.

All resolutions passed or actions taken by the Body of Delegates based on the recommendations of the Executive Council, except for those adopted in line with any direct powers given to the Body of Delegates themselves, will serve as recommendations to the various governments of the League.

The Executive Council shall appoint a permanent Secretariat and staff and may appoint joint committees chosen from the Body of Delegates or consisting of specially qualified persons outside of that Body, for the study and systematic consideration of the international questions with which the Council may have to deal, or of questions likely to lead to international complications or disputes. It shall also take the necessary steps to establish and maintain proper liaison both with the foreign offices of the signatory powers and with any governments or agencies which may be acting as mandatories of the League of Nations in any part of the world.

The Executive Council will appoint a permanent Secretariat and staff and may form joint committees made up of members from the Body of Delegates or specially qualified individuals outside of that Body. These committees will focus on studying and systematically addressing international issues that the Council needs to handle, as well as issues that could potentially lead to international complications or disputes. The Council will also take the necessary steps to establish and maintain proper communication with the foreign offices of the signatory powers and with any governments or agencies acting as representatives of the League of Nations anywhere in the world.

ARTICLE III

The Contracting Powers unite in guaranteeing to each other political independence and territorial integrity; but it is understood between them that such territorial readjustments, if any, as may in the future become necessary by reason of changes in present racial conditions and aspirations or present social and political relationships, pursuant to the principle of self-determination, and also such territorial readjustments as may in the judgment of three fourths of the Delegates be demanded by the welfare and manifest interest of the peoples concerned, may be effected if agreeable to those peoples; and that territorial changes may in equity involve material compensation. The Contracting Powers accept without reservation the principle that the peace of the world is superior in importance to every question of political jurisdiction or boundary.

The Contracting Powers agree to guarantee each other's political independence and territorial integrity. However, they understand that any necessary changes in territory, due to shifts in current racial conditions, aspirations, or social and political relationships, will be guided by the principle of self-determination. Additionally, if three-fourths of the Delegates agree that changes are needed for the welfare and clear interests of the people involved, these changes can happen as long as those people agree. It is also understood that any territorial changes might require fair compensation. The Contracting Powers fully accept that global peace is more important than any issues related to political authority or borders.

ARTICLE IV

The Contracting Powers recognize the principle that the establishment and maintenance of peace will require the reduction of national armaments to the lowest point consistent with domestic safety and the enforcement by common action of international obligations; and the Delegates are directed to formulate at once plans by which such a reduction may be brought about. The plan so formulated shall be binding when, and only when, unanimously approved by the Governments signatory to this Covenant.

The Contracting Powers acknowledge that achieving and maintaining peace will require reducing national military forces to the lowest level that still ensures domestic safety and enforcing international responsibilities through collective action; therefore, the Delegates are tasked with creating immediate plans to achieve this reduction. The plan created will be binding only when it is unanimously approved by the governments that are signatories to this Covenant.

As the basis for such a reduction of armaments, all the Powers subscribing to the Treaty of Peace of which this Covenant constitutes a part hereby agree to abolish conscription and all other forms of compulsory military service, and also agree that their future forces of defence and of international action shall consist of militia or volunteers, whose numbers and methods of training shall be fixed, after expert inquiry, by the agreements with regard to the reduction of armaments referred to in the last preceding paragraph.

As the foundation for reducing weapons, all the nations that agree to the Treaty of Peace, which this Covenant is a part of, now agree to eliminate conscription and all other forms of mandatory military service. They also agree that their future defense and international forces will be made up of militia or volunteers, with the size and training methods determined after expert review by the agreements concerning weapon reductions mentioned in the previous paragraph.

The Body of Delegates shall also determine for the consideration and action of the several governments what direct military equipment and armament is fair and reasonable in proportion to the scale of forces laid down in the programme of disarmament; and these limits, when adopted, shall not be exceeded without the permission of the Body of Delegates.

The Body of Delegates will also decide what direct military equipment and armament is fair and reasonable based on the scale of forces outlined in the disarmament program. Once these limits are set, they cannot be exceeded without the Body of Delegates' approval.

The Contracting Powers further agree that munitions and implements of war shall not be manufactured by private enterprise or for private profit, and that there shall be full and frank publicity as to all national armaments and military or naval programmes.

The Contracting Powers also agree that weapons and military equipment should not be made by private companies for profit, and there will be complete transparency regarding all national armaments and military or naval plans.

ARTICLE V

The Contracting Powers jointly and severally agree that, should disputes or difficulties arise between or among them which cannot be satisfactorily settled or adjusted by the ordinary processes of diplomacy, they will in no case resort to armed force without previously submitting the questions and matters involved either to arbitration or to inquiry by the Executive Council of the Body of Delegates or until there has been an award by the arbitrators or a decision by the Executive Council; and that they will not even then resort to armed force as against a member of the League of Nations who complies with the award of the arbitrators or the decision of the Executive Council.

The Contracting Powers agree together and individually that if disputes or issues come up between them that can't be resolved through normal diplomatic means, they won't use military force without first bringing the matters to arbitration or investigating them through the Executive Council of the Body of Delegates, or until an arbitrator has made a ruling or the Executive Council has made a decision; and even then, they won't use military force against any member of the League of Nations who follows the arbitrator's ruling or the Executive Council's decision.

The Powers signatory to this Covenant undertake and agree that whenever any dispute or difficulty shall arise between or among them with regard to any questions of the law of nations, with regard to the interpretation of a treaty, as to any fact which would, if established, constitute a breach of international obligation, or as to any alleged damage and the nature and measure of the reparation to be made therefor, if such dispute or difficulty cannot be satisfactorily settled by the ordinary processes of negotiation, to submit the whole subject-matter to arbitration and to carry out in full good faith any award or decision that may be rendered.

The countries that sign this Covenant agree that if any disputes or issues arise between them regarding international law, the interpretation of a treaty, any facts that could indicate a violation of international obligations, or any claimed damages and the type and extent of reparations to be made, and if these disputes cannot be resolved through regular negotiation processes, they will submit the entire matter to arbitration and fully commit to carrying out any decision or ruling that is made.

In case of arbitration, the matter or matters at issue shall be referred to three arbitrators, one of the three to be selected by each of the parties to the dispute, when there are but two such parties, and the third by the two thus selected. When there are more than two parties to the dispute, one arbitrator shall be named by each of the several parties, and the arbitrators thus named shall add to their number others of their own choice, the number thus added to be limited to the number which will suffice to give a deciding voice to the arbitrators thus added in case of a tie vote among the arbitrators chosen by the contending parties. In case the arbitrators chosen by the contending parties cannot agree upon an additional arbitrator or arbitrators, the additional arbitrator or arbitrators shall be chosen by the Body of Delegates.

If there’s arbitration, the issues at hand will be referred to three arbitrators. Each of the two parties involved will select one arbitrator, and the two chosen arbitrators will select the third. If there are more than two parties in the dispute, each party will name an arbitrator, and those named arbitrators will then choose additional arbitrators as needed. The number of additional arbitrators will be just enough to give a deciding vote in case there’s a tie among the arbitrators selected by the disputing parties. If the arbitrators chosen by the disputing parties can’t agree on the additional arbitrator(s), the additional arbitrator(s) will be selected by the Body of Delegates.

On the appeal of a party to the dispute the decision of the arbitrators may be set aside by a vote of three-fourths of the Delegates, in case the decision of the arbitrators was unanimous, or by a vote of two-thirds of the Delegates in case the decision of the arbitrators was not unanimous, but unless thus set aside shall be finally binding and conclusive.

If a party in the dispute appeals, the decision of the arbitrators can be overturned by a vote of three-fourths of the Delegates if the decision was unanimous, or by a vote of two-thirds of the Delegates if the decision was not unanimous. However, unless it is overturned in this way, the decision shall be final and binding.

When any decision of arbitrators shall have been thus set aside, the dispute shall again be submitted to arbitrators chosen as heretofore provided, none of whom shall, however, have previously acted as arbitrators in the dispute in question, and the decision of the arbitrators rendered in this second arbitration shall be finally binding and conclusive without right of appeal.

When any decision made by arbitrators has been overturned, the dispute will be submitted again to arbitrators selected as described earlier, none of whom shall have previously served as arbitrators in that particular dispute. The decision made by the arbitrators in this second arbitration will be final and binding, with no right to appeal.

If for any reason it should prove impracticable to refer any matter in dispute to arbitration, the parties to the dispute shall apply to the Executive Council to take the matter under consideration for such mediatory action or recommendation as it may deem wise in the circumstances. The Council shall immediately accept the reference and give notice to the other party or parties, and shall make the necessary arrangements for a full hearing, investigation, and consideration. It shall ascertain all the facts involved in the dispute and shall make such recommendations as it may deem wise and practicable based on the merits of the controversy and calculated to secure a just and lasting settlement. Other members of the League shall place at the disposal of the Executive Council any and all information that may be in their possession which in any way bears upon the facts or merits of the controversy; and the Executive Council shall do everything in its power by way of mediation or conciliation to bring about a peaceful settlement. The decisions of the Executive Council shall be addressed to the disputants, and shall not have the force of a binding verdict. Should the Executive Council fail to arrive at any conclusion, it shall be the privilege of the members of the Executive Council to publish their several conclusions or recommendations; and such publications shall not be regarded as an unfriendly act by either or any of the disputants.

If it becomes impossible to resolve any dispute through arbitration, the parties involved should approach the Executive Council to consider the matter for mediation or advice that it finds appropriate under the circumstances. The Council will promptly accept the request and notify the other party or parties, making the necessary arrangements for a complete hearing, investigation, and review. It will gather all relevant facts related to the dispute and provide recommendations it sees fit and feasible, aiming for a fair and enduring resolution. Other members of the League will provide the Executive Council with any information they have that pertains to the facts or merits of the dispute, and the Executive Council will do its utmost to mediate or reconcile the situation to achieve a peaceful resolution. The Executive Council's decisions will be communicated to the parties involved but will not carry the weight of a binding verdict. If the Executive Council cannot come to a conclusion, its members have the right to publish their individual conclusions or recommendations, and these publications will not be considered hostile by any of the parties involved.

ARTICLE VI

Should any contracting Power break or disregard its covenants under ARTICLE V, it shall thereby ipso facto commit an act of war with all the members of the League, which shall immediately subject it to a complete economic and financial boycott, including the severance of all trade or financial relations, the prohibition of all intercourse between their subjects and the subjects of the covenant-breaking State, and the prevention, so far as possible, of all financial, commercial, or personal intercourse between the subjects of the covenant-breaking State and the subjects of any other State, whether a member of the League of Nations or not.

If any contracting nation violates or ignores its agreements under ARTICLE V, it will automatically commit an act of war against all members of the League. This will result in an immediate total economic and financial boycott, including the end of all trade or financial relations, a ban on any contact between their citizens and the citizens of the nation that broke the covenant, and the prevention, as much as possible, of all financial, commercial, or personal exchanges between the citizens of the violating nation and those of any other nation, whether or not they are part of the League of Nations.

It shall be the privilege and duty of the Executive Council of the Body of Delegates in such a case to recommend what effective military or naval force the members of the League of Nations shall severally contribute, and to advise, if it should think best, that the smaller members of the League be excused from making any contribution to the armed forces to be used against the covenant-breaking State.

It will be the responsibility and honor of the Executive Council of the Body of Delegates to suggest what military or naval resources each member of the League of Nations should contribute in such cases. They may also advise that the smaller members of the League be exempt from contributing to the armed forces that will confront the state violating the covenant.

The covenant-breaking State shall, after the restoration of peace, be subject to perpetual disarmament and to the regulations with regard to a peace establishment provided for new States under the terms of SUPPLEMENTARY ARTICLE IV.

The state that breaks the agreement will, after peace is restored, be required to disarm indefinitely and follow the rules for maintaining peace as outlined for new states in SUPPLEMENTARY ARTICLE IV.

ARTICLE VII

If any Power shall declare war or begin hostilities, or take any hostile step short of war, against another Power before submitting the dispute involved to arbitrators or consideration by the Executive Council as herein provided, or shall declare war or begin hostilities, or take any hostile step short of war, in regard to any dispute which has been decided adversely to it by arbitrators chosen and empowered as herein provided, the Contracting Powers hereby bind themselves not only to cease all commerce and intercourse with that Power but also to unite in blockading and closing the frontiers of that Power to commerce or intercourse with any part of the world and to use any force that may be necessary to accomplish that object.

If any nation declares war or starts hostilities, or takes any aggressive action short of war, against another nation without first submitting the dispute to arbitrators or the Executive Council as outlined here, or if it declares war or starts hostilities regarding a dispute that has been decided against it by the appointed arbitrators, the Contracting Nations agree not only to halt all trade and interaction with that nation but also to join in blockading and sealing off that nation's borders from trade or interaction with the rest of the world, and to use any necessary force to achieve this goal.

ARTICLE VIII

Any war or threat of war, whether immediately affecting any of the
Contracting Powers or not, is hereby declared a matter of concern to the
League of Nations and to all the Powers signatory hereto, and those
Powers hereby reserve the right to take any action that may be deemed
wise and effectual to safeguard the peace of nations.

Any war or threat of war, whether it directly impacts any of the
Contracting Powers or not, is declared a matter of concern for the
League of Nations and for all the Powers who have signed this, and those
Powers reserve the right to take any action they consider
wise and effective to maintain global peace.

It is hereby also declared and agreed to be the friendly right of each of the nations signatory or adherent to this Covenant to draw the attention of the Body of Delegates to any circumstances anywhere which threaten to disturb international peace or the good understanding between nations upon which peace depends.

It is also declared and agreed that each of the nations that signs or adheres to this Covenant has the right to bring to the Body of Delegates' attention any situations anywhere that could threaten international peace or the good relationships between nations that peace relies on.

The Delegates shall meet in the interest of peace whenever war is rumored or threatened, and also whenever the Delegate of any Power shall inform the Delegates that a meeting and conference in the interest of peace is advisable.

The Delegates will gather to promote peace whenever there's talk of war or a real threat of it, and also whenever a Delegate from any Power suggests that a meeting and discussion for the sake of peace would be beneficial.

The Delegates may also meet at such other times and upon such other occasions as they shall from time to time deem best and determine.

The Delegates may also gather at other times and for other reasons as they find appropriate and decide.

ARTICLE IX

In the event of a dispute arising between one of the Contracting Powers and a Power not a party to this Covenant, the Contracting Power involved hereby binds itself to endeavour to obtain the submission of the dispute to judicial decision or to arbitration. If the other Power will not agree to submit the dispute to judicial decision or to arbitration, the Contracting Power shall bring the matter to the attention of the Body of Delegates. The Delegates shall in such a case, in the name of the League of Nations, invite the Power not a party to this Covenant to become ad hoc a party and to submit its case to judicial decision or to arbitration, and if that Power consents it is hereby agreed that the provisions hereinbefore contained and applicable to the submission of disputes to arbitration or discussion shall be in all respects applicable to the dispute both in favour of and against such Power as if it were a party to this Covenant.

If a dispute arises between one of the Contracting Powers and a Power that is not part of this Covenant, the involved Contracting Power agrees to try to get the dispute resolved through judicial decision or arbitration. If the other Power refuses to agree to this, the Contracting Power will bring the issue to the attention of the Body of Delegates. In this case, the Delegates will, on behalf of the League of Nations, invite the non-party Power to become an ad hoc party and to submit the dispute for judicial decision or arbitration. If that Power agrees, it is understood that the provisions previously outlined regarding the submission of disputes to arbitration or discussion will fully apply to this dispute, for and against that Power as if it were a party to this Covenant.

In case the Power not a party to this Covenant shall not accept the invitation of the Delegates to become ad hoc a party, it shall be the duty of the Executive Council immediately to institute an inquiry into the circumstances and merits of the dispute involved and to recommend such joint action by the Contracting Powers as may seem best and most effectual in the circumstances disclosed.

If the Power that isn't a party to this Covenant declines the Delegates' invitation to become ad hoc a party, the Executive Council must promptly conduct an investigation into the details and merits of the dispute and suggest joint action by the Contracting Powers that seems most appropriate and effective based on the situation revealed.

ARTICLE X

If hostilities should be begun or any hostile action taken against the Contracting Power by the Power not a party to this Covenant before a decision of the dispute by arbitrators or before investigation, report and recommendation by the Executive Council in regard to the dispute, or contrary to such recommendation, the Contracting Powers shall thereupon cease all commerce and communication with that Power and shall also unite in blockading and closing the frontiers of that Power to all commerce or intercourse with any part of the world, employing jointly any force that may be necessary to accomplish that object. The Contracting Powers shall also unite in coming to the assistance of the Contracting Power against which hostile action has been taken, combining their armed forces in its behalf.

If any hostilities start or any aggressive actions are taken against the Contracting Power by a party not involved in this Covenant before an arbitrator has decided the dispute or before the Executive Council has investigated, reported, and recommended actions regarding the dispute, or against such recommendations, the Contracting Powers will immediately stop all trade and communication with that Power. They will also cooperate to blockade and seal off that Power's borders to all trade or interaction with the rest of the world, using whatever force is necessary to achieve that goal. The Contracting Powers will also come together to support the Contracting Power that has faced hostile action, combining their military forces in its defense.

ARTICLE XI

In case of a dispute between states not parties to this Covenant, any
Contracting Power may bring the matter to the attention of the
Delegates, who shall thereupon tender the good offices of the League of
Nations with a view to the peaceable settlement of the dispute.

If there’s a disagreement between states that are not part of this Covenant, any
Contracting Power can bring the issue to the attention of the
Delegates, who will then offer the League of
Nations' assistance to help resolve the dispute peacefully.

If one of the states, a party to the dispute, shall offer and agree to submit its interests and causes of action wholly to the control and decision of the League of Nations, that state shall ad hoc be deemed a Contracting Power. If no one of the states, parties to the dispute, shall so offer and agree, the Delegates shall, through the Executive Council, of their own motion take such action and make such recommendation to their governments as will prevent hostilities and result in the settlement of the dispute.

If one of the states involved in the dispute offers to submit its interests and legal issues completely to the control and decision of the League of Nations, that state will be considered a Contracting Power. If none of the states involved in the dispute does this, the Delegates will, on their own initiative through the Executive Council, take action and make recommendations to their governments to prevent conflict and resolve the dispute.

ARTICLE XII

Any Power not a party to this Covenant, whose government is based upon the principle of popular self-government, may apply to the Body of Delegates for leave to become a party. If the Delegates shall regard the granting thereof as likely to promote the peace, order, and security of the World, they may act favourably on the application, and their favourable action shall operate to constitute the Power so applying in all respects a full signatory party to this Covenant. This action shall require the affirmative vote of two-thirds of the Delegates.

Any country that isn’t a party to this agreement and whose government is based on the principle of popular self-government can apply to the Body of Delegates to join. If the Delegates believe that accepting this application would likely promote peace, order, and security in the world, they may approve the request, and their approval will make the applying country a full signatory party to this agreement in every way. This decision will require a two-thirds affirmative vote from the Delegates.

ARTICLE XIII

The Contracting Powers severally agree that the present Covenant and Convention is accepted as abrogating all treaty obligations inter se which are inconsistent with the terms hereof, and solemnly engage that they will not enter into any engagements inconsistent with the terms hereof.

The Contracting Powers individually agree that this Covenant and Convention replaces all treaty obligations inter se that conflict with its terms, and they solemnly commit to not enter into any agreements that are inconsistent with these terms.

In case any of the Powers signatory hereto or subsequently admitted to the League of Nations shall, before becoming a party to this Covenant, have undertaken any treaty obligations which are inconsistent with the terms of this Covenant, it shall be the duty of such Power to take immediate steps to procure its release from such obligations.

If any of the Powers that have signed this or those that join the League of Nations later have made treaty commitments before agreeing to this Covenant that conflict with its terms, it is the responsibility of that Power to take prompt action to be released from those commitments.

SUPPLEMENTARY AGREEMENTS

I

In respect of the peoples and territories which formerly belonged to Austria-Hungary, and to Turkey, and in respect of the colonies formerly under the dominion of the German Empire, the League of Nations shall be regarded as the residuary trustee with sovereign right of ultimate disposal or of continued administration in accordance with certain fundamental principles hereinafter set forth; and this reversion and control shall exclude all rights or privileges of annexation on the part of any Power.

In relation to the peoples and territories that used to belong to Austria-Hungary and Turkey, as well as the colonies that were once under the control of the German Empire, the League of Nations will be considered the remaining trustee with the sovereign right to make final decisions or to continue administering these areas based on certain fundamental principles outlined below; this reversion and control will not allow any Power to claim rights or privileges of annexation.

These principles are, that there shall in no case be any annexation of any of these territories by any State either within the League or outside of it, and that in the future government of these peoples and territories the rule of self-determination, or the consent of the governed to their form of government, shall be fairly and reasonably applied, and all policies of administration or economic development be based primarily upon the well-considered interests of the people themselves.

These principles state that no territory should be annexed by any State, whether a member of the League or not. In the future governance of these people and lands, the principle of self-determination, or the agreement of the governed regarding their government, should be applied fairly and reasonably. Additionally, all management and economic development policies should primarily reflect the well-considered interests of the people themselves.

II

Any authority, control, or administration which may be necessary in respect of these peoples or territories other than their own self-determined and self-organized autonomy shall be the exclusive function of and shall be vested in the League of Nations and exercised or undertaken by or on behalf of it.

Any authority, control, or management needed regarding these people or territories, aside from their own self-determined and self-organized autonomy, shall be the exclusive responsibility of the League of Nations and will be carried out by or on its behalf.

It shall be lawful for the League of Nations to delegate its authority, control, or administration of any such people or territory to some single State or organized agency which it may designate and appoint as its agent or mandatory; but whenever or wherever possible or feasible the agent or mandatory so appointed shall be nominated or approved by the autonomous people or territory.

It is allowed for the League of Nations to delegate its authority, control, or administration of any such people or territory to a single State or organized agency that it designates and appoints as its agent or mandatory; however, whenever possible, the agent or mandatory appointed should be nominated or approved by the autonomous people or territory.

III

The degree of authority, control, or administration to be exercised by the mandatary State or agency shall in each case be explicitly defined by the League in a special Act or Charter which shall reserve to the League complete power of supervision and of intimate control, and which shall also reserve to the people of any such territory or governmental unit the right to appeal to the League for the redress or correction of any breach of the mandate by the mandatary State or agency or for the substitution of some other State or agency, as mandatary.

The level of authority, control, or management that the mandated State or agency can exercise will be clearly defined by the League in a specific Act or Charter. This document will give the League full power to supervise and closely monitor the situation. It will also ensure that the people of any such territory or governmental unit have the right to appeal to the League for remedying any violations of the mandate by the mandated State or agency, or for the replacement of that State or agency with another as the mandated authority.

The mandatary State or agency shall in all cases be bound and required to maintain the policy of the open door, or equal opportunity for all the signatories to this Covenant, in respect of the use and development of the economic resources of such people or territory.

The governing State or agency must, in all cases, uphold and ensure the policy of open access or equal opportunity for all the signatories to this Covenant regarding the use and development of the economic resources of that people or territory.

The mandatary State or agency shall in no case form or maintain any military or naval force in excess of definite standards laid down by the League itself for the purposes of internal police.

The mandated state or agency must not create or keep any military or naval forces that go beyond the specific standards set by the League itself for internal policing purposes.

IV

No new State arising or created from the old Empires of Austria-Hungary, or Turkey shall be recognized by the League or admitted into its membership except on condition that its military and naval forces and armaments shall conform to standards prescribed by the League in respect of it from time to time.

No new state emerging from the former empires of Austria-Hungary or Turkey will be recognized or allowed to join the League unless its military and naval forces and weapons meet the standards set by the League from time to time.

As successor to the Empires, the League of Nations is empowered, directly and without right of delegation, to watch over the relations inter se of all new independent States arising or created out of the Empires, and shall assume and fulfill the duty of conciliating and composing differences between them with a view to the maintenance of settled order and the general peace.

As the successor to the Empires, the League of Nations is given the authority, directly and without delegation, to oversee the relationships between all new independent States that emerge from the Empires, and it will take on the responsibility of resolving and mediating conflicts between them to maintain order and promote overall peace.

V

The Powers signatory or adherent to this Covenant agree that they will themselves seek to establish and maintain fair hours and humane conditions of labour for all those within their several jurisdictions who are engaged in manual labour and that they will exert their influence in favour of the adoption and maintenance of a similar policy and like safeguards wherever their industrial and commercial relations extend.

The signatory powers or those agreeing to this Covenant commit to establishing and upholding fair working hours and humane working conditions for everyone in their jurisdictions engaged in manual labor. They also pledge to use their influence to support the adoption and maintenance of similar policies and protections wherever their industrial and commercial relations reach.

VI

The League of Nations shall require all new States to bind themselves as a condition precedent to their recognition as independent or autonomous States, to accord to all racial or national minorities within their several jurisdictions exactly the same treatment and security, both in law and in fact, that is accorded the racial or national majority of their people.

The League of Nations will require all new States to commit to treating all racial or national minorities within their borders with the same rights and protections, both legally and in practice, as those given to the racial or national majority of their population, as a prerequisite for being recognized as independent or autonomous States.

APPENDIX II

LEAGUE OF NATIONS

(Plan of Lord Robert Cecil[1])

(Lord Robert Cecil's Plan[1])

I
ORGANIZATION

The general treaty setting up the league of nations will explicitly provide for regular conferences between the responsible representatives of the contracting powers.

The main treaty establishing the League of Nations will clearly provide for regular meetings between the responsible representatives of the participating countries.

These conferences would review the general conditions of international relations and would naturally pay special attention to any difficulty which might seem to threaten the peace of the world. They would also receive and as occasion demanded discuss reports as to the work of any international administrative or investigating bodies working under the League.

These conferences would evaluate the overall state of international relations and would naturally focus on any issues that could pose a threat to global peace. They would also receive and, as needed, discuss reports regarding the work of any international administrative or investigative organizations operating under the League.

These conferences would constitute the pivot of the league. They would be meetings of statesmen responsible to their own sovereign parliaments, and any decisions taken would therefore, as in the case of the various allied conferences during the war, have to be unanimous.

These conferences would be the key to the league. They would be gatherings of leaders accountable to their own governments, and any decisions made would need to be unanimous, just like the various allied conferences during the war.

The following form of organization is suggested:

The following organization is suggested:

I. The conference. Annual meeting of prime ministers and foreign secretaries of British Empire, United States, France, Italy, Japan, and any other States recognized by them as great powers. Quadrennial meeting of representatives of all States included in the league. There should also be provision for the summoning of special conferences on the demand of any one of the great powers or, if there were danger of an outbreak of war, of any member of the league. (The composition of the league will be determined at the peace conference. Definitely untrustworthy and hostile States, e.g., Russia, should the Bolshevist government remain in power, should be excluded. Otherwise it is desirable not to be too rigid in scrutinizing qualifications, since the small powers will in any case not exercise any considerable influence.)

I. The conference. An annual meeting of prime ministers and foreign ministers from the British Empire, the United States, France, Italy, Japan, and any other states they recognize as major powers. A meeting of representatives from all states in the league will happen every four years. There should also be a way to call special conferences if any major power requests it or if there's a risk of war, as initiated by any member of the league. (The makeup of the league will be decided at the peace conference. Any definitely untrustworthy and hostile states, such as Russia, if the Bolshevik government is still in power, should be excluded. Otherwise, it’s preferable not to be too strict about qualifications since the smaller powers won't have much influence anyway.)

2. For the conduct of its work the interstate conference will require a permanent secretariat. The general secretary should be appointed by the great powers, if possible choosing a national of some other country.

2. To carry out its work, the interstate conference will need a permanent secretariat. The general secretary should be appointed by the major powers, ideally selecting someone from a different country.

3. International bodies. The secretariat would be the responsible channel of communication between the interstate conference and all international bodies functioning under treaties guaranteed by the league. These would fall into three classes:

3. International bodies. The secretariat would be the main line of communication between the interstate conference and all international organizations operating under treaties supported by the league. These would be divided into three categories:

(a) Judicial; i.e., the existing Hague organization with any additions or modifications made by the league.

(a) Judicial; meaning the current Hague organization with any updates or changes made by the league.

(b) International administrative bodies. Such as the suggested transit commission. To these would be added bodies already formed under existing treaties (which are very numerous and deal with very important interests, e.g., postal union, international labor office, etc.).

(b) International administrative bodies, like the proposed transit commission. In addition to these, there would be organizations that are already established under current treaties (which are quite numerous and cover significant interests, such as the postal union, international labor office, etc.).

(c) International commissions of enquiry: e.g., commission on industrial conditions (labor legislation), African commission, armaments commission.

(c) International inquiry commissions: e.g., commission on workplace conditions (labor laws), African commission, arms commission.

4. In addition to the above arrangements guaranteed by or arising out of the general treaty, there would probably be a periodical congress of delegates of the parliaments of the States belonging to the league, as a development out of the existing Interparliamentary Union. A regular staple of discussion for this body would be afforded by the reports of the interstate conference and of the different international bodies. The congress would thus cover the ground that is at present occupied by the periodical Hague Conference and also the ground claimed by the Socialist International.

4. Besides the arrangements mentioned earlier that are guaranteed by or stem from the general treaty, there would likely be a regular congress of representatives from the parliaments of the member states in the league, evolving from the current Interparliamentary Union. A key topic for discussion in this group would be the reports from the interstate conference and various international organizations. This congress would effectively take over the roles currently held by the periodic Hague Conference and also the areas claimed by the Socialist International.

For the efficient conduct of all these activities it is essential that there should be a permanent central meeting-place, where the officials and officers of the league would enjoy the privileges of extra-territoriality. Geneva is suggested as the most suitable place.

For all these activities to run smoothly, it’s crucial to have a permanent central meeting place where the league’s officials and officers can benefit from extra-territorial rights. Geneva is proposed as the best location.

II

PREVENTION OF WAR

The covenants for the prevention of war which would be embodied in the general treaty would be as follows:

The agreements to prevent war that would be included in the general treaty would be as follows:

(1) The members of the league would bind themselves not to go to war until they had submitted the questions at issue to an international conference or an arbitral court, and until the conference or court had issued a report or handed down an award.

(1) The league members would commit to not going to war until they had brought the issues in question to an international conference or arbitration court, and until that conference or court had provided a report or made a ruling.

(2) The members of the league would bind themselves not to go to war with any member of the league complying with the award of a court or with the report of a conference. For the purpose of this clause, the report of the conference must be unanimous, excluding the litigants.

(2) The members of the league agree not to go to war with any other member of the league who follows the decision of a court or the report of a conference. For this clause, the conference report must be unanimous, excluding the parties involved in the dispute.

(3) The members of the league would undertake to regard themselves, as ipso facto, at war with any one of them acting contrary to the above covenants, and to take, jointly and severally, appropriate military, economic and other measure against the recalcitrant State.

(3) The members of the league agree to consider themselves, as ipso facto, at war with anyone among them who acts against the above agreements and to take, individually and collectively, appropriate military, economic, and other actions against the disobedient State.

(4) The members of the league would bind themselves to take similar action, in the sense of the above clause, against any State not being a member of the league which is involved in a dispute with a member of the league.

(4) The members of the league would agree to take similar action, as described in the above clause, against any State that is not a member of the league and is involved in a dispute with a member of the league.

(This is a stronger provision than that proposed in the Phillimore
Report.)

(This is a stronger provision than what was suggested in the Phillimore
Report.)

The above covenants mark an advance upon the practice of international relations previous to the war in two respects: (i) In insuring a necessary period of delay before war can break out (except between two States which are neither of them members of the league); (2) In securing public discussion and probably a public report upon matters in dispute.

The above agreements represent a step forward in international relations compared to the period before the war in two ways: (1) They ensure a required waiting period before war can start (unless it’s between two States that are not members of the league); (2) They promote public discussions and likely a public report on issues that are in conflict.

It should be observed that even in cases where the conference report is not unanimous, and therefore in no sense binding, a majority report may be issued and that this would be likely to carry weight with the public opinion of the States in the league.

It should be noted that even when the conference report isn't unanimous, and thus not binding in any way, a majority report can still be released, and this is likely to influence public opinion in the states within the league.

APPENDIX III

THE COVENANT OF THE LEAGUE OF NATIONS IN THE TREATY OF VERSAILLES

ARTICLE I

The original Members of the League of Nations shall be those of the Signatories which are named in the Annex to this Covenant and also such of those other States named in the Annex as shall accede without reservation to this Covenant. Such accession shall be effected by a Declaration deposited with the Secretariat within two months of the coming into force of the Covenant. Notice thereof shall be sent to all other Members of the League.

The original Members of the League of Nations will be those Signatories listed in the Annex to this Covenant, along with any other States named in the Annex that choose to join this Covenant without any reservations. This joining will happen through a Declaration submitted to the Secretariat within two months of the Covenant becoming effective. A notice of this will be sent to all other Members of the League.

Any fully self-governing State, Dominion, or Colony not named in the Annex may become a Member of the League if its admission is agreed to by two thirds of the Assembly, provided that it shall give effective guarantees of its sincere intention to observe its international obligations, and shall accept such regulations as may be prescribed by the League in regard to its military, naval and air forces and armaments.

Any fully self-governing state, dominion, or colony not listed in the Annex can join the League if two-thirds of the Assembly agrees to its admission, as long as it provides solid guarantees of its genuine intention to meet its international obligations and accepts any regulations set by the League regarding its military, naval, and air forces and armaments.

Any Member of the League may, after two years' notice of its intention so to do, withdraw from the League, provided that all its international obligations and all its obligations under this Covenant shall have been fulfilled at the time of its withdrawal.

Any member of the League can withdraw from the League after giving two years' notice of their intention to do so, as long as they have fulfilled all their international obligations and all their obligations under this Covenant at the time of their withdrawal.

ARTICLE 2

The action of the League under this Covenant shall be effected through the instrumentality of an Assembly and of a Council, with a permanent Secretariat.

The League's actions under this Covenant will be carried out through an Assembly and a Council, supported by a permanent Secretariat.

ARTICLE 3

The Assembly shall consist of Representatives of the Members of the
League.

The Assembly will be made up of Representatives from the Members of the
League.

The Assembly shall meet at stated intervals and from time to time as occasion may require at the Seat of the League or at such other place as may be decided upon.

The Assembly will meet at regular intervals and whenever necessary at the League's headquarters or any other location that is agreed upon.

The Assembly may deal at its meetings with any matter within the sphere of action of the League or affecting the peace of the world.

The Assembly can discuss any issues at its meetings that fall within the League's scope or that impact global peace.

At meetings of the Assembly each Member of the League shall have one vote, and may have not more than three Representatives.

At meetings of the Assembly, each Member of the League will have one vote and can have no more than three Representatives.

ARTICLE 4

The Council shall consist of Representatives of the Principal Allied and Associated Powers, together with Representatives of four other Members of the League. These four Members of the League shall be selected by the Assembly from time to time in its discretion. Until the appointment of the Representatives of the four Members of the League first selected by the Assembly, Representatives of Belgium, Brazil, Spain, and Greece shall be members of the Council.

The Council will be made up of Representatives from the main Allied and Associated Powers, along with Representatives from four other League Members. The Assembly will choose these four League Members periodically at its discretion. Until the Representatives of the first four selected League Members are appointed by the Assembly, Representatives from Belgium, Brazil, Spain, and Greece will be members of the Council.

With the approval of the majority of the Assembly, the Council may name additional Members of the League whose Representatives shall always be members of the Council; the Council with like approval may increase the number of Members of the League to be selected by the Assembly for representation on the Council.

With the approval of most of the Assembly, the Council can appoint additional Members of the League whose Representatives will always be Council members; the Council, with similar approval, can also increase the number of Members of the League chosen by the Assembly for representation on the Council.

The Council shall meet from time to time as occasion may require, and at least once a year, at the Seat of the League, or at such other place as may be decided upon.

The Council will meet as needed, and at least once a year, at the League's headquarters or at another location that will be decided.

The Council may deal at its meetings with any matter within the sphere of action of the League or affecting the peace of the world.

The Council can address any issue related to the League's activities or that impacts world peace during its meetings.

Any Member of the League not represented on the Council shall be invited to send a Representative to sit as a member at any meeting of the Council during the consideration of matters specially affecting the interests of that Member of the League.

Any Member of the League that isn’t part of the Council will be invited to send a Representative to join any Council meeting when issues specifically impacting that League Member are being discussed.

At meetings of the Council, each Member of the League represented on the
Council shall have one vote, and may have not more than one
Representative.

At Council meetings, each Member of the League represented on the
Council will have one vote and can have no more than one
Representative.

ARTICLE 5

Except where otherwise expressly provided in this Covenant or by the terms of the present Treaty, decisions at any meeting of the Assembly or of the Council shall require the agreement of all the Members of the League represented at the meeting.

Except where specifically stated otherwise in this Covenant or by the terms of this Treaty, decisions made at any Assembly or Council meeting will require the agreement of all League Members present at the meeting.

All matters of procedure at meetings of the Assembly or of the Council, including the appointment of Committees to investigate particular matters, shall be regulated by the Assembly or by the Council and may be decided by a majority of the Members of the League represented at the meeting.

All procedures at meetings of the Assembly or the Council, including the formation of Committees to look into specific issues, will be governed by the Assembly or the Council and can be determined by a majority of the League Members present at the meeting.

The first meeting of the Assembly and the first meeting of the Council shall be summoned by the President of the United States of America.

The first meeting of the Assembly and the first meeting of the Council will be called by the President of the United States of America.

ARTICLE 6

The permanent Secretariat shall be established at the Seat of the League. The Secretariat shall comprise a Secretary General and such secretaries and staff as may be required.

The permanent Secretariat will be set up at the headquarters of the League. The Secretariat will consist of a Secretary General and the necessary secretaries and staff.

The first Secretary General shall be the person named in the Annex; thereafter the Secretary General shall be appointed by the Council with the approval of the majority of the Assembly.

The first Secretary General will be the person listed in the Annex; after that, the Secretary General will be appointed by the Council with the approval of the majority of the Assembly.

The secretaries and staff of the Secretariat shall be appointed by the
Secretary General with the approval of the Council.

The secretaries and staff of the Secretariat will be appointed by the
Secretary General with the Council's approval.

The Secretary General shall act in that capacity at all meetings of the
Assembly and of the Council.

The Secretary General will serve in that role at all meetings of the
Assembly and of the Council.

The expenses of the Secretariat shall be borne by the Members of the
League in accordance with the apportionment of the expenses of the
International Bureau of the Universal Postal Union.

The costs of the Secretariat will be covered by the Members of the
League based on the distribution of the expenses of the
International Bureau of the Universal Postal Union.

ARTICLE 7

The Seat of the League is established at Geneva.

The League's headquarters is set up in Geneva.

The Council may at any time decide that the Seat of the League shall be established elsewhere.

The Council can decide at any time that the League's Seat should be set up in a different location.

All positions under or in connection with the League, including the
Secretariat, shall be open equally to men and women.

All positions within or related to the League, including the
Secretariat, shall be equally open to men and women.

Representatives of the Members of the League and officials of the League when engaged on the business of the League shall enjoy diplomatic privileges and immunities.

Representatives of the League's Members and League officials working on League business will have diplomatic privileges and immunities.

The buildings and other property occupied by the League or its officials or by Representatives attending its meetings shall be inviolable.

The buildings and other properties used by the League, its officials, or representatives attending its meetings shall be completely protected.

ARTICLE 8

The Members of the League recognize that the maintenance of peace requires the reduction of national armaments to the lowest point consistent with national safety and the enforcement by common action of international obligations.

The Members of the League understand that keeping peace means reducing national weapons to the smallest amount that still ensures national safety and collectively enforcing international responsibilities.

The Council, taking account of the geographical situation and circumstances of each State, shall formulate plans for such reduction for the consideration and action of the several Governments.

The Council, considering the geographic situation and circumstances of each State, will create plans for this reduction for the review and action of the various Governments.

Such plans shall be subject to reconsideration and revision at least every ten years.

Such plans will be reviewed and updated at least every ten years.

After these plans shall have been adopted by the several Governments, the limits of armaments therein fixed shall not be exceeded without the concurrence of the Council.

After these plans have been adopted by the various Governments, the limits of armaments set in them cannot be exceeded without the agreement of the Council.

The Members of the League agree that the manufacture by private enterprise of munitions and implements of war is open to grave objections. The Council shall advise how the evil effects attendant upon such manufacture can be prevented, due regard being had to the necessities of those Members of the League which are not able to manufacture the munitions and implements of war necessary for their safety.

The members of the League agree that allowing private businesses to produce weapons and military equipment raises serious concerns. The Council will suggest ways to mitigate the harmful effects of such production, while also considering the needs of those League members that are unable to produce the weapons and military equipment necessary for their safety.

The Members of the League undertake to interchange full and frank information as to the scale of their armaments, their military, naval and air programmes and the condition of such of their industries as are adaptable to warlike purposes.

The members of the League agree to share complete and honest information about the extent of their weapons, their military, naval, and air programs, and the status of any of their industries that can be used for wartime purposes.

ARTICLE 9

A permanent Commission shall be constituted to advise the Council on the execution of the provisions of Articles 1 and 8 and on military, naval and air questions generally.

A permanent Commission will be set up to advise the Council on carrying out the provisions of Articles 1 and 8, as well as on military, naval, and air matters in general.

ARTICLE 10

The Members of the League undertake to respect and preserve as against external aggression the territorial integrity and existing political independence of all Members of the League. In case of any such aggression or in case of any threat or danger of such aggression the Council shall advise upon the means by which this obligation shall be fulfilled.

The Members of the League agree to respect and protect the territorial integrity and political independence of all League Members against external aggression. If any such aggression occurs, or if there is a threat or risk of such aggression, the Council will provide guidance on how to fulfill this obligation.

ARTICLE 11

Any war or threat of war, whether immediately affecting any of the Members of the League or not, is hereby declared a matter of concern to the whole League, and the League shall take any action that may be deemed wise and effectual to safeguard the peace of nations. In case any such emergency should arise the Secretary General shall on the request of any Member of the League forthwith summon a meeting of the Council.

Any war or threat of war, whether it directly affects any of the Members of the League or not, is considered a concern for the entire League. The League will take any actions it deems wise and effective to protect the peace of nations. If such an emergency arises, the Secretary General shall immediately call a meeting of the Council at the request of any Member of the League.

It is also declared to be the friendly right of each Member of the League to bring to the attention of the Assembly or of the Council any circumstance whatever affecting international relations which threatens to disturb international peace or the good understanding between nations upon which peace depends.

It is also stated that each Member of the League has the right to inform the Assembly or the Council about any situation affecting international relations that could disrupt international peace or the friendly relations between nations that are essential for peace.

ARTICLE 12

The Members of the League agree that if there should arise between them any dispute likely to lead to a rupture, they will submit the matter either to arbitration or to inquiry by the Council, and they agree in no case to resort to war until three months after the award by the arbitrators or the report by the Council.

The members of the League agree that if any disputes arise between them that could lead to a breakup, they will either take the issue to arbitration or request an investigation by the Council. They also agree not to go to war for at least three months after the arbitrators make their decision or the Council provides their report.

In any case under this Article the award of the arbitrators shall be made within a reasonable time, and the report of the Council shall be made within six months after the submission of the dispute.

In any case covered by this Article, the arbitrators will issue their award within a reasonable time, and the Council's report will be completed within six months after the dispute is submitted.

ARTICLE 13

The Members of the League agree that whenever any dispute shall arise between them which they recognize to be suitable for submission to arbitration and which cannot be satisfactorily settled by diplomacy, they will submit the whole subject-matter to arbitration.

The members of the League agree that whenever a dispute arises between them that they feel is appropriate for arbitration and can't be resolved through diplomatic means, they will submit the entire issue to arbitration.

Disputes as to the interpretation of a treaty, as to any question of international law, as to the existence of any fact which if established would constitute a breach of any international obligation, or as to the extent and nature of the reparation to be made for any such breach, are declared to be among those which are generally suitable for submission to arbitration.

Disputes over how to interpret a treaty, any issue related to international law, whether a fact exists that would lead to a violation of international obligations, or the extent and type of compensation required for such a violation are all considered suitable for arbitration.

For the consideration of any such dispute the court of arbitration to which the case is referred shall be the Court agreed on by the parties to the dispute or stipulated in any convention existing between them.

For any disputes, the arbitration court handling the case will be the Court agreed upon by the parties involved or specified in any existing agreement between them.

The Members of the League agree that they will carry out in full good faith any award that may be rendered, and that they will not resort to war against a Member of the League which complies therewith. In the event of any failure to carry out such an award, the Council shall propose what steps should be taken to give effect thereto.

The members of the League agree to fully honor any decision made in good faith, and they will not go to war against any member of the League that follows it. If there is any failure to comply with such a decision, the Council will suggest what actions should be taken to enforce it.

ARTICLE 14

The Council shall formulate and submit to the Members of the League for adoption plans for the establishment of a Permanent Court of International Justice. The Court shall be competent to hear and determine any dispute of an international character which the parties thereto submit to it. The Court may also give an advisory opinion upon any dispute or question referred to it by the Council or by the Assembly.

The Council will create and present to the Members of the League plans for setting up a Permanent Court of International Justice. The Court will have the authority to hear and resolve any international dispute submitted to it by the parties involved. The Court can also provide an advisory opinion on any dispute or question referred to it by the Council or by the Assembly.

ARTICLE 15

If there should arise between Members of the League any dispute likely to lead to a rupture, which is not submitted to arbitration in accordance with Article 13, the Members of the League agree that they will submit the matter to the Council. Any party to the dispute may effect such submission by giving notice of the existence of the dispute to the Secretary General, who will make all necessary arrangements for a full investigation and consideration thereof.

If any dispute comes up between Members of the League that could lead to a break, and it's not sent to arbitration as stated in Article 13, the Members of the League agree to bring the issue to the Council. Any party involved in the dispute can submit it by notifying the Secretary General, who will make all necessary arrangements for a thorough investigation and consideration of the matter.

For this purpose the parties to the dispute will communicate to the Secretary General, as promptly as possible, statements of their case with all the relevant facts and papers, and the Council may forthwith direct the publication thereof.

For this purpose, the parties involved in the dispute will quickly send their statements and all relevant facts and documents to the Secretary General, and the Council may immediately order their publication.

The Council shall endeavour to effect a settlement of the dispute, and if such efforts are successful, a statement shall be made public giving such facts and explanations regarding the dispute and the terms of settlement thereof as the Council may deem appropriate.

The Council will strive to resolve the dispute, and if these efforts succeed, a public statement will be released detailing the relevant facts and explanations about the dispute and the terms of the settlement that the Council considers appropriate.

If the dispute is not thus settled, the Council either unanimously or by a majority vote shall make and publish a report containing a statement of the facts of the dispute and the recommendations which are deemed just and proper in regard thereto.

If the dispute isn't resolved this way, the Council will either unanimously or by majority vote create and release a report outlining the facts of the dispute and the recommendations they consider fair and appropriate regarding it.

Any Member of the League represented on the Council may make public a statement of the facts of the dispute and of its conclusions regarding the same.

Any Member of the League that is part of the Council can publicly share a statement outlining the facts of the dispute and their conclusions about it.

If a report by the Council is unanimously agreed to by the members thereof other than the Representatives of one or more of the parties to the dispute, the Members of the League agree that they will not go to war with any party to the dispute which complies with the recommendations of the report.

If a report from the Council is unanimously approved by all its members except for the Representatives of one or more of the parties involved in the dispute, the Members of the League agree not to go to war with any party that follows the report's recommendations.

If the Council fails to reach a report which is unanimously agreed to by the members thereof, other than the Representatives of one or more of the parties to the dispute, the Members of the League reserve to themselves the right to take such action as they shall consider necessary for the maintenance of right and justice.

If the Council can't come up with a report that everyone agrees on, except for the Representatives of one or more of the parties involved in the dispute, the Members of the League reserve the right to take any action they think is necessary to uphold right and justice.

If the dispute between the parties is claimed by one of them, and is found by the Council, to arise out of a matter which by international law is solely within the domestic jurisdiction of that party, the Council shall so report, and shall make no recommendation as to its settlement.

If one of the parties claims there's a dispute and the Council finds that it comes from an issue strictly within that party's domestic jurisdiction according to international law, the Council will report this and won’t suggest any way to resolve it.

The Council may in any case under this Article refer the dispute to the Assembly. The dispute shall be so referred at the request of either party to the dispute, provided that such request be made within fourteen days after the submission of the dispute to the Council.

The Council can, in any case under this Article, send the dispute to the Assembly. This will happen at the request of either party involved in the dispute, as long as the request is made within fourteen days after the dispute is submitted to the Council.

In any case referred to the Assembly, all the provisions of this Article and of Article 12 relating to the action and powers of the Council shall apply to the action and powers of the Assembly, provided that a report made by the Assembly, if concurred in by the Representatives of those Members of the League represented on the Council and of a majority of the other Members of the League, exclusive in each case of the Representatives of the parties to the dispute, shall have the same force as a report by the Council concurred in by all the members thereof other than the Representatives of one or more of the parties to the dispute.

In any case brought before the Assembly, all the rules in this Article and in Article 12 regarding the actions and powers of the Council will also apply to the actions and powers of the Assembly. However, a report created by the Assembly, if agreed upon by the Representatives of the Member States in the League that are on the Council and by a majority of the other League Members—excluding the Representatives of the parties involved in the dispute—will carry the same weight as a report from the Council that is agreed upon by all its members, except for the Representatives of one or more parties in the dispute.

ARTICLE 16

Should any Member of the League resort to war in disregard of its covenants under Articles 12, 13 or 15, it shall ipso facto be deemed to have committed an act of war against all other Members of the League, which hereby undertake immediately to subject it to the severance of all trade or financial relations, the prohibition of all intercourse between their nationals and the nationals of the covenant-breaking State, and the prevention of all financial, commercial or personal intercourse between the nationals of the covenant-breaking State and the nationals of any other State, whether a Member of the League or not.

If any Member of the League goes to war in violation of its agreements under Articles 12, 13, or 15, it will automatically be considered to have acted against all the other Members of the League. These other Members agree to immediately cut off all trade and financial relations, prohibit any contact between their citizens and the citizens of the state that broke the covenant, and prevent all financial, commercial, or personal interactions between the citizens of the covenant-breaking state and those of any other state, whether they are a Member of the League or not.

It shall be the duty of the Council in such case to recommend to the several Governments concerned what effective military, naval or air force the Members of the League shall severally contribute to the armed forces to be used to protect the covenants of the League.

It is the responsibility of the Council in this case to suggest to the involved Governments what effective military, naval, or air forces each Member of the League should contribute to the armed forces designated to protect the agreements of the League.

The Members of the League agree, further, that they will mutually support one another in the financial and economic measures which are taken under this Article, in order to minimise the loss and inconvenience resulting from the above measures, and that they will mutually support one another in resisting any special measures aimed at one of their number by the covenant-breaking State, and that they will take the necessary steps to afford passage through their territory to the forces of any of the Members of the League which are cooperating to protect the covenants of the League.

The members of the League also agree to support each other in the financial and economic actions taken under this Article, aiming to reduce the losses and inconveniences caused by these measures. They will also back each other in opposing any special actions directed at one of their members by a state that breaks the covenant. Additionally, they will take the necessary steps to allow passage through their territory for the forces of any League members working together to uphold the League's agreements.

Any Member of the League which has violated any covenant of the League may be declared to be no longer a Member of the League by a vote of the Council concurred in by the Representatives of all the other Members of the League represented thereon.

Any Member of the League that has broken any covenant of the League can be declared no longer a Member of the League by a vote of the Council, supported by the Representatives of all the other Members of the League present.

ARTICLE 17

In the event of a dispute between a Member of the League and a State which is not a Member of the League, or between States not Members of the League, the State or States not Members of the League shall be invited to accept the obligations of membership in the League for the purposes of such dispute, upon such conditions as the Council may deem just. If such invitation is accepted, the provisions of Articles 12 to 16 inclusive shall be applied with such modifications as may be deemed necessary by the Council.

In case there's a disagreement between a League Member and a non-Member State, or between non-Member States, the non-Member State or States will be invited to accept the responsibilities of League membership for that specific dispute, under conditions the Council considers fair. If they accept this invitation, the rules outlined in Articles 12 to 16 will be applied with any necessary adjustments determined by the Council.

Upon such invitation being given the Council shall immediately institute an inquiry into the circumstances of the dispute and recommend such action as may seem best and most effectual in the circumstances.

Once the invitation is extended, the Council will quickly launch an inquiry into the details of the dispute and suggest the best and most effective actions based on the situation.

If a State so invited shall refuse to accept the obligations of membership in the League for the purposes of such dispute, and shall resort to war against a Member of the League, the provisions of Article 16 shall be applicable as against the State taking such action.

If a State that was invited refuses to take on the obligations of membership in the League for the purposes of this dispute and decides to go to war against a Member of the League, the rules in Article 16 will apply to the State taking that action.

If both parties to the dispute when so invited refuse to accept the obligations of membership in the League for the purposes of such dispute, the Council may take such measures and make such recommendations as will prevent hostilities and will result in the settlement of the dispute.

If both sides in the dispute refuse to accept the responsibilities of membership in the League when invited, the Council can take measures and make recommendations to prevent conflict and lead to a resolution of the dispute.

ARTICLE 18

Every treaty or international engagement entered into hereafter by any Member of the League shall be forthwith registered with the Secretariat and shall as soon as possible be published by it. No such treaty or international engagement shall be binding until so registered.

Every treaty or international agreement made hereafter by any Member of the League must be immediately registered with the Secretariat and published by them as soon as possible. No such treaty or international agreement will be binding until it is registered.

ARTICLE 19

The Assembly may from time to time advise the reconsideration by Members of the League of treaties which have become inapplicable and the consideration of international conditions whose continuance might endanger the peace of the world.

The Assembly may occasionally suggest that League Members reevaluate treaties that are no longer relevant and look into international situations that could threaten world peace.

ARTICLE 20

The Members of the League severally agree that this Covenant is accepted as abrogating all obligations or understandings inter se which are inconsistent with the terms thereof, and solemnly undertake that they will not hereafter enter into any engagements inconsistent with the terms thereof.

The members of the League individually agree that this Covenant cancels all obligations or understandings inter se that conflict with its terms, and they solemnly promise that they will not enter into any agreements in the future that are inconsistent with these terms.

In case any Member of the League shall, before becoming a Member of the League, have undertaken any obligations inconsistent with the terms of this Covenant, it shall be the duty of such Member to take immediate steps to procure its release from such obligations.

If any League Member has taken on any obligations that conflict with the terms of this Covenant before joining the League, it’s their responsibility to quickly work on getting released from those obligations.

ARTICLE 21

Nothing in this Covenant shall be deemed to affect the validity of international engagements, such as treaties of arbitration or regional understandings like the Monroe Doctrine, for securing the maintenance of peace.

Nothing in this Covenant will be considered to impact the validity of international agreements, like arbitration treaties or regional arrangements such as the Monroe Doctrine, aimed at maintaining peace.

ARTICLE 22

To those colonies and territories which as a consequence of the late war have ceased to be under the sovereignty of the States which formerly governed them and which are inhabited by peoples not yet able to stand by themselves under the strenuous conditions of the modern world, there should be applied the principle that the well-being and development of such peoples form a sacred trust of civilisation and that securities for the performance of this trust should be embodied in this Covenant.

To those colonies and territories that, as a result of the recent war, are no longer under the control of the states that used to govern them and are inhabited by peoples who are not yet ready to govern themselves under the challenging conditions of the modern world, the principle should apply that the well-being and development of these peoples is a sacred responsibility of civilization and that guarantees for fulfilling this responsibility should be included in this Covenant.

The best method of giving practical effect to this principle is that the tutelage of such peoples should be entrusted to advanced nations who by reason of their resources, their experience or their geographical position can best undertake this responsibility, and who are willing to accept it, and that this tutelage should be exercised by them as Mandatories on behalf of the League.

The best way to put this principle into practice is to assign the guidance of these peoples to more advanced nations that, due to their resources, experience, or geographical location, are best equipped to take on this responsibility, and that are willing to do so. This guidance should be carried out by them as Mandatories on behalf of the League.

The character of the mandate must differ according to the stage of the development of the people, the geographical situation of the territory, its economic conditions and other similar circumstances.

The nature of the mandate must vary based on the development stage of the people, the geographical location of the territory, its economic conditions, and other similar factors.

Certain communities formerly belonging to the Turkish Empire have reached a stage of development where their existence as independent nations can be provisionally recognised subject to the rendering of administrative advice and assistance by a Mandatory until such time as they are able to stand alone. The wishes of these communities must be a principal consideration in the selection of the Mandatory.

Certain communities that used to be part of the Turkish Empire have reached a point in their development where their existence as independent nations can be temporarily recognized, provided they receive administrative guidance and support from a Mandatory until they are capable of self-governance. The desires of these communities must be a key factor in choosing the Mandatory.

Other peoples, especially those of Central Africa, are at such a stage that the Mandatory must be responsible for the administration of the territory under conditions which will guarantee freedom of conscience and religion, subject only to the maintenance of public order and morals, the prohibition of abuses such as the slave trade, the arms traffic and the liquor traffic, and the prevention of the establishment of fortifications or military and naval bases and of military training of the natives for other than police purposes and the defense of territory, and will also secure equal opportunities for the trade and commerce of other Members of the League.

Other nations, especially those in Central Africa, are at a point where the Mandatory has to oversee the administration of the territory in a way that ensures freedom of conscience and religion, only limited by the need to maintain public order and morals. This includes prohibiting abuses like the slave trade, arms trafficking, and liquor trafficking, preventing the establishment of fortifications or military and naval bases, and not training locals for military purposes other than policing and defending the territory. Additionally, it will ensure equal opportunities for trade and commerce among other League members.

There are territories, such as South-West Africa and certain of the South Pacific Islands, which, owing to the sparseness of their population, or their small size, or their remoteness from the centres of civilisation, or their geographical contiguity to the territory of the Mandatory, and other circumstances, can be best administered under the laws of the Mandatory as integral portions of its territory, subject to the safeguards above mentioned in the interests of the indigenous population.

There are regions, like South-West Africa and some South Pacific Islands, which, due to their low population, small size, distance from major urban areas, or proximity to the Mandatory's territory, among other factors, are best governed under the Mandatory's laws as part of its territory, while still ensuring the protections mentioned earlier for the benefit of the local population.

In every case of mandate, the Mandatory shall render to the Council an annual report in reference to the territory committed to its charge.

In every case of a mandate, the Mandatory will submit an annual report to the Council regarding the territory under its responsibility.

The degree of authority, control, or administration to be exercised by the Mandatory shall, if not previously agreed upon by the Members of the League, be explicitly defined in each case by the Council.

The level of authority, control, or management exercised by the Mandatory will be clearly defined in each case by the Council if it hasn't already been agreed upon by the Members of the League.

A permanent Commission shall be constituted to receive and examine the annual reports of the Mandatories and to advise the Council on all matters relating to the observance of the mandates.

A permanent Commission will be established to receive and review the annual reports from the Mandatories and to advise the Council on all issues concerning the enforcement of the mandates.

ARTICLE 23

Subject to and in accordance with the provisions of international conventions existing or hereafter to be agreed upon, the Members of the League:

Subject to and in line with the provisions of international conventions that are currently in effect or will be agreed upon in the future, the Members of the League:

(a) will endeavour to secure and maintain fair and humane conditions of labour for men, women, and children, both in their own countries and in all countries to which their commercial and industrial relations extend, and for that purpose will establish and maintain the necessary international organisations;

(a) will work to ensure and uphold fair and humane working conditions for men, women, and children, both in their own countries and in all countries where their business and industry connections reach. To achieve this, they will create and sustain the necessary international organizations;

(b) undertake to secure just treatment of the native inhabitants of territories under their control;

(b) commit to ensuring fair treatment of the local people in areas they control;

(c) will entrust the League with the general supervision over the execution of agreements with regard to the traffic in women and children, and the traffic in opium and other dangerous drugs;

(c) will give the League general oversight on the implementation of agreements concerning the trafficking of women and children, as well as the trafficking of opium and other harmful drugs;

(d) will entrust the League with the general supervision of the trade in arms and ammunition with the countries in which the control of this traffic is necessary in the common interest;

(d) will give the League the overall responsibility for overseeing the trade in arms and ammunition with the countries where regulating this trade is important for the common good;

(e) will make provision to secure and maintain freedom of communications and of transit and equitable treatment for the commerce of all Members of the League. In this connection, the special necessities of the regions devastated during the war of 1914-1918 shall be borne in mind;

(e) will ensure that everyone has the right to communicate and travel freely and that the commerce of all League Members is treated fairly. In this regard, the special needs of the areas affected by the war from 1914 to 1918 will be taken into account;

(f) will endeavour to take steps in matters of international concern for the prevention and control of disease.

(f) will work to take action on international issues related to disease prevention and control.

ARTICLE 24

There shall be placed under the direction of the League all international bureaux already established by general treaties if the parties to such treaties consent. All such international bureaux and all commissions for the regulation of matters of international interest hereafter constituted shall be placed under the direction of the League.

All international offices already created by general treaties will be supervised by the League if the parties to those treaties agree. All these international offices and any future commissions for managing international issues will be put under the League’s supervision.

In all matters of international interest which are regulated by general conventions but which are not placed under the control of international bureaux or commissions, the Secretariat of the League shall, subject to the consent of the Council and if desired by the parties, collect and distribute all relevant information and shall render any other assistance which may be necessary or desirable.

In all international matters governed by general agreements that aren't under the control of international offices or commissions, the Secretariat of the League will, with the Council's approval and at the request of the parties involved, gather and share all relevant information and provide any other necessary or helpful assistance.

The Council may include as part of the expenses of the Secretariat the expenses of any bureau or commission which is placed under the direction of the League.

The Council can include the expenses of any bureau or commission under the League's direction as part of the Secretariat's expenses.

ARTICLE 25

The Members of the League agree to encourage and promote the establishment and co-operation of duly authorised voluntary national Red Cross organisations having as purposes the improvement of health, the prevention of disease and the mitigation of suffering throughout the world.

The members of the League agree to support and promote the creation and collaboration of officially recognized voluntary national Red Cross organizations aimed at improving health, preventing disease, and alleviating suffering around the globe.

ARTICLE 26

Amendments to this Covenant will take effect when ratified by the Members of the League whose Representatives compose the Council and by a majority of the Members of the League whose Representatives compose the Assembly. No such amendment shall bind any Member of the League which signifies its dissent therefrom, but in that case it shall cease to be a Member of the League.

Amendments to this Covenant will take effect when approved by the Members of the League whose Representatives make up the Council and by a majority of the Members of the League whose Representatives make up the Assembly. No amendment will bind any Member of the League that expresses its disagreement, but in that case, it will cease to be a Member of the League.

APPENDIX IV

THE FOURTEEN POINTS[2]

The program of the world's peace, therefore, is our program; and that program, the only possible program, as we see it, is this:

The plan for global peace, then, is our plan; and that plan, the only feasible plan, in our view, is this:

I. Open covenants of peace, openly arrived at, after which there shall be no private international understandings of any kind but diplomacy shall proceed always frankly and in the public view.

I. Open treaties of peace, agreed upon transparently, after which there will be no secret international agreements of any kind but diplomacy shall always take place openly and in the public eye.

II. Absolute freedom of navigation upon the seas, outside territorial waters, alike in peace and in war, except as the seas may be closed in whole or in part by international action for the enforcement of international covenants.

II. Complete freedom of navigation on the seas, beyond territorial waters, during both peace and war, unless the seas are fully or partially closed by international measures to enforce international agreements.

III. The removal, so far as possible, of all economic barriers and the establishment of an equality of trade conditions among all the nations consenting to the peace and associating themselves for its maintenance.

III. The removal, as much as possible, of all economic barriers and the establishment of equal trade conditions among all the nations agreeing to the peace and working together to uphold it.

IV. Adequate guarantees given and taken that national armaments will be reduced to the lowest point consistent with domestic safety.

IV. Sufficient guarantees provided and received that national weapons will be reduced to the lowest level consistent with public safety.

V. A free, open-minded, and absolutely impartial adjustment of all colonial claims, based upon a strict observance of the principle that in determining all such questions of sovereignty the interests of the populations concerned must have equal weight with the equitable claims of the government whose title is to be determined.

V. A fair, open-minded, and completely unbiased resolution of all colonial claims, based on a strict adherence to the principle that when addressing these sovereignty issues, the interests of the affected populations must be considered equally alongside the fair claims of the government whose title is being evaluated.

VI. The evacuation of all Russian territory and such a settlement of all questions affecting Russia as will secure the best and freest cooperation of the other nations of the world in obtaining for her an unhampered and unembarrassed opportunity for the independent determination of her own political development and national policy and assure her of a sincere welcome into the society of free nations under institutions of her own choosing; and, more than a welcome, assistance also of every kind that she may need and may herself desire. The treatment accorded Russia by her sister nations in the months to come will be the acid test of their good-will, of their comprehension of her needs as distinguished from their own interests, and of their intelligent and unselfish sympathy.

VI. The removal of all Russian territory and a resolution of all issues concerning Russia that will ensure the best and most open cooperation from other countries in providing her with a clear and unobstructed chance to independently shape her own political paths and national policies, while guaranteeing her a genuine welcome into the community of free nations with systems of her choice; and, beyond just a welcome, any kind of support she may need or wish for. The way Russia is treated by her fellow nations in the coming months will be the ultimate test of their goodwill, their understanding of her needs rather than their own interests, and their genuine and selfless compassion.

VII. Belgium, the whole world will agree, must be evacuated and restored, without any attempt to limit the sovereignty which she enjoys in common with all other free nations. No other single act will serve as this will serve to restore confidence among the nations in the laws which they have themselves set and determined for the government of their relations with one another. Without this healing act the whole structure and validity of international law is forever impaired.

VII. Everyone will agree that Belgium must be evacuated and restored, without any effort to limit the sovereignty it shares with all other free nations. No other action will do as much to restore trust among nations in the laws they have created to govern their relationships. Without this healing act, the entire foundation and credibility of international law will be permanently damaged.

VIII. All French territory should be freed and the invaded portions restored, and the wrong done to France by Prussia in 1871 in the matter of Alsace-Lorraine, which has unsettled the peace of the world for nearly fifty years, should be righted, in order that peace may once more be made secure in the interest of all.

VIII. All French land should be liberated and the occupied areas returned, and the injustice done to France by Prussia in 1871 regarding Alsace-Lorraine, which has disturbed world peace for nearly fifty years, should be corrected, so that peace can once again be secured for everyone's benefit.

IX. A readjustment of the frontiers of Italy should be effected along clearly recognizable lines of nationality.

IX. The borders of Italy should be redrawn along clearly defined national lines.

X. The peoples of Austria-Hungary, whose place among the nations we wish to see safeguarded and assured, should be accorded the freest opportunity of autonomous development.

X. The people of Austria-Hungary, whose position among nations we want to see protected and guaranteed, should be given the fullest opportunity for self-determined growth.

XI. Rumania, Serbia, and Montenegro should be evacuated; occupied territories restored; Serbia accorded free and secure access to the sea; and the relations of the several Balkan states to one another determined by friendly counsel along historically established lines of allegiance and nationality; and international guarantees of the political and economic independence and territorial integrity of the several Balkan states should be entered into.

XI. Romania, Serbia, and Montenegro should be evacuated; occupied territories should be returned; Serbia should have free and secure access to the sea; and the relationships between the various Balkan states should be determined through friendly discussions based on historical alliances and national identities; also, international guarantees should be established for the political and economic independence and territorial integrity of the various Balkan states.

XII. The Turkish portions of the present Ottoman Empire should be assured a secure sovereignty, but the other nationalities which are now under Turkish rule should be assured an undoubted security of life and an absolutely unmolested opportunity of autonomous development, and the Dardanelles should be permanently opened as a free passage to the ships and commerce of all nations under international guarantees.

XII. The Turkish areas of the current Ottoman Empire should have guaranteed sovereignty, but the other nationalities currently under Turkish control should be guaranteed safety and a completely unimpeded chance for self-governance. Additionally, the Dardanelles should be permanently opened as a free passage for ships and trade from all nations with international guarantees.

XIII. An independent Polish state should be erected which should include the territories inhabited by indisputably Polish populations, which should be assured a free and secure access to the sea, and whose political and economic independence and territorial integrity should be guaranteed by international covenant.

XIII. An independent Polish state should be established that includes the areas populated by clearly Polish communities, ensuring they have free and secure access to the sea, with political and economic independence and territorial integrity guaranteed by international agreement.

XIV. A general association of nations must be formed under specific covenants for the purpose of affording mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity to great and small states alike.

XIV. A general association of countries must be created under specific agreements to provide mutual guarantees of political independence and territorial integrity for both large and small states.

APPENDIX V

PRINCIPLES DECLARED BY PRESIDENT WILSON IN HIS ADDRESS OF FEBRUARY 11, 1918

PRINCIPLES DECLARED BY PRESIDENT WILSON IN HIS ADDRESS OF FEBRUARY 11, 1918

The principles to be applied are these:

The principles to be applied are as follows:

First, that each part of the final settlement must be based upon the essential justice of that particular case and upon such adjustments as are most likely to bring a peace that will be permanent;

First, each part of the final settlement must be based on the fundamental fairness of that specific case and on adjustments that are most likely to create a lasting peace;

Second, that peoples and provinces are not to be bartered about from sovereignty to sovereignty as if they were mere chattels and pawns in a game, even the great game, now forever discredited, of the balance of power; but that

Second, that people and regions shouldn’t be traded from one ruler to another as if they were just possessions or pieces in a game, even the once-revered game of maintaining power balance, which is now completely discredited; but that

Third, every territorial settlement involved in this war must be made in the interest and for the benefit of the populations concerned, and not as a part of any mere adjustment or compromise of claims amongst rival states; and

Third, every territorial settlement involved in this war must be made for the sake and benefit of the people affected, and not just as a simple adjustment or compromise of claims among competing states; and

Fourth, that all well defined national aspirations shall be accorded the utmost satisfaction that can be accorded them without introducing new or perpetuating old elements of discord and antagonism that would be likely in time to break the peace of Europe and consequently of the world.

Fourth, all clearly defined national goals should be given the highest possible satisfaction without creating new or continuing existing sources of conflict and hostility that could eventually disturb the peace of Europe and, as a result, the world.

APPENDIX VI

THE ARTICLES OF THE TREATY OF VERSAILLES RELATING TO SHANTUNG

ARTICLE 156

Germany renounces, in favour of Japan, all her rights, title and privileges—particularly those concerning the territory of Kiaochow, railways, mines, and submarine cables—which she acquired in virtue of the Treaty concluded by her with China on March 6, 1898, and of all other arrangements relative to the Province of Shantung.

Germany gives up all her rights, titles, and privileges—especially those related to the territory of Kiaochow, railways, mines, and submarine cables—in favor of Japan. This includes what she obtained from the treaty she signed with China on March 6, 1898, and all other agreements related to the Province of Shantung.

All German rights in the Tsingtao-Tsinanfu Railway, including its branch lines, together with its subsidiary property of all kinds, stations, shops, fixed and rolling stock, mines, plant and material for the exploitation of the mines, are and remain acquired by Japan, together with all rights and privileges attaching thereto.

All German rights in the Tsingtao-Tsinanfu Railway, including its branch lines, along with all subsidiary property such as stations, shops, fixed and rolling stock, mines, and equipment for operating the mines, are now owned by Japan, including all associated rights and privileges.

The German State submarine cables from Tsingtao to Shanghai and from Tsingtao to Chefoo, with all the rights, privileges and properties attaching thereto, are similarly acquired by Japan, free and clear of all charges and encumbrances.

The German state submarine cables from Tsingtao to Shanghai and from Tsingtao to Chefoo, along with all associated rights, privileges, and properties, are also acquired by Japan, without any charges or encumbrances.

ARTICLE 157

The movable and immovable property owned by the German State in the territory of Kiaochow, as well as all the rights which Germany might claim in consequence of the works or improvements made or of the expenses incurred by her, directly or indirectly, in connection with this territory, are and remain acquired by Japan, free and clear of all charges and encumbrances.

The movable and immovable property owned by the German State in the territory of Kiaochow, along with any rights that Germany might claim due to the work or improvements made or the expenses incurred by her, directly or indirectly, related to this territory, are and will continue to be acquired by Japan, free and clear of all charges and encumbrances.

ARTICLE 158

Germany shall hand over to Japan within three months from the coming into force of the present Treaty the archives, registers, plans, title-deeds and documents of every kind, wherever they may be, relating to the administration, whether civil, military, financial, judicial or other, of the territory of Kiaochow.

Germany will transfer to Japan within three months from the effective date of this Treaty all archives, registers, plans, title deeds, and documents of every kind, wherever they are located, related to the administration—be it civil, military, financial, judicial, or other—of the territory of Kiaochow.

Within the same period Germany shall give particulars to Japan of all treaties, arrangements or agreements relating to the rights, title or privileges referred to in the two preceding Articles.

Within the same time frame, Germany shall provide Japan with details of all treaties, arrangements, or agreements related to the rights, titles, or privileges mentioned in the two previous Articles.

[Footnote 1: Reprinted from Senate Doc. No. 106, 66th Congress, 1st
Session, p. 1163.]

[Footnote 1: Reprinted from Senate Doc. No. 106, 66th Congress, 1st
Session, p. 1163.]

[Footnote 2: From the address of President Wilson delivered at a Joint
Session of Congress on January 8, 1918.]

[Footnote 2: From the address of President Wilson delivered at a Joint
Session of Congress on January 8, 1918.]

INDEX

Abrogation of treaties contrary to the League, in Wilson's original draft; in Treaty,

Abrogation of treaties that go against the League, in Wilson's original draft; in Treaty,

Affirmative guaranty of territory and independence, plan; Wilson adopts, in Fourteen Points; Lansing's opposition; constitutional and political arguments against; Lansing's "self-denying covenant" as substitute; in Wilson's original draft and in Treaty; as continuing balance of power; Wilson adheres to; not in Cecil plan; in Lansing's resolution of principles; other substitute; as reason for rejection of Treaty by Senate; retained in reported Covenant; and dominance of Great Powers. See also Equality of nations; League; Self-denying covenant.

Affirmative guarantee of territory and independence, plan; Wilson adopts, in Fourteen Points; Lansing's opposition; constitutional and political arguments against; Lansing's "self-denying covenant" as a substitute; in Wilson's original draft and in the Treaty; as a way to maintain the balance of power; Wilson stands by; not in Cecil plan; in Lansing's principles resolution; other substitutes; as the reason for the Senate's rejection of the Treaty; retained in the reported Covenant; and dominance of Great Powers. See also Equality of nations; League; Self-denying covenant.

Albania, disposition.

Albania, attitude.

Alliances. See French alliance.

Alliances. See French alliance.

Alsace-Lorraine, to be restored to France.

Alsace-Lorraine should be returned to France.

Amendment of League, provision for.

League amendment provisions.

American Bar Association, Lansing's address.

American Bar Association, Lansing address.

American Commission, members; ignored in League negotiations; conference of January 10; ignorant of preliminary negotiations; question of resignation over Shantung settlement; shares in Shantung negotiations. See also Bliss; House; Lansing; White; Wilson.

American Commission, members; overlooked in League negotiations; conference of January 10; unaware of preliminary discussions; issue of resignation regarding Shantung settlement; stakes in Shantung negotiations. See also Bliss; House; Lansing; White; Wilson.

American Peace Society.

American Peace Association.

American programme, lack of definite, as subject of disagreement; Fourteen Points announced; not worked out; insufficiency of Fourteen Points; Lansing's memorandum on territorial settlements; effect of President's attendance at Conference; embarrassment to delegates of lack; projet of treaty prepared for Lansing; President resents it; no system or team-work in American Commission; reason for President's attitude; no instructions during President's absence; results of lack; and Preliminary Treaty; influence of lack on Wilson's leadership; text of Fourteen Points.

American program, lacking clarity, became a point of contention; Fourteen Points were announced but not fully developed; inadequacies of the Fourteen Points; Lansing's notes on territorial arrangements; impact of the President's involvement in the Conference; delegates faced challenges due to this lack; draft treaty created for Lansing; the President disapproves; there was no coordination or teamwork in the American Commission; reasons for the President's stance; no guidance during the President's absence; consequences of the deficiencies; and Preliminary Treaty; impact of these shortcomings on Wilson's leadership; text of the Fourteen Points.

Annunzio, Gabriele d', at Fiume.

Gabriele d'Annunzio in Fiume.

Arabia, disposition. See also Near East.

Arabia, attitude. See also Middle East.

Arbitral Tribunal, in Lansing's plan.

Arbitration panel, in Lansing's plan.

Arbitration, as form of peace promotion; in Lansing's plan; in Wilson's original draft; in Cecil plan; in Treaty. See also Diplomatic adjustment; Judicial settlement.

Arbitration, as a way to promote peace; in Lansing's plan; in Wilson's original draft; in Cecil's plan; in the Treaty. See also Diplomatic adjustment; Judicial settlement.

Armenia, mandate for; protectorate. See also Near East.

Armenia, mandate for; protectorate. See also Near East.

Armistice, American conference on.

U.S. Armistice Conference.

Article X. See Affirmative guaranty.

Article X. Refer to Affirmative guaranty.

Assembly (Body of Delegates), in Wilson's original draft; analogous body in Cecil plan; in Treaty.

Assembly (Body of Delegates), in Wilson's original draft; similar body in Cecil's plan; in Treaty.

Auchincloss, Gordon, and drafting of League.

Auchincloss, Gordon, and the drafting of the League.

Austria, Archduchy and union with Germany, outlet to sea.

Austria, an Archduchy in union with Germany, has access to the sea.

Austria-Hungary, dissolution; Fourteen Points on subject people.

Austria-Hungary, collapse; Fourteen Points regarding the subject peoples.

Azerbaidjan, Wilson and.

Azerbaijan, Wilson and.

Baker, Ray Stannard, and Shantung.

Baker, Ray Stannard, and Shandong.

Balance of power, Clemenceau advocates; Wilson denounces; and Cecil plan; League and. See also Affirmative guaranty; Equality of nations.

Balance of power, Clemenceau supports; Wilson criticizes; and Cecil plans; League and. See also Affirmative guaranty; Equality of nations.

Balfour, Arthur, signs French alliance.

Balfour, Arthur, signs France alliance.

Balkans, Fourteen Points on. See also states by names.

Balkans, Fourteen Points on. See also states by names.

Belgium, and Anglo-Franco-American alliance, full sovereignty,

Belgium and the Anglo-Franco-American alliance have full sovereignty.

Bessarabia disposition,

Bessarabia arrangement,

Bliss, Tasker H. American delegate, opposes affirmative guaranty, and Covenant as reported, and proposed French alliance, and Shantung, letter to President, See also American Commission; American programme.

Bliss, Tasker H. American delegate, opposes affirmative guarantee, and Covenant as reported, and proposed French alliance, and Shantung, letter to President, See also American Commission; American program.

Body of Delegates. See Assembly.

Body of Delegates. See Assembly.

Boers, and self-determination,

Boers and self-determination,

Bohemia, disposition,

Bohemian vibe,

Bolshevism, peace as check to spread,

Bolshevism, peace as a way to contain its spread,

Bosnia, disposition,

Bosnia, arrangement,

Boundaries, principles in drawing,

Boundaries, principles of drawing,

Bowman, Isaiah, Commission of Inquiry

Bowman, Isaiah, Inquiry Commission

Brest-Litovsk Treaty, to be abrogated,

Brest-Litovsk Treaty, to be canceled,

Bucharest Treaty, to be abrogated,

Bucharest Treaty, to be canceled,

Buffer state on the Rhine,

Buffer state on the Rhine,

Bulgaria, boundaries,

Bulgaria, borders,

Bullitt, William C., on revision of Covenant, testimony on Lansing interview, Lansing's telegram to President on testimony, no reply received, and Wilson's western speeches,

Bullitt, William C., on revising the Covenant, his testimony regarding the Lansing interview, Lansing's telegram to the President about the testimony, no reply received, and Wilson's speeches in the West,

Canada, Papineau Rebellion and self-determination,

Canada, Papineau Rebellion, and independence

Carnegie Endowment for International Peace,

Carnegie Endowment for International Peace,

Cecil, Lord Robert, plan for League, Wilson opposes it, text of plan,

Cecil, Lord Robert, plan for the League; Wilson is against it; text of the plan,

Central Powers, Wilson and need of defeat, hope in Wilson's attitude, peace or Bolshevism, See also Mandates, and states by name.

Central Powers, Wilson, and the need for defeat, hope in Wilson's attitude, peace or Bolshevism, See also Mandates, and states by name.

China. See Shantung.

China. See Shandong.

Chinda, Viscount, and Shantung,

Chinda, Viscount, and Shandong,

Civil War, and self-determination,

Civil War and self-determination,

Clemenceau, Georges, Supreme War Council, advocates balance of power, and Cecil plan, and Franco-American alliance, See also Council of Four.

Clemenceau, Georges, Supreme War Council, supports balance of power, and the Cecil plan, along with the Franco-American alliance, See also Council of Four.

Codification of international law, in Lansing's plan,

Codifying international law, in Lansing's plan,

Colonies, disposition of, in Lansing's plan, Fourteen Points on, See also Mandates.

Colonies, organization of, in Lansing's plan, Fourteen Points on, See also Mandates.

Commerce. See Non-intercourse; Open Door.

Commerce. See Non-intercourse; Open Door.

Commission of Inquiry, work,

Inquiry Commission, work,

Commission on the League of Nations, appointed, and Wilson's return to
   United States, meets, Wilson's draft as groundwork, meetings and
   report, Wilson's address, character of report and work, secrecy,
   Wilson's domination,

Commission on the League of Nations, appointed, and Wilson's return to
United States, meets, Wilson's draft as foundation, gatherings and
report, Wilson's speech, nature of report and work, confidentiality,
Wilson's influence,

Constantinople, disposition,

Istanbul, arrangement,

Constitutional objections, to affirmative guaranty, and to Cecil plan,

Constitutional objections to affirmative guarantees and the Cecil plan,

Council of Foreign Ministers, established, nickname,

Council of Foreign Ministers, set up, nickname,

Council of Four, self-constituted, secrecy, "Olympians," gives only
   digest of Treaty to other delegates, Shantung bargain, See also
   Secret diplomacy.

Council of Four, self-appointed, secrecy, "Olympians," provides only
summary of Treaty to other delegates, Shantung deal, See also
Secret diplomacy.

Council of Ten, and Lansing's substitute resolution on League, during
   Wilson's absence, self-constituted organization, and Supreme War
   Council, divided, and secrecy,

Council of Ten, and Lansing's alternative resolution on the League, during
Wilson's absence, self-formed organization, and Supreme War
Council, split, and confidential,

Council of the Heads of States. See Council of Four.

Council of the Heads of States. See Council of Four.

Council (Executive Council) of the League, in Wilson's original draft, analogous body in Cecil plan, in Treaty,

Council (Executive Council) of the League, in Wilson's original draft, analogous body in Cecil plan, in Treaty,

Covenant. See League of Nations.

Covenant. See United Nations.

Croatia, disposition,

Croatia, location,

Czecho-Slovakia, erection,

Czechoslovakia, erection,

Dalmatia, in Pact of London,

Dalmatia, in the London Pact,

Danzig, for Poland,

Gdańsk, for Poland,

Dardanelles, Fourteen Points on,

Dardanelles, Fourteen Points,

Declaration of war, affirmative guaranty and power over,

Declaration of war, confirmation of guarantee and control over,

Denmark, Schleswig-Holstein, Heligoland,

Denmark, Schleswig-Holstein, Heligoland,

Diplomacy. See Secret diplomacy.

Diplomacy. See Under-the-radar diplomacy.

Diplomatic adjustment, as basis of Covenant, exalted, Lansing on judicial settlement and, in Wilson's original draft, in Treaty, See also Judicial settlement.

Diplomatic adjustment, as the foundation of the Covenant, praised Lansing on judicial settlement and, in Wilson's original draft, in the Treaty, See also Judicial settlement.

Disarmament, not touched in Lansing's plan; in Lansing's resolution of principles; in Wilson's original draft; in Treaty.

Disarmament isn't addressed in Lansing's plan, Lansing's resolution of principles, Wilson's original draft, or the Treaty.

Dobrudja, disposition.

Dobrudja, arrangement.

East Indians, and self-determination.

East Indians and self-determination.

Economic influence on boundary lines.

Economic impact on borders.

Economic interdependence, importance in peace negotiations.

Economic interdependence is crucial in peace negotiations.

Economic pressure. See Non-intercourse.

Economic pressure. See Non-intercourse.

Egypt, and self-determination; disposition.

Egypt, and self-determination; arrangement.

Election of 1918, as rebuke to Wilson.

Election of 1918, as a response to Wilson.

Entangling alliances. See Isolation.

Entangling alliances. See Isolation.

Equality of nations, sacrifice in Wilson's draft of League; in Lansing's form for League; ignored in Cecil plan; primacy of Great Powers retained in reported Covenant; violation by Treaty; and secret diplomacy at Conference.

Equality of nations, sacrifice in Wilson's draft of the League; in Lansing's form for the League; overlooked in the Cecil plan; dominance of Great Powers maintained in the reported Covenant; breach by the Treaty; and secret diplomacy at the Conference.

Esthonia, Wilson and; autonomy.

Estonia, Wilson, and autonomy.

Ethnic influence on boundary lines. See also Racial minorities;
   Self-determination.

Ethnic impact on borderlines. See also Racial minorities;
   Self-determination.

Finland, question of independence.

Finland's independence issue.

Fiume affair, Lansing's attitude; Pact of London in light of dissolution of Austria-Hungary; resulting increase in Italian claims as basis for compromise; attitude of Italy toward Jugo-Slavia; commercial importance of Fiume to Jugo-Slavia; campaign of Italian delegates for Fiume; Italian public sentiment; character of population, self-determination question; efforts to get Wilson's approval; threat to retire from Conference; Wilson's statement against Italian claim; withdrawal of delegation; Italian resentment against Wilson; as lesson on secret diplomacy; delegation returns; and Shantung.

Fiume affair, Lansing's stance; Pact of London considering the breakup of Austria-Hungary; subsequent rise in Italian claims as a basis for compromise; Italy's position towards Jugo-Slavia; the economic significance of Fiume for Jugo-Slavia; the campaign by Italian delegates for Fiume; Italian public opinion; demographic makeup, self-determination issue; attempts to gain Wilson's approval; threat to pull out of the Conference; Wilson's statement opposing the Italian claim; withdraw of the delegation; Italian anger towards Wilson; as a lesson on secret diplomacy; delegation returns; and Shantung.

Fourteen Points, announced; affirmative guaranty in; insufficient as
   programme; text.

Fourteen Points, announced; affirmative guarantee in; inadequate as
   program; text.

France, Alsace-Lorraine; restoration. See also Clemenceau; French
   alliance; Great Powers.

France, Alsace-Lorraine; restoration. See also Clemenceau; French
allianсe; Great Powers.

Freedom of the seas, in Fourteen Points.

Freedom of the seas, in Fourteen Points.

French alliance, as subject of disagreement; provisions of treaty; relation to League; and removal of certain French demands from Treaty of Peace; and French adherence to League; Lansing's opposition; drafted, signed; Lansing and signing; arguments for.

French alliance as a point of contention; terms of the treaty; connection to the League; and withdrawal of specific French requests from the Treaty of Peace; and French commitment to the League; Lansing's opposition; drafted and signed; Lansing and the signing; arguments in favor.

Geographic influence on boundary lines.

Geographic impact on boundaries.

Georgia, Wilson and.

Georgia, Wilson, and.

Germany, buffer state on the Rhine; and Russian route to the East; Lansing's memorandum on territorial settlements; military impotence. See also Central Powers; French alliance; Mandates.

Germany, a buffer state on the Rhine; and Russia's route to the East; Lansing's memo on territorial settlements; military weakness. See also Central Powers; French alliance; Mandates.

Ginn Peace Foundation.

Ginn Peace Foundation.

Great Britain, and clause on self-determination; Egypt. See also
   French alliance; Great Powers; Lloyd George.

Great Britain, and the clause on self-determination; Egypt. See also
   French alliance; Great Powers; Lloyd George.

Great Powers, and mandates. See also Balance of power; Council of
   Four; Equality of nations.

Great Powers and their mandates. See also Balance of power; Council of
   Four; Equality of nations.

Greece, territory.

Greece, land.

Gregory, Thomas W., and Wilson's modus vivendi idea.

Gregory, Thomas W., and Wilson's modus vivendi idea.

Guaranty. See Affirmative; Self-denying.

Guarantee. See Affirmative; Self-denying.

Hague Conventions, and international peace.

Hague Conventions and global peace.

Hague Tribunal, and Lansing's plan; Wilson's contempt; recognition in
   Cecil plan.

Hague Tribunal, and Lansing's plan; Wilson's disdain; acknowledgment in
Cecil plan.

Hands Off, as basis of Lansing's plan.

Hands Off, as the foundation of Lansing's plan.

Health, promotion in Treaty.

Health promotion in Treaty.

Heligoland, dismantlement, disposition.

Heligoland, removal, management.

Herzegovina, disposition.

Herzegovina, attitude.

Historic influence on boundary lines.

Historical impact on borders.

Hostilities. See Prevention of war.

Conflict. See Prevention of war.

House, Edward M., joins Supreme War Council; conference on armistice terms; selection as peace negotiator and President as delegate, Commission of Inquiry, and drafting of League, and international court, and "self-denying covenant," and balance of power, of Commission on the League of Nations, and mandates, and data, ignorant of Wilson's programme, and Preliminary Treaty with detailed Covenant, and private consultations, See also American Commission.

House, Edward M. joins the Supreme War Council; conference on armistice terms; chosen as peace negotiator with the President as a delegate, Commission of Inquiry, drafting of the League, international court, and "self-denying covenant," balancing power, and the Commission on the League of Nations, mandates, and data, unaware of Wilson's program, and Preliminary Treaty with detailed Covenant, and private consultations, See also American Commission.

Hungary, separation from Austria.

Hungary, independence from Austria.

Immoral traffic, prevention in Treaty,

Immoral trafficking, prevention in Treaty,

Immunities of League representatives,

Immunities for League representatives,

Indemnities, and mandates,

Indemnities and mandates

India, German routes to,

India, routes to Germany,

International commissions, in Cecil plan, in Treaty,

International commissions, in Cecil plan, in Treaty,

International court. See Judicial settlement.

International court. See Court settlement.

International enforcement. See Affirmative guaranty.

International enforcement. See Affirmative guarantee.

International military force, in Wilson's original draft, in Treaty,

International military force, in Wilson's original draft, in Treaty,

International military staff, proposal,

Intl. military staff proposal,

Interparliamentary Congress, in Cecil plan,

Interparliamentary Congress, in Cecil plan,

Inviolability of League property,

Protection of League property,

Irish, and self-determination,

Irish self-determination,

Isolation, policy, and affirmative guaranty, and mandates, and French alliance,

Isolation, policy, affirmative guarantees, mandates, and French alliance,

Italy, and Cecil plan, territory, See also Fiume; Great Powers.

Italy, and Cecil plan, territory, See also Fiume; Great Powers.

Japan, and Cecil plan, in Council of Ten, See also Great Powers;
   Shantung.

Japan, along with Cecil, is planning in the Council of Ten, See also Great Powers;
Shantung.

Judicial settlement of international disputes, Lansing's plan, subordinated in Wilson's draft, Lansing on diplomatic adjustment and, Lansing urges as nucleus of League, in Lansing's resolution of principles, Lansing's appeal for, in Covenant, arbitrators of litigant nations, difficulties in procedure, cost, elimination from Covenant of appeal from arbitral awards, how effected, Lansing's appeal ignored, in Cecil plan, See also Arbitration; Diplomatic adjustment.

Judicial resolution of international conflicts, Lansing's proposal, placed as a secondary focus in Wilson's draft, Lansing on diplomatic resolution and, Lansing advocates as the core of the League, in Lansing's principles resolution, Lansing's call for, in the Covenant, arbitrators from the involved nations, challenges in the process, expenses, removal from the Covenant of appeals against arbitral decisions, how it was implemented, Lansing's appeal overlooked, in the Cecil plan, See also Arbitration; Diplomatic adjustment.

Jugo-Slavia, and Anglo-Franco-American alliance, port, erected, See also Fiume.

Jugo-Slavia, and the Anglo-Franco-American alliance, port, built, See also Fiume.

Kato, Baron, and Shantung,

Kato, Baron, and Shantung,

Kiao-Chau. See Shantung.

Kiao-Chau. View Shantung.

Kiel Canal, internationalization,

Kiel Canal, globalization,

Koo, V.K. Wellington, argument on Shantung,

Koo, V.K. Wellington, argument on Shantung,

Labor article, in Wilson's original draft, in Treaty,

Labor article, in Wilson's original draft, in Treaty,

Lansing, Robert, resignation asked and given, divergence of judgment from President, reasons for retaining office, reasons for narrative, imputation of faithlessness, personal narrative, subjects of disagreement, attitude toward duty as negotiator, policy as to advice to President, President's attitude towards opinions, method of treatment of subject, conference on armistice terms, selected as a negotiator, opposition to President being a delegate, President's attitude toward this opposition, and Commission of Inquiry, arrival in Paris, and balance of power, and paramount need of speedy peace, opposition to mandates, opposition to French alliance treaty, signs it, personal relations with President, memorandum on American programme (1918), has projet of treaty prepared, Wilson resents it, on lack of organization in American Commission, and lack of programme, and American Commission during President's absence, on Wilson's modus vivendi idea, opposition to secret diplomacy, effect on Wilson, and Fiume, and Shantung, Bullitt affair, views on Treaty when presented to Germans, and ratification of Treaty See also American Commission; League; Wilson.

Lansing, Robert, asked for his resignation and received it, differences of opinion from the President, reasons for staying in office, reasons for the narrative, accusations of disloyalty, personal story, points of disagreement, attitude toward his role as negotiator, policy regarding advice to the President, the President's stance on opinions, approach to the subject, discussions on armistice terms, chosen as a negotiator, opposition to the President being a delegate, the President's reaction to this opposition, and the Commission of Inquiry, arrival in Paris, the balance of power, and the urgent need for a swift peace, disagreement with mandates, opposition to the French alliance treaty, signs it, personal relationship with the President, memo on the American program (1918), has a draft of the treaty prepared, Wilson resents it, on the lack of organization in the American Commission, and lack of a program, and the American Commission during the President's absence, on Wilson's practical approach idea, opposition to secret diplomacy, impact on Wilson, and Fiume, and Shantung, Bullitt affair, views on the Treaty when presented to the Germans, and ratification of the Treaty. See also American Commission; League; Wilson.

Latvia Wilson and autonomy

Latvia, Wilson, and self-determination

League of Nations principles as subject of disagreement as object of peace negotiations as reason for President's participation in Conference Wilson's belief in necessity American support of idea, earlier plans and associations divergence of opinion on form political and juridical forms of organization Wilson's belief in international force and affirmative guaranty affirmative guaranty in Fourteen Points Phillimore's report preparation of Wilson's original draft, House as author Lansing not consulted, reason Lansing's opposition to affirmative guaranty Lansing and non-intercourse peace plan draft impracticable and equality of nations Lansing's "self-denying covenant" Lansing accepts guaranty as matter of expediency diplomatic adjustment as basis of Wilson's draft guaranty in first draft, later draft, and Treaty Lansing's substitute, his communications not acknowledged, incorporation of detailed Covenant in Treaty irreconcilable differences between Wilson's and Lansing's plans Lansing on diplomatic adjustment versus judicial settlement Lansing urges international court as nucleus three doctrines of Lansing's plan Lansing's first view of Wilson's draft his opinion of its form of its principles Wilson considers affirmative guaranty essential, effect on Treaty American Commission ignored on matters concerning Cecil plan Wilson's opposition to it question of self-determination Lansing's proposed resolution of principles in Treaty and later detailing detailed Covenant or speedy peace Wilson utilizes desire for peace to force acceptance of League Lansing proposes resolution to Wilson and to Council of Ten drafted resolution of principles Commission on the League of Nations appointed, American members resolution and Wilson's return to United States Wilson's draft before Commission Wilson pigeonholes resolution revision of Wilson's draft Lansing's appeal for international court it is ignored elimination of appeal from arbitral awards, how effected report of Commission, Wilson's address character of report and work of Commission, main principles unaltered Wilson and American opposition (Feb.) American Commission and report amendments to placate American opinion reaction in Europe due to American opposition change in character and addition of functions to preserve it summary of Lansing's objections and French alliance in a preliminary treaty as a modus vivendi as subject of Wilson's private consultations secrecy in negotiations and Shantung bargain Bullitt's report of Lansing's attitude and carrying out of the Treaty as merely a name for the Quintuple Alliance text of Wilson's original draft of Cecil plan in Treaty See also Mandates.

League of Nations principles were a source of disagreement and a topic in peace negotiations, influencing the President's involvement in the Conference. Wilson believed it was essential for America to support this idea, despite earlier plans and associations showing differing opinions on the political and legal structures of the organization. He trusted in the need for an international force and a positive guarantee, which he outlined in the Fourteen Points. Phillimore's report discussed Wilson's initial draft, where the House was credited as the author and Lansing was not consulted, largely because of his opposition to the positive guarantee. Lansing viewed the non-intercourse peace plan draft as impractical, advocating for the equality of nations and his "self-denying covenant." He accepted the guarantee as a matter of expediency, using diplomatic adjustments as a basis for Wilson's draft. The guarantee appeared in both the first draft and later in the Treaty, but Lansing's alternatives were overlooked, and his communications went unacknowledged. The detailed Covenant was incorporated into the Treaty, highlighting the irreconcilable differences between Wilson's and Lansing's plans. Lansing argued for a diplomatic adjustment rather than a judicial settlement and promoted the idea of an international court as a core element of his plan. He had a critical perspective on Wilson's draft, especially concerning its form and principles. Wilson viewed the positive guarantee as vital, affecting the Treaty, while the American Commission felt disregarded on issues tied to the Cecil plan, which Wilson opposed, especially concerning self-determination. Lansing aimed to resolve the principles within the Treaty and later detail a Covenant to ensure swift peace. Wilson used the desire for peace to push for acceptance of the League, while Lansing proposed a resolution to both Wilson and the Council of Ten. The Commission on the League of Nations was appointed, featuring American members, and there was a discussion about Wilson's return to the United States. Wilson's draft was presented to the Commission, but he set aside the resolution for revision. Lansing's call for an international court went ignored, and the removal of appeals from arbitral awards was addressed. The Commission's report reflected Wilson's speech, yet the main principles remained unchanged amid American opposition in February. The American Commission's report included amendments to address public opinion, which influenced European reactions due to this opposition and altered the character and functions of the League. Lansing expressed objections and suggested a preliminary treaty with the French alliance as a temporary arrangement, which became a topic of Wilson's private discussions. Secrecy shrouded negotiations, including the Shantung agreement, while Bullitt relayed Lansing's stance on the Treaty being just a name for the Quintuple Alliance. The text of Wilson's original draft concerning the Cecil plan is noted in the Treaty. See also Mandates.

League to Enforce Peace Wilson's address

League to Enforce Peace Wilson's address

Lithuania Wilson and autonomy

Lithuania, Wilson, and autonomy

Lloyd George, David, Supreme War Council, 14 and French alliance See also Council of Four.

Lloyd George, David, Supreme War Council, 14 and French alliance See also Council of Four.

Log-rolling at Conference

Log-rolling at the conference

London, Pact of

London, Pact

Makino, Baron and Shantung

Makino, Baron, and Shandong

Mandates, in Smuts plan, Wilson adopts it Lansing's criticism retained in reported Covenant political difficulties Wilson's attitude legal difficulties usefulness questioned as means of justifying the League and indemnities altruistic, to be share of United States in Wilson's original draft in Treaty.

Mandates, in Smuts' plan, are adopted by Wilson, with Lansing's criticism kept in mind. Reported political difficulties around the Covenant show Wilson's legal struggles, raising questions about its usefulness as a way to justify the League and indemnities, which are seen as altruistic. This would be the share of the United States in Wilson's original draft of the Treaty.

Meeting-place of League in Wilson's original draft in Cecil plan in
   Treaty.

Meeting place of the League in Wilson's original draft in the Cecil plan in
   Treaty.

Membership in League in Wilson's original draft in Treaty withdrawal.

Membership in the League in Wilson's original draft in the Treaty withdrawal.

Mezes, Sidney E., Commission of Inquiry and data.

Mezes, Sidney E., Commission of Inquiry and data.

Miller, David Hunter and drafting of Covenant and projet of a treaty.

Miller, David Hunter, and the drafting of the Covenant and treaty proposal.

Modus vivendi, Wilson and a preliminary treaty as

Modus vivendi, Wilson and a preliminary treaty as

Monroe Doctrine and affirmative covenant preservation in Treaty

Monroe Doctrine and affirmative covenant preservation in Treaty

Montenegro in Jugo-Slavia Fourteen Points on

Montenegro in Yugoslavia Fourteen Points on

Moravia, disposition

Moravia, attitude

Munitions regulation of manufacture and trade in Wilson's original draft in Treaty

Munitions regulation of manufacturing and trading in Wilson's original draft in Treaty

National safety, dominance of principle

National safety, supremacy of principle

Near East United States and mandates Lansing's memorandum on territorial settlements mandates in Wilson's original draft mandates in Treaty Fourteen points on

Near East United States and mandates Lansing's memo on territorial settlements mandates in Wilson's original draft mandates in Treaty Fourteen points on

Negative guaranty. See Self-denying covenant.

Negative guarantee. See Self-denying covenant.

Non-intercourse as form of peace promotion constitutionality in Wilson's original draft in Treaty

Non-intercourse as a way to promote peace, according to the constitutionality in Wilson's original draft in the Treaty

Norway, Spitzbergen

Norway, Svalbard

Open Door in Lansing's plan in Near East in former German colonies principle in Wilson's original draft and in Treaty in Fourteen Points

Open Door in Lansing's plan in the Near East in former German colonies principle in Wilson's original draft and in the Treaty in the Fourteen Points

Outlet to the sea for each nation

Outlet to the sea for each nation

Orlando, Vittorio Emanuele

Orlando, Victor Emmanuel

Palestine autonomy See also Near East.

Palestine autonomy See also Middle East.

Pan-America, proposed mutual guaranty treaty

Pan-America, proposed mutual guarantee treaty

Papineau Rebellion, and self-determination

Papineau Rebellion and self-determination

Peace, Treaty of inclusion of detailed Covenant as subject of disagreement expected preliminary treaty speedy restoration of peace versus detailed Covenant Wilson employs desire for, to force acceptance of League, resulting delay, delay, delay on League causes definitive rather than preliminary treaty subjects for a preliminary treaty influence of lack of American programme Wilson's decision for a definitive treaty Lansing's views of finished treaty British opinion protests of experts and officials of American Commission Lansing and ratification See also League.

Peace, Treaty of inclusion of detailed Covenant as subject of disagreement expected preliminary treaty speedy restoration of peace versus detailed Covenant Wilson employs desire for, to force acceptance of League, resulting delay, delay, delay on League causes definitive rather than preliminary treaty subjects for a preliminary treaty influence of lack of American program Wilson's decision for a definitive treaty Lansing's views of finished treaty British opinion protests of experts and officials of American Commission Lansing and ratification See also League.

Persia, disposition

Persian, character

Phillimore, Lord, report on League of Nations

Phillimore, Lord, report on the League of Nations

Poland and Anglo-Franco-American alliance independence Danzig

Poland and the Anglo-French-American alliance for independence in Danzig

Postponement of hostilities as form of peace promotion in Wilson's original draft in Cecil plan in Treaty

Postponing hostilities as a way to promote peace in Wilson's original draft of the Cecil plan in the Treaty

President as delegate as subject of disagreement Lansing's opposition origin of Wilson's intention influence of belligerency on plan influence of presence on domination of situation personal reasons for attending decision to go to Paris decision to be a delegate attitude of House League as reason for decision

President as delegate as subject of disagreement Lansing's opposition origin of Wilson's intention influence of belligerency on plan influence of presence on domination of situation personal reasons for attending decision to go to Paris decision to be a delegate attitude of House League as reason for decision

Prevention of war in Wilson's original draft in Cecil plan in Treaty Sec also Arbitration; League.

Prevention of war in Wilson's original draft in the Cecil plan in the Treaty Sec also Arbitration; League.

Publication of treaties in Lansing's plan in Treaty

Publication of treaties in Lansing's plan in Treaty

Publicity as basis of Lansing's plan See also Secret diplomacy.

Publicity as the foundation of Lansing's plan See also Secret diplomacy.

Quintuple Alliance, League of Nations as name for

Quintuple Alliance, League of Nations as a name for

Racial equality issue in Shantung bargain

Racial equality issue in the Shantung agreement

Racial minorities protection, in Wilson's original draft

Racial minorities' protection, in Wilson's original draft

Ratification of Treaty Lansing's attitude

Approval of Treaty Lansing's stance

Red Cross promotion in Treaty

Red Cross promotion in treaty

Rhenish Republic as buffer state

Rhenish Republic as a buffer state

Roumania Bucharest Treaty to be abrogated territory Fourteen Points on

Roumania Bucharest Treaty to be canceled territory Fourteen Points on

Russia Wilson's policy and route for Germany to the East Lansing's notes on territorial settlement Fourteen Points on

Russia Wilson's policy and path for Germany to the East Lansing's notes on territorial settlement Fourteen Points on

Ruthenians and Ukraine

Ruthenians and Ukraine

Schleswig-Holstein disposition

Schleswig-Holstein arrangement

Scott, James Brown drafts French alliance treaty and projet of a treaty

Scott, James Brown drafts a treaty for a French alliance and a project of a treaty.

Secret diplomacy as subject of disagreement in negotiation of League as evil at Conference Lansing's opposition, its effect on Wilson Wilson's consultations and Wilson's "open diplomacy" in Council of Four public resentment Fiume affair as lesson on perfunctory open plenary sessions of Conference Council of Ten effect on Wilson's prestige responsibility effect on delegates of smaller nations climax, text of Treaty withheld from delegates psychological effect great opportunity for reform missed and Shantung Fourteen Points on See also Publicity

Secret diplomacy was a point of contention during the League negotiations, seen as a negative factor at the Conference. Lansing's opposition influenced Wilson. Wilson's discussions and his idea of "open diplomacy" in the Council of Four faced public backlash, especially regarding the Fiume situation, which highlighted the superficial nature of the open plenary sessions of the Conference. The Council of Ten impacted Wilson's standing and the sense of responsibility among delegates from smaller nations. Ultimately, the climax came when the text of the Treaty was withheld from the delegates, creating a psychological impact and resulting in a missed opportunity for significant reform, particularly regarding Shantung and the Fourteen Points on See also Publicity.

Secretariat of the League in Wilson's original draft in Cecil plan in
   Treaty

Secretariat of the League in Wilson's original draft in Cecil plan in
   Treaty

"Self-denying covenant" for guaranty of territory and independence
   Lansing's advocacy House and Wilson rejects suggested by others to
   Wilson

"Self-denying covenant" for guaranty of territory and independence
Lansing's support House and Wilson declines suggestions from others to
Wilson

Self-determination in Wilson's draft of Covenant why omitted from treaty in theory and in practice Wilson abandons violation in the treaties and Civil War and Fiume colonial, in Fourteen Points Wilson's statement (Feb. 1918)

Self-determination in Wilson's draft of the Covenant was left out of the treaty. In theory and practice, Wilson disregards violations in the treaties, as well as the Civil War and Fiume colonial issues. In his Fourteen Points statement from February 1918, Wilson clarified his position.

Senate of United States and affirmative guaranty opposition and Wilson's threat plan to check opposition by a modus vivendi

Senate of the United States and the guarantee of support against opposition, along with Wilson's plan to counter the opposition through a modus vivendi

Separation of powers Wilson's attitude

Separation of powers: Wilson's views

Serbia Jugo-Slavia territory Fourteen Points on

Serbia, Yugoslavia territory, Fourteen Points on

Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes See Jugoslavia

Serbs, Croats, and Slovenes See Yugoslavia

Shantung Settlement as subject of disagreement and secret diplomacy bargain injustice, blackmail influence of Japanese bluff not to agree to the League German control Japanese occupation moral effect Chinese agreement to Japanese demands, resulting legal and moral status status after China's declaration of war on Germany attitude of Allied delegates attitude of American Commission, letter to Wilson argument before Council of Ten Japanese threat to American Commission before Council of Four value of Japanese promises questioned and Fiume question of resignation of American Commission over China refuses to sign Treaty Wilson permits American Commission to share in negotiations American public opinion text of Treaty articles on

Shantung Settlement as a Topic of Dispute and Secret Diplomacy Bargaining injustice, blackmail, and the influence of Japanese bluffs to avoid agreeing to the League, German control, Japanese occupation, and the moral impact of China's agreement to Japanese demands, leading to the resulting legal and moral status after China's declaration of war on Germany, the attitudes of Allied delegates, the position of the American Commission, a letter to Wilson, and arguments before the Council of Ten regarding the Japanese threat to the American Commission before the Council of Four. The value of Japanese promises is questioned along with the Fiume issue and the potential resignation of the American Commission if China refuses to sign the Treaty. Wilson allows the American Commission to participate in negotiations, reflecting American public opinion and the text of Treaty articles on

Silesia and Czecho-Slovakia

Silesia and Czechoslovakia

Slavonia disposition

Slavonia setup

Slovakia disposition

Slovakia's status

Small nations See Equality.

Small nations see equality.

Smuts, General and disarmament plan for mandates

Smuts, General and disarmament plan for mandates

Society for the Judicial Settlement of International Disputes

Society for the Judicial Settlement of International Disputes

Sonnino, Baron Sidney See Fiume

Sonnino, Baron Sidney See Rijeka

Sovereignty question in system of mandates

Sovereignty issue in the system of mandates

Spitzbergen disposition

Spitsbergen arrangement

Strategic influence on boundary lines

Strategic influence on borders

Straus, Oscar S. favors League as reported

Straus, Oscar S. supports the League as mentioned.

Supreme War Council, American members added, 14; and Cecil plan; and
   Council of Ten.

Supreme War Council, American members included, 14; and Cecil plan; and
Council of Ten.

Syria, protectorate. See also Near East.

Syria, protectorate. See also Middle East.

Taft, William H., supports League as reported.

Taft, William H., backs the League as reported.

Transylvania, disposition,

Transylvania, vibe,

Treaty of Peace. See Peace.

Peace Treaty. See Peace.

Treaty-making power, President's responsibility, duties of negotiators, and affirmative guaranty,

Treaty-making power, the President's responsibility, the duties of negotiators, and a positive guarantee,

Trieste, disposition; importance,

Trieste, attitude; significance,

Turkey, dismemberment and mandates, See also Near East.

Turkey, dismemberment, and mandates, See also Near East.

Ukraine, Wilson and; autonomy, and Ruthenians.

Ukraine, Wilson, self-governance, and Ruthenians.

Unanimity, requirement in League.

Unanimous decision required in League.

Violation of the League, action concerning, in Wilson's original draft, in Cecil plan; in Treaty,

Violation of the League, actions regarding it, in Wilson's original draft, in the Cecil plan; in the Treaty,

War. See Arbitration; League of Nations; Prevention.

War. See Arbitration; UN; Prevention.

White, Henry, arrival in Paris; opposes affirmative guaranty; and
   Covenant as reported and later amendments; and proposed French
   alliance; and Shantung question. See also American programme;
   American Commission.

White, Henry, arrives in Paris; disagrees with affirmative guarantee; and
Covenant as reported and later amendments; and proposed French
alliance; and Shantung issue. See also American program;
American Commission.

Wickersham, George W., supports League as reported.

Wickersham, George W., backs the League as reported.

Williams, E. T., and Shantung question,

Williams, E. T., and the Shantung issue,

Wilson, Woodrow, responsibility for foreign relations; duties of negotiators to, and opposition, presumption of self-assurance, conference on armistice terms; disregard of precedent; and need of defeat of enemy; and Commission of Inquiry; open-mindedness; and advice on personal conduct; positiveness and indecision; and election of 1918; prejudice against legal attitude; prefers written advice, arrives in Paris, reception abroad, on equality of nations, and separation of powers, denounces balance of power, and self-determination, conference of Jan. 10, contempt for Hague Tribunal, fidelity to convictions, return to United States, return to Paris, and mandates, and French alliance, and open rupture with Lansing, and team-work, decides for a definitive treaty only, rigidity of mind, secretive nature, and Fiume, Italian resentment and Shantung, and Bullitt affair, Treaty as abandonment of his principles, Fourteen Points, principles of peace (Feb. 1918), See also American programme; Commission on the League; Council of Four; Lansing; League; Peace; President as delegate; Secret diplomacy.

Wilson, Woodrow, responsibility for foreign relations; duties of negotiators to, and opposition, presumption of self-assurance, conference on armistice terms; disregard of precedent; and need to defeat the enemy; and Commission of Inquiry; open-mindedness; and advice on personal conduct; decisiveness and indecision; and the election of 1918; prejudice against a legal stance; prefers written advice, arrives in Paris, reception abroad, on equality of nations, and separation of powers, denounces the balance of power, and self-determination, conference of Jan. 10, contempt for the Hague Tribunal, fidelity to convictions, return to the United States, return to Paris, and mandates, and French alliance, and open rupture with Lansing, and teamwork, decides on a definitive treaty only, rigidity of mind, secretive nature, and Fiume, Italian resentment and Shantung, and Bullitt affair, Treaty as abandonment of his principles, Fourteen Points, principles of peace (Feb. 1918), See also American program; Commission on the League; Council of Four; Lansing; League; Peace; President as delegate; Secret diplomacy.

Withdrawal from League, provision in Treaty, through failure to approve amendments.

Withdrawal from the League, a provision in the Treaty, due to the failure to approve amendments.

World Peace Foundation,

World Peace Foundation

Zionism, and self-determination,

Zionism and self-determination

Zone system in mutual guaranty plan,

Zone system in mutual guaranty plan,


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!